InterReklama Advertising
[Plaintext version 1.1, June 3, 1998]
DIANETICS
THE MODERN SCIENCE
OF MENTAL HEALTH
A HANDBOOK OF DIANETIC PROCEDURE
By L. RON HUBBARD
Publications Organization
Published by
The Church of Scientology of California
Publications Organization
4833 Fountain Avenue, East Annex
Los Angeles, California 90029
Scientology is an applied religious philosophy
Dianetics $t and Scientology $t are registered names
The Church of Scientology of California is a non prof it organization.
Copyright (c) 1950 by L. Ron Hubbard
All rights, domestic and foreign, reserved
No part of this book may be reproduced without permission
of the copyright owner, except for use in the usual reviews.
Dianetics is the trademark of L. Ron Hubbard
in respect of his published works.
Hardback edition just published May, 1950
TWENTY-FIVE PRINTINGS, THRU 1974
TWENTY-SIXTH PRINTING, NOVEMBER, 1975
TWENTY-SEVENTH PRINTING, APRIL, 1976
Paperback edition first published October, 1968
TWENTIETH PRINTING, MARCH 1978
U.S. LIBRARY OF CONGRESS NO. 73-184345
ISBN 0-88404-000-3
Printed in the United States of America
Dedicated to Will Durant
IMPORTANT NOTE
In Studying Dianetics and Scientology be very, very certain you
never go past a word you do not fully understand.
The only reason a person gives up a study or becomes confused or
unable to learn is that he or she has gone past a word or phrase
that was not understood.
If the material becomes confusing or you can't seem to grasp it,
there will be a word just earlier that you have not go back to
BEFORE you got into trouble, find the misunderstood word and get
it defined.
CONTENTS
SYNOPSIS IX
INTRODUCTION XXI
HOW TO READ THIS BOOK XXVII
BOOK ONE: THE GOAL OF MAN
Chapter I The Scope of Dianetics 3
Chapter II The Clear 8
Chapter III The Goal of Man 20
Chapter IV The Four Dynamics 36
Chapter V Summary 41
BOOK TWO: THE SINGLE SOURCE OF ALL INORGANIC MENTAL AND ORGANIC
PSYCHO-SOMATIC ILLS
Chapter I The Analytical Mind and the Standard Memory Banks 49
Chapter II The reactive Mind 57
Chapter III The Cell and the Organism 81
Chapter IV "The Demons" 99
Chapter V Psycho-somatic Illness 108
Chapter VI Emotion and the Dynamics 131
Chapter VII Prenatal Experience and Birth 147
Chapter VIII Contagion of Aberration 161
vii
Chapter IX Keying-in the Engram 170
Chapter X Preventive Dianetics 184
BOOK THREE: THERAPY
Chapter I The Mind's Protection 197
Chapter II Release or Clear 203
Chapter III The Auditor's Role 208
Chapter IV Diagnosis 216
Chapter V Returning, the File Clerk, and the Time Track 235
Chapter VI The Laws of Returning 250
Chapter VII Emotion and the Life Force 275
Chapter VIII Some Types of Engrams 318
Chapter IX Mechanisms and Aspects of Therapy
Part One 335
Part Two 385
Chapter X Dianetics - Past and Future 489
APPENDIX I The Philosophic Method 505
by Will Durant
APPENDIX II The Scientific Method 507
by John W. Campbell, Jr.
APPENDIX III (a) Mind Schematic (with graph) 515
by D. H. Rogers
(b) Analyzer Schematic (with graph) 521
by D. H. Rogers
APPENDIX IV Advice to the Pre-clear 524
GLOSSARY 538
INDEX 543
THE CHURCHES OF SCIENTOLOGY 554
viii
SYNOPSIS
The creation of dianetics is a milestone for Man comparable to his
discovery of fire and superior to his inventions of the wheel and
arch.
Dianetics (Gr., dianoua - thought) is the science of mind. Far
simpler than physics or chemistry, it compares with them in the
exactness of its axioms and is on a considerably higher echelon of
usefulness. The hidden source of all psycho-somatic ills and human
aberration has been discovered and skills have been developed for
their invariable cure.
Dianetics is actually a family of sciences embracing the various
humanities and translating them into usefully precise definitions.
The present volume deals with Individual Dianetics and is a
handbook containing the necessary skills both for the handling
of interpersonal relations and the treatment of the mind. With
the techniques presented in this handbook the psychiatrist,
psycho-analyst and intelligent layman can successfully and
invariably treat all psycho-somatic ills and inorganic aberrations.
More importantly, the skills offered in this handbook will produce
the dianetic clear, an optimum individual with intelligence
considerably greater than the current normal, or the dianetic
release, an individual who has been freed from his major anxieties
or illnesses. The release can be done in less than twenty hours of
work and is a state superior to any produced by several years of
psycho-analysis, since the release will not release.
Dianetics is an exact science and its application is on the order
of, but simpler than, engineering. Its axioms
ix
should not be confused with theories since they demonstrably exist
as natural laws hitherto undiscovered. Man has known many portions
of dianetics in the past thousands of years, but the data was not
evaluated for importance, was not organized into a body of precise
knowledge. In addition to things known, if not evaluated, dianetics
includes a large number of new discoveries of its own about thought
and the mind.
The axioms may be found on Page 42 of this volume. Understood and
applied, they embrace the field of human endeavor and thought and
yield precision results.
The first contribution of dianetics is the discovery that the
problems of thought and mental function can be resolved within the
bounds of the finite universe, which is to say that all data
needful to the solution of mental action and Man's endeavor can be
measured, sensed and experienced as scientific truths independent
of mysticism or metaphysics. The various axioms are not assumptions
or theories - the case of past ideas about the mind - but are laws
which can be subjected to the most vigorous laboratory and clinical
tests.
The first law of dianetics is a statement of the dynamic principle
of existence.
THE DYNAMIC PRINCIPLE OF
EXISTENCE IS: SURVIVE!
No behavior or activity has been found to exist without this
principle. It is not new that life is surviving. It is new that
life has as its entire dynamic urge only survival.
Survival is divided into four dynamics. Survival can be understood
to lie in any one of the dynamics and by faulty logic can be
explained in terms of any one dynamic. A man can be said to survive
for self alone and by this all behavior can be formulated. He can
be said to survive
x
for sex alone and by sex alone all behavior can be formulated. He
can be said to survive for the group only or for Mankind only and
in either of these the entire endeavor and behavior of the
individual can be equated and explained. These are four equations
of survival, each one apparently true. However, the entire problem
of the purpose of Man cannot be resolved unless one admits all four
dynamics in each individual. So equated, the behavior of the
individual can be estimated with precision. These dynamics then
embrace the activity of one or many men.
DYNAMIC ONE: The urge of the individual to reach the highest
potential of survival in terms of self and his immediate symbiotes.
DYNAMIC TWO: The urge of the individual to reach the highest
potential of survival in terms of sex, the act and the creation of
children and their rearing.
DYNAMIC THREE: The urge of the individual to reach the highest
potential of survival in terms of the group, whether civil,
political, or racial, and the symbiotes of that group.
DYNAMIC FOUR: The urge of the individual to reach the highest
potential of survival in terms of Mankind and the symbiotes of
Mankind.
Thus motivated, the individual or a society seeks survival and no
human activity of any kind has other basis: experiment,
investigation and long testing demonstrated that the unaberrated
individual, the clear, was motivated in his actions and decisions
by all the above dynamics and not one alone.
The clear, the goal of dianetic therapy, can be created from
psychotic, neurotic, deranged, criminal or normal people if they
have organically sound nervous systems. He demonstrates the basic
nature of Mankind and that basic nature has been found uniformly
and invariably to be good. That is now an established scientific
fact, not an opinion.
xi
The clear has attained a stable state on a very high plane. He is
persistent and vigorous and pursues life with enthusiasm and
satisfaction. He is motivated by the four dynamics as above. He has
attained the full power and use of hitherto hidden abilities.
The inhibition of one or more dynamics in an individual causes an
aberrated condition, tends toward mental derangement and
psycho-somatic illness and causes the individual to make irrational
conclusions and act, still in an effort to survive, in destructive
ways.
Dianetic technique deletes, without drugs, hypnotism, surgery,
shock or other artificial means, the blocks from these various
dynamics. The removal of these blocks permits the free flow of the
various dynamics and, of course, results in a heightened
persistency in life and a much higher intelligence.
The precision of dianetics makes it possible to impede or release
these dynamics at will with invariable results.
The hidden source of all inorganic mental disturbance and
psycho-somatic illness was one of the discoveries of dianetics.
This source had been unknown and unsuspected, though vigorously
sought, for thousands of years. That the discovered source is
the source requires less laboratory proof than would have been
necessary to have proven the correctness of William Harvey's
discovery of the circulation of the blood. The proof does not
depend upon a laboratory test with complicated apparatus but can
be made in any group of men by any intelligent individual.
The source of aberration has been found to be a hitherto
unsuspected sub-mind which, complete with its own recordings,
underlies what man understands to be his "conscious" mind. The
concept of the unconscious mind is replaced in dianetics by the
discovery that the "unconscious" mind is the only mind which is
always conscious. In dianetics this sub-mind is called the reactive
mind. A holdover from an earlier step in Man's evolution, the
xii
reactive mind possesses vigor and command power on a cellular
level. It does not "remember"; it records and uses the recordings
only to produce action. It does not "think"; it selects recordings
and impinges them upon the "conscious" mind and the body without
the knowledge or consent of the individual. The only information
the individual has of such action is his occasional perception that
he is not acting rationally about one thing or another and cannot
understand why. There is no Censor.
The reactive mind operates exclusively on physical pain and painful
emotion. It is not capable of differentiative thought but acts on
the stimulus-response basis. This is the principle on which the
animal mind functions. It does not receive its recordings as memory
or experience but only as forces to be reactivated. It receives its
recordings as cellular engrams when the "conscious" mind is
"unconscious."
In a drugged state, when anaesthetized as in an operation, when
rendered "unconscious" by injury or illness, the individual yet
has his reactive mind in full operation. He may not be "aware" of
what has taken place, but, as dianetics has discovered and can
prove, everything which happened to him in the interval of
"unconsciousness" was fully and completely recorded. This
information is unappraised by his conscious mind, neither evaluated
nor reasoned. It can, at any future date, become reactivated
by similar circumstances observed by the awake and conscious
individual. When any such recording, an engram, becomes
reactivated, it has command power. It shuts down the conscious mind
to greater or lesser degree, takes over the motor controls of the
body and causes behavior and action to which the conscious mind,
the individual himself, would never consent. He is, nevertheless,
handled like a marionette by his engrams.
The antagonistic forces of the exterior environment thus become
entered into the individual himself without the knowledge or
consent of the individual. And there
xiii
they create an interior world of force which exerts itself not only
against the exterior world but against the individual himself.
Aberration is caused by what has been done to not done by the
individual.
Man has unwittingly long aided the reactive mind by supposing
that a person, when "unconscious" from drugs, illness, injury or
anaesthetic, had no recording ability. This permits an enormous
amount of data to enter into the reactive bank since none have been
careful to maintain silence around an "unconscious" person. The
invention of language and the entrance of language into the engram
bank of the reactive mind seriously complicates the mechanistic
reactions. The engrams containing language impinge themselves upon
the conscious mind as commands. Engrams then contain command value
much higher than any in the exterior world. Thought is directed
and motivated by the irrational engrams. Thought processes are
disturbed not only by these engramic commands but also by the fact
that the reactive mind reduces, by regenerating unconsciousness,
the actual ability to think. Few people possess, because of this,
more than 10% of their potential awareness.
The entire physical pain and painful emotion of a lifetime, whether
the individual "knows" about it or not, is contained, recorded, in
the engram bank. Nothing is forgotten. And all physical pain and
painful emotion, no matter how the individual may think he has
handled it, is capable of re-inflicting itself upon him from this
hidden level, unless that pain is removed by dianetic therapy.
The engram and only the engram causes aberration and psycho-somatic
illness.
Dianetic therapy may be briefly stated. Dianetics deletes all the
pain from a lifetime. When this pain is erased in the engram bank
and refiled as memory and experience in the memory banks, all
aberrations and psycho-somatic illnesses vanish, the dynamics are
entirely rehabilitated and the physical and mental being
regenerate.
xiv
Dianetics leaves an individual full memory but without pain.
Exhaustive tests have demonstrated that hidden pain is not a
necessity but is invariably and always a liability to the health,
skill, happiness and survival potential of the individual. It has
no survival value.
The method which is used to refile pain is another discovery. Man
has unknowingly possessed another process of remembering of which
he has not been cognizant. Here and there a few have known about
it and used it without realizing what they did or that they did
something which Man as a whole did not know could be done. This
process is returning. Wide awake and without drugs an individual
can return to any period of his entire life providing his passage
is not blocked by engrams. Dianetics developed techniques for
circumventing these blocks and reducing them from the status of
Powerful Unknown to useful memory.
The technique of therapy is done in what is called a dianetic
reverie. The individual undergoing this process sits or lies in a
quiet room accompanied by a friend or professional therapist who
acts as auditor. The auditor directs the attention of the patient
to the patient's self and then begins to place the patient in
various periods of the patient's life merely by telling him to
go there rather than remember.
All therapy is done, not by remembering or associating, but by
travel on the time track. Every human being has a time track. It
begins with life and it ends with death. It is a sequence of events
complete from portal to portal as recorded.
The conscious mind, in dianetics, is called by the somewhat more
precise term of analytical mind. The analytical mind consists of
the "I" (the center of awareness), all computational ability of the
individual, and the standard memory banks which are filled with all
past perceptions of the individual, awake or normally asleep
xv
(all material which is not engramic). No data are missing from
these standard banks, all are there, barring physical organic
defects, in full motion, color, sound, tactile, smell and all other
senses. The "I" may not be able to reach his standard banks because
of reactive data which bar portions of the standard banks from the
view of "I."
Cleared, "I" is able to reach all moments of his lifetime without
exertion or discomfort and perceive all he has ever sensed,
recalling them in full motion, color, sound, tone and other senses.
The completeness and profusion of data in the standard banks is a
discovery of dianetics, and the significance of such recalls is yet
another discovery.
The auditor directs the travel of "I" along the patient's time
track. The patient knows everything which is taking place, is in
full control of himself, and is able to bring himself to the
present whenever he likes. No hypnotism or other means are used.
Man may not have known he could do this but it is simple.
The auditor, with precision methods, recovers data from the
earliest "unconscious" moments of the patient's life, such
"unconsciousness" being understood to be caused by shock or pain,
not mere unawareness. The patient thus contacts the cellular level
engrams. Returned to them and progressed through them by the
auditor, the patient re-experiences these moments a few times, when
they are then erased and refiled automatically as standard memory.
So far as the auditor and the patient can discover, the entire
incident has now vanished and does not exist. If they searched
carefully in the standard banks they would find it again but
refiled as "Once aberrative, do not permit as such into computer."
Late areas of "unconsciousness" are impenetrable until early ones
are erased.
The amount of discomfort experienced by the patient is minor. He is
repelled mainly by engramic commands which variously dictate
emotion and reaction.
xvi
In a release, the case is not progressed to the point of complete
recall. In a clear, fill memory exists throughout the lifetime,
with the additional bonus that he has photographic recall in color,
motion, sound, etc., as well as optimum computational ability.
The psycho-somatic illnesses of the release are reduced,
ordinarily, to a level where they do not thereafter trouble him. In
a clear, psycho-somatic illness has become non-existent and will
not return since its actual source is nullified permanently.
The dianetic release is comparable to a current normal or above.
The dianetic clear is to a current normal individual as the current
normal is to the severely insane.
Dianetics elucidates various problems with its many discoveries,
its axioms, its organization and its technique. In the progress of
its development many astonishing data were thrust upon it, for when
one deals with natural laws and measurable actualities which
produce specific and invariable results, one must accept what
Nature holds, not what is pleasing or desired. When one deals with
facts rather than theories and gazes for the first time upon the
mechanisms of human action several things confound him, much as the
flutterings of the heart did Harvey or the actions of yeasts did
Pasteur. The blood did not circulate because Harvey said it could
nor yet because he said it did. It circulated and had been
circulating for eons; Harvey was clever and observant enough to
find it; and this was much the case with Pasteur and other
explorers of the hitherto unknown or unconfirmed. In dianetics the
fact that the analytical mind was inherently perfect and remained
structurally capable of restoration to full operation was not the
least of the data found. That man was good, as established by
exacting research, was no great surprise, but that an unaberrated
individual was vigorously repelled by evil and yet gained enormous
strength was astonishing since aberration had been so long
incorrectly supposed to be
xvii
the root of strength and ambition according to authorities since
the time of Plato. That a man contained a mechanism which recorded
with diabolical accuracy when the man was observably and by all
presumable tests "unconscious" was newsworthy and surprising. To
the layman the relationship of prenatal life to mental function has
not entirely been disregarded since for centuries beyond count
people were concerned with "prenatal influence." To the
psychiatrist, the psychologist and psycho-analyst, prenatal memory
had long been an accepted fact since "memories of the womb" were
agreed to influence the adult mind. But the prenatal aspect of the
mind came as an entire surprise to dianetics, an unwanted and at
the time unwelcome observation. Despite existing beliefs - which
are not scientific facts - that the foetus had memory, the
psychiatrist and other workers believed as well that memory could
not exist in a human being until myelin sheathing was formed around
the nerves. This was as confusing to dianetics as it was to
psychiatry. After much work over some years the exact influence
prenatal life had on the later mind was established by dianetics
with accuracy. There will be those who, uninformed, will say that
dianetics "accepts and believes in" prenatal memory. Completely
aside from the fact that an exact science does not "believe" but
establishes and proves facts, dianetics emphatically does nor
believe in "prenatal memory." Dianetics had to invade cytology and
biology and form many conclusions by research; it had to locate and
establish both the reactive mind and the hidden engram banks never
before known before it came upon "prenatal" problems. It had been
discovered that the engram recording was probably done on the
cellular level, that the engram bank was contained in the cells. It
was then discovered that the cells, reproducing from one generation
to the next, within the organism, apparently carried with them
their own memory
xviii
banks. The cells are the first echelon of structure, the basic
building blocks. They built the analytical mind. They operate, as
the whip, the reactive mind. Where one has human cells, one has
potential engrams. Human cells begin with the zygote, proceed in
development with the embryo, become the foetus and finally the
infant. Each stage of this growth is capable of reaction. Each
stage in the growth of the colony of cells finds them fully cells,
capable of recording engrams. In dianetics "prenatal memory" is not
considered since the standard banks which will someday serve the
completed analyzer in the infant, child and man are not themselves
complete. There is neither "memory" or "experience" before the
nerves are sheathed as far as dianetic therapy is concerned. But
dianetic therapy is concerned with engrams, not memories, with
recordings, not experience, and wherever there are human cells,
engrams are demonstrably possible and, when physical pain was
present, engrams can be demonstrated to have been created. The
engram is a recording like the ripples in the groove of a
phonograph record: it is a complete recording of everything which
occurred during the period of pain. Dianetics can locate, with its
techniques, any engram which the cells have hidden, and in therapy
the patient will often discover himself to be upon the prenatal
cellular time track. There he will locate engrams and he goes there
only because engrams exist there. Birth is an engram and is
recovered by dianetics as a recording, not as a memory. By return
and the cellular extension of the time track, zygote pain storage
can be and is recovered. It is not memory. It impinged upon the
analytical mind and it obstructed the standard banks where memory
is stored. This is a very great difference from prenatal memory.
Dianetics recovers prenatal engrams and finds them responsible for
much aberration and discovers that any longing for the womb is not
present in any patient
xix
but that engrams sometimes dictate a return to it, as in some
regressive psychoses which then attempt to remake the body into a
foetus.
This matter of prenatal life is discussed here at length in this
synopsis to give the reader a perspective on the subject. We are
dealing here with an exact science, precision axioms and new skills
of application. By them we gain a command over aberration and
psycho-somatic ills and with them we take an evolutionary step in
the development of Man which places him yet another stage above his
distant cousins of the animal kingdom.
xx
INTRODUCTION
The progress of Mankind from the period of savagery to the present
is marked with milestones. Conventional history books would have
you believe that these milestones are battle monuments or the tombs
of great men. Yet there are more important markers of Man's
progress - and these are New Ideas. Whenever a New Idea has been
created, Man's chances for survival have been improved and the
arduousness of his journey away from animalhood is lessened.
There have been numerous New Ideas in the past. To name a few of
the more obvious, consider the invention of the wheel, the control
of fire, the development of mathematics or even the newest one -
the discovery of the means of atomic fission. Every one of these
ideas has altered the progress of Mankind - sometimes temporarily
for the worse, but ultimately for Man's betterment.
In my opinion DIANETICS is worthy of being called a New Idea, and
is destined to take its place alongside of these other milestones
of progress. It might even be considered to be more important than
any of these, for it is a science which for the first time gives us
an understanding of the tool with which these other inventions were
created - the human mind.
In the creation of any New Idea, there is one step which is highly
important. It is so obvious as to be frequently overlooked. This
step, the sine qua non of any idea, consists in examining the basic
assumptions of the subject and determining whether or not they need
to be revised. The creator of a New Idea asks, "What would
xxi
happen if I assume that this belief which everyone has had for
centuries isn't necessarily so?"
The primitive man who invented the wheel did just that. His fellows
assumed that, when one wanted to transport an object, it had to be
carried or dragged along the ground. The inventor changed the
assumption - and the wheel was born.
Again, so long as man assumed that fire was dangerous and should be
avoided, he made no attempt to control it. When some brave soul
re-examined this assumption and decided that fire, although it
entailed some hazards, might offer certain advantages to the
dwellers in his cave, he took the first step toward the creation of
the science of chemistry and nuclear physics.
So it is with DIANETICS. In it there has been a reexamination and a
re-evaluation of numerous basic assumptions regarding the
functioning of the human mind.
The originator has had both the temerity and the wisdom to refuse
to accept all of the old assumptions.
For example, we have all assumed that when a person is unconscious,
he is unconscious - that's all there is to it. The originator of
dianetics was critical of that assumption and, as a result, was
able to demonstrate that the mind is never totally unconscious. The
assumption that nobody can remember anything which happened to him
before the age of three or four also came in for consideration -
and the result of these and other reassessments was DIANETICS.
Yes, basic assumptions are important. They are especially important
when they get such a strangle-hold on our ways of thinking that we
can't get away from them. For hundreds of years it was assumed that
the sun and the planets revolved around the earth; it was not until
the assumption was tested and found to be faulty that modern
astronomy was able to develop. For hundreds of years a certain
group of philosophers and religionists have assumed that Man is
fundamentally evil; now comes
xxii
DIANETICS to test this assumption. It will be highly interesting to
see if there will be any change in our interpersonal relationships
as a result of a new, different basic assumption.
The basic assumption is also a long-lived brute, hard to kill.
Perhaps one reason for his hardiness is that he feeds upon
Authority. There is a vast difference between Authority and an
authority. An authority might be described as a man who propounds a
basic assumption which is valid for his time and applicable to the
state of knowledge at the time it was propounded and has had his
ideas accepted. No doubt this man would not be at all averse to
altering his assumptions if a change in knowledge warranted it. His
protagonists and disciples don't seem to act this way, however;
before very long they begin to treat his idea as if it were some
sort of divine revelation - and the man now becomes an Authority.
The words of an Authority carry much more weight than do those of a
mere authority. They are sacrosanct, holy, not to be questioned;
the words themselves are Authority. And, in time, another change
occurs; Authority becomes confused with knowledge and is accepted
blindly, unthinkingly. A man can even become an authority himself
by knowing a great deal about the things Authority said.
Perhaps the epitome of this sort of foolishness is exemplified in
the attitude of numerous doctors toward the work of Harvey, the man
who first described the circulation of the blood. Harvey's views,
even though they were well founded in observation and
experimentation, ran counter to those held by his predecessor,
Galen, who was the great medical Authority of that day. So great
was the controversy that some men took the stand, "Male errare cum
Galen qualm veritam Harveii amplecti." ("I would rather err with
Galen than accept Harvey's truth.")
Now, respect for authority is all very well. There are certain
brands of authority which we may tacitly agree to
xxiii
accept, such as customs and morals; there are other brands of
authority which we may vote to accept, such as our laws. But we
should be wary of self-constituted authority, especially the type I
have called Authority. We should feel free to examine the basic
assumptions of any body of knowledge we wish, without fear of
committing lese majeste. If any system of thought is going to
wither in the light of investigation, it does not deserve the title
of Authority.
The originator of DIANETICS has, without the slightest effort
towards being iconoclastic, succeeded in dislodging a good many of
our false gods of Authority from their pedestals. perhaps the job
wasn't too difficult - so many of the idols who bear that name have
feet of the poorest sort of clay. Those authorities whose work was
sound and valid are still in their proper places in the temple of
Knowledge, and will no doubt continue to remain.
In early 1948 I first heard about DIANETICS from a colleague. I
studied it, getting reports from others who were familiar with
aspects of the therapy. Shortly thereafter I corresponded with the
originator of dianetics, which resulted in my traveling East to
study with him, and finally, in my experiencing personal dianetic
therapy under his supervision.
For the past year I have been practicing DIANETICS on my patients,
on my friends, and on my family. For the first time in my life, I'm
satisfied that there is a method by which many questions, hitherto
unanswerable, can be answered with definiteness and proven correct.
Correct, insofar as the improved health of the patient is
concerned. Correct, insofar as his well-being has been implemented
by a feeling of security. Correct, insofar as his approach to
living has become more advanced, interesting, and productive of
growth. To me this correctness is meaningful and worthy of
acceptance.
xxiv
Let me state that this is my opinion. I do not urge you to accept
that opinion; I would much prefer that you make your own tests of
DIANETICS, carefully, impartially, and arrive at your own opinion.
This statement is directed towards doctors in general,
psychiatrists, psychologists, psycho-analysts, etc., as well as the
layman.
DIANETICS is a science. It has certain laws, and by following these
laws we can predict the results which will be obtained under given
circumstances. These laws have no exceptions - or at least, no
exceptions have been found. In this respect the laws of DIANETICS
are like the law of gravity: if you suspend a mass heavier than air
above the ground and then remove the support, it will fall. It
won't fall seventy per cent of the time or eighty per cent of the
time; it will always fall. And if it doesn't fall, we are justified
in re-examining the law.
The discovery that engrams (the ability of the cell to record a
lasting trace of an event) are recorded on a cellular level when
the higher sphere of the mind is "unconscious," insensitive, and
not recording (as, for instance, in severe injury, delirium, or
surgical anaesthesia) and that the recorded engrams then received
are highly reactive, portends a new trend for psychological and
psychiatric thought and practice. The engram recorded during a
period of "unconsciousness" is susceptible to reactivation during
future periods of mental anguish. This fact has been found to be a
single, direct source of aberrated behavior. Its discovery and
isolation with the mechanics of its operation within the psyche,
bring new and brilliant light to hitherto obscure phenomena of the
mind and its behavior. The engram, hidden beneath unexplored layers
of "unconsciousness," possesses a power of command not unlike that
of a hidden and unsuspected monitor upon the conscious mind; it
produces effects which are comparable to those of a post-hypnotic
suggestion, though in a far more
xxv
insidious and involved manner and with greater and more tragic
effect.
The technique of DIANETIC therapy is basically simple and can be
understood and applied to each other by any two reasonably
intelligent people after a brief study of this volume, which is the
operating manual for therapy. (Dianetic psychiatric treatment of
severe derangements is also delineated.) No previous background in
psycho-analysis or psychology is necessary. The therapeutic
technique offered in DIANETICS is independent of hypnotism or
narco-synthesis.
1. DIANETICS will help you to eliminate any psychosomatic illness
from which you may suffer.
2. DIANETICS will help you achieve at least one-third more than
present capacity for work and happiness.
3. DIANETICS offers to the medical profession, to psychiatrists,
to psycho-analysts, to all who are interested in the advancement
of their fellow men, a new theory and technique which makes
accessible for therapy diseases and symptoms which hitherto
were unusually complex and obscure.
4. DIANETICS is the most advanced and most clearly presented method
of psycho-therapy and self-improvement ever discovered.
At this point, I step out - the job ahead is yours.
J. A. Winter, M. D.
xxvi
HOW TO READ THIS BOOK
Dianetics is an adventure. It is an exploration into Terra
Incognita, the human mind, that vast and hitherto unknown realm
half an inch back of our foreheads.
The discoveries and developments which made the formulation of
dianetics possible occupied many years of exact research and
careful testing. This was exploration, it was also consolidation.
The trail is blazed, the routes are sufficiently mapped for you to
voyage in safety into your own mind and recover there your full
inherent potential, which is not, we now know, low but very, very
high. As you progress in therapy the adventure is yours to know why
you did what you did when you did it, to know what caused those
Dark and Unknown Fears which came in nightmares as a child, to know
where your moments of pain and pleasure lay. There is much which an
individual does not know about himself, about his parents, about
his "motives." Some of the things you will find may astonish you,
for the most important data of your life may be not memory but
engrams in the hidden depths of your mind, not articulate but only
destructive.
You will find many reasons why you "cannot get well" and you will
know at length, when you find the dictating lines in the engrams,
how amusing those reasons are, especially to you.
Dianetics is no solemn adventure. For all that it has to do with
suffering and loss, its end is always laughter, so foolish, so
misinterpreted were the things which caused the woe.
xxvii
Your first voyage into your own Terra Incognita will be through the
pages of this book. You will find as you read that many things "you
always knew were so" are articulated here. You will be gratified to
know that you held not opinions but scientific facts in many of
your concepts of existence. You will find, too, many data that have
long been known by all, and you will possibly consider them far
from news and be prone to underevaluate them: be assured that
underevaluation of these facts kept them from being valuable, no
matter how long they were known, for a fact is never important
without a proper evaluation of it and its precise relationship to
other facts. You are following here a vast network of facts which,
reaching out, can be seen to embrace the whole field of Man in all
his works. Fortunately you do not have to concern yourself with
following far any one of these lines until you are done. And then
these horizons will stretch wide enough to satisfy anyone.
Dianetics is a large subject, but that is only because Man is
himself a large subject. The science of his thought cannot but
embrace all his actions. By careful compartmenting and relating of
data, the field has been kept narrow enough to be easily followed.
Mostly this handbook will tell you, without any specific mention,
about yourself and your family and friends, for you will meet them
here and know them.
This volume has made no effort to use resounding or thunderous
phrases, frowning polysyllables or professorial detachment. When
one is delivering answers which are simple, he need not make the
communication any more difficult than is necessary to convey the
ideas. "Basic language" has been used, much of the nomenclature is
colloquial; the pedantic has not only not been employed, it has
also been ignored. This volume communicates to several strata of
life and professions; the
xxviii
favorite nomenclatures of none have been observed since such a
usage would impede the understanding of others. And so bear with
us, psychiatrist, when your structure is not used, for we have no
need for structure here, and bear with us, doctor, when we call
a cold a cold and not a catarrhal disorder of the respiratory
tract. For this is, essentially, engineering and these
engineers are liable to say anything. And "scholar," you would
not enjoy being burdened with the summation signs and the
Lorentz-Fitzgerald-Einstein equations, so we shall not burden
the less puristic reader with scientifically impossible
Hegelian grammar which insists that absolutes exist in fact.
The plan of the book might be represented as a cone which starts
with simplicity and descends into wider application. This book
follows, more or less, the actual steps of the development of
dianetics. First there was the dynamic principle of existence,
then its meaning, then the source of aberration, and finally the
application of all as therapy and the techniques of therapy. You
won't find any of this very difficult. It was the originator who
had the difficulty. You should have seen the first equations and
postulates of dianetics! As research progressed and as the field
developed, dianetics began to simplify. That is a fair guarantee
that one is on a straight trail of science. Only things which are
poorly known become more complex the longer one works upon them.
It is suggested that you read straight on through. By the time you
get into the appendix, you should have an excellent command of
the subject. The book is arranged that way. Every fact related to
dianetic therapy is stated in several ways and is introduced again
and again. In this way, the important facts have been pointed up to
your attention. When you have finished the book you can come back
to the beginning and look through it and study what you think you
need to know.
xxix
Almost all the basic philosophy and certainly all the derivations
of the master subject of dianetics were excluded here, partly
because this volume had to stay under half a million words and
partly because they belong in a separate text where they can
receive full justice. Nevertheless, you have the scope of the
science with this volume in addition to therapy itself.
You are beginning an adventure. Treat it as an adventure. And may
you never be the same again.
xxx
Book One
THE GOAL OF MAN
IMPORTANT NOTE
In studying Dianetics be very, very certain you never go past a
word you do not fully understand.
The only reason a person gives up a study or becomes confused or
unable to learn is that he or she has gone past a word or phrase
that was not understood.
If the material becomes confusing or you can't seem to grasp it,
there will be a word just earlier that you have not understood.
Don't go any further, but go back to BEFORE you got into trouble,
find the misunderstood word and get it defined.
CHAPTER I
The Scope of Dianetics
A science of mind is a goal which has engrossed thousands of
generations of Man. Armies, dynasties and whole civilizations have
perished for the lack of it. Rome went to dust for the want of it.
China swims in blood for the need of it; and down in the arsenal is
an atom bomb, its hopeful nose full-armed in ignorance of it.
No quest has been more relentlessly pursued or has been more
violent. No primitive tribe, no matter how ignorant, has failed to
recognize the problem as a problem, nor has it failed to bring
forth at least an attempted formulation. Today one finds the
aborigine of Australia substituting for a science of mind a "magic
healing crystal." The Shaman of British Guiana makes shift for
actual mental laws with his monotonous song and consecrated cigar.
The throbbing drum of the Goldi medicine man serves in the stead of
an adequate technique to alleviate the lack of serenity in
patients.
The enlightened and golden age of Greece yet had but superstition
in its principal sanatoria for mental ills, the Aesculapian temple.
The most the Roman could do for peace of mind for the sick was to
appeal to the penates, the household divinities, or sacrifice to
Febris, goddess of fevers. And an English king, centuries after,
could have been found in the hands of exorcists who sought to cure
his deliriums by driving the demons from him.
From the most ancient times to the present, in the crudest
primitive tribe or the most magnificently ornamented civilization,
Man has found himself in a state of awed helplessness when
confronted by the phenomena of strange illnesses or aberrations.
His desperation, in his
3
efforts to treat the individual, has been but slightly altered
during his entire history, and until this twentieth century passed
mid-term, the percentages of his alleviations, in terms of
individual mental derangements, compared evenly with the successes
of the shamans confronted with the same problems. According to a
modern writer, the single advance of psycho-therapy was clean
quarters for the madman. In terms of brutality in treatment of the
insane, the methods of the shaman or Bedlam have been far exceeded
by the "civilized" techniques of destroying nerve tissues with the
violence of shock and surgery, treatments which were not warranted
by the results obtained and which would not have been tolerated in
the meanest primitive society, since they reduce the victim to mere
zombie-ism, destroying most of his personality and ambition and
leaving him nothing more than a manageable animal. Far from an
indictment of the practices of the "neurosurgeon" and the ice-pick
which he thrusts and twists into insane minds, they are brought
forth only to demonstrate the depths of desperation man can reach
when confronted with the seemingly unsolvable problem of deranged
minds.
In the larger sphere of societies and nations, the lack of such a
science of mind was never more evident; for the physical sciences,
advancing thoughtlessly far in advance of man's ability to
understand man, have armed him with terrible and thorough weapons
which await only another outburst of the social insanity of war.
These problems are not mild ones; they lie across every man's path;
they wait in company with his future. As long as Man has recognized
that his chief superiority over the animal kingdom was a thinking
mind, so long as he understood that his mind alone was his weapon,
he has searched and pondered and postulated in efforts to find a
solution.
Like a jig-saw puzzle spilled by a careless hand, the equations
which would lead to a science of the mind and,
4
above that, to a master science of the universe, were stirred round
and round. Sometimes two fragments would be united; sometimes, as
in the case of the golden age of Greece, a whole section would be
built. Philosopher, shaman, medicine man, mathematician: each
looked at the pieces. Some saw they must all belong to different
puzzles. Some thought they all belonged to the same puzzle. Some
said there were really six puzzles in it, some said two. And the
wars went on and the societies sickened or were dispersed, and
learned tomes were written about ever-increasing hordes of madmen.
With the methods of Bacon, with the mathematics of Newton, the
physical sciences went on, consolidating and advancing their
frontiers. And, like a derelict battalion, careless of how many
allied ranks it exposed to destruction by the enemy, studies of the
mind lagged behind.
But after all, there are just so many pieces in any puzzle. Before
and after Francis Bacon, Herbert Spencer and a very few more, many
of the small sections had been put together, many honest facts had
been observed.
To adventure into the thousands of variables of which that puzzle
was composed, one had only to know right from wrong, true from
false, and use all Man and Nature as his test tube.
Of what must a science of mind be composed?
1. An answer to the goal of thought.
2. A single source of all insanities, psychoses, neuroses,
compulsions, repressions and social derangements.
3. Invariant scientific evidence as to the basic nature and
functional background of the human mind.
4. Techniques, the art of application, by which the discovered
single source could be invariably cured, ruling out, of course, the
insanities of malformed, deleted or pathologically injured brains
or nervous systems and, particularly, iatrogenic psychoses (those
caused by doctors and involving the destruction of the living brain
itself).
5
5. Methods of prevention of mental derangement.
6. The cause and cure of all psycho-somatic ills, which number,
some say, 70% of Man's listed ailments.
Such a science would exceed the severest terms previously laid down
for it in any age, but any computation on the subject should
discover that a science of mind ought to be able to be and do just
these things.
A science of the mind, if it were truly worthy of that name, would
have to rank, in experimental precision, with physics and
chemistry. There could be no "special cases" to its laws. There
could be no recourse to Authority. The atom bomb bursts whether
Einstein gives it permission or not. Laws native to Nature regulate
the bursting of that bomb. Technicians, applying techniques derived
from discovered natural laws, can make one or a million atom bombs,
all alike.
After the body of axioms and technique was organized and working as
a science of mind, in rank with the physical sciences, it would be
found to have points of agreement with almost every school of
thought about thought which had ever existed. This is again a
virtue and not a fault.
Simple though it is, dianetics does and is these things:
1. It is an organized science of thought built on definite axioms:
statements of natural laws on the order of those of the physical
sciences.
2. It contains a therapeutic technique with which can be treated
all inorganic mental ills and all organic psychosomatic ills, with
assurance of complete cure in unselected cases.
3. It produces a condition of ability and rationality for Man well
in advance of the current norm, enhancing rather than destroying
his vigor and personality.
4. Dianetics gives a complete insight into the full potentialities
of the mind, discovering them to be well in excess of past
suppression.
6
5. The basic nature of man is discovered in dianetics rather than
hazarded or postulated, since that basic nature can be brought into
action in any individual completely. And that basic nature is
discovered to be good.
6. The single source of mental derangement is discovered and
demonstrated, on a clinical or laboratory basis, by dianetics.
7. The extent, storage capacity and recallability of the human
memory is finally established by dianetics.
8. The full recording abilities of the mind are discovered by
dianetics with the conclusion that they are quite dissimilar to
former suppositions.
9. Dianetics brings forth the non-germ theory of disease,
complementing bio-chemistry and Pasteur's work on the germ theory
to embrace the field.
10. With dianetics ends the "necessity" of destroying the brain by
shock or surgery to effect "tractability" in mental patients and
"adjust" them.
11. A workable explanation of the physiological effects of drugs
and endocrine substances exists in dianetics and many problems
posed by endocrinology are answered.
12. Various educational, sociological, political, military, and
other human studies are enhanced by dianetics.
13. The field of cytology is aided by dianetics, as well as other
fields of research.
This, then, is a skeletal sketch of what would be the scope of a
science of mind and of what is the scope of dianetics.
7
CHAPTER II
The Clear
Dianetically, the optimum individual is called the clear. One will
hear much of that word, both as a noun and a verb, in this volume,
so it is well to spend time here at the outset setting forth
exactly what can be called a clear, the goal of dianetic therapy.
A clear can be tested for any and all psychoses, neuroses,
compulsions and repressions (all aberrations) and can be examined
for any autogenic (self-generated) diseases referred to as
psycho-somatic ills. These tests confirm the clear to be entirely
without such ills or aberrations. Additional tests of his
intelligence indicate it to be high above the current norm.
Observation of his activity demonstrates that he pursues existence
with vigor and satisfaction.
Further, these results can be obtained on a comparative basis. A
neurotic individual, possessed also of psychosomatic ills, can be
tested for those aberrations and illnesses, demonstrating that they
exist. He can then be given dianetic therapy to the end of clearing
these neuroses and ills. Finally, he can be examined, with the
above results. This, in passing, is an experiment which has been
performed many times with invariable results. It is a matter of
laboratory test that all individuals who have organically complete
nervous systems respond in this fashion to dianetic clearing.
Further, the clear possesses attributes, fundamental and inherent
but not always available in an uncleared state, which have not been
suspected of Man and are not included in past discussions of his
abilities and behavior.
8
First there is the matter of perceptions. Even so-called normal
people do not always see in full color, hear in full tone, or sense
at the optimum with their organs of smell, taste, tactile and
organic sensation.
These are the main lines of communication to the finite world which
most people recognize as reality. It is an interesting commentary
that while past observers felt that the facing of reality was an
absolute necessity if the aberrated individual wished to be sane,
no definition of how this was to be done was set forth. To face
reality in the present one would certainly have to be able to sense
it along those channels of communication most commonly used by man
in his affairs.
Any one of Man's perceptions can be aberrated by psychic
derangements which refuse to permit the received sensations to be
realized by the analytical portion of the individual's mind. In
other words, while there may be nothing wrong with the mechanisms
of color reception, circuits can exist in the mind which delete
color before the consciousness is permitted to see the object.
Color blindness can be discovered to be relative or in degrees in
such a way that colors appear to be less brilliant, dull or, at the
maximum, entirely absent. Anyone is acquainted with persons to whom
"loud" colors are detestable and with persons who find them
insufficiently "loud" to notice. This varying degree of color
blindness has not been recognized as a psychic factor but has been
nebulously assumed to be some sort of a condition of mind when it
was noticed at all.
There are those persons to whom noises are quite disturbing, to
whom, for instance, the insistent whine of a violin is very like
having a brace and bit applied to the eardrum; and there are those
to whom fifty violins, played loudly, would be soothing; and there
are those who, in the presence of a violin, express disinterest and
boredom; and, again, there are persons to whom the sound of a
violin, no matter if it be playing the most
9
intricate melody, is a monotone. These differences of sonic
(hearing) perception have, like color and other visual errors, been
attributed to inherent nature or organic deficiency or assigned no
place at all.
In a like manner, from person to person, smells, tactile
sensations, organic perceptions, pain and gravity, vary widely and
wildly. A cursory check around amongst his friends will demonstrate
to a man that there exist enormous differences of perception of
identical stimuli. One smells a turkey in the oven as wonderful,
one smells it with indifference, another may not smell it at all.
And somebody else may maintain that roasting turkey smells exactly
like hair oil - to be extreme.
Until we obtain clears it remains obscure why such differences
should exist. For in the largest measure, such wild quality and
quantity of perception is due to aberration. Because of pleasurable
experiences in the past and inherent sensitivity, there will be
some difference amongst clears, and a clear response should not be
assumed automatically to be a standardized, adjusted middle ground,
that pallid and obnoxious goal of past doctrines. The clear gets a
maximum response compatible with his own desire for the response.
Burning cordite still smells dangerous to him, but it does not make
him ill. Roasting turkey smells good to him if he is hungry and
likes turkey, at which time it smells very, very good. Violins play
melodies, not monotones, bring no pain and are enjoyed to a fine
full limit if the clear likes violins as a matter of taste - if he
doesn't, he likes kettledrums, saxophones or, indeed, suiting his
mood, no music at all.
In other words, there are two variables at work. One, the wildest,
is the variable caused by aberrations. The other, and quite
rational and understandable, is caused by the personality.
Thus the perceptions of an aberree* (non-cleared individual)
* Aberree is a neologism meaning an aberrated person.
10
vary greatly from those of the cleared (unaberrated) individual.
Now there are the differences of the actual organs of perception
and the errors occasioned by these. Some of these errors, a
minimum, are organic: punctured eardrums are not competent
sound-recording mechanisms. The majority of perceptic (sense
message) errors in the organic sphere are caused by psycho-somatic
errors.
Glasses are seen on noses everywhere around, even on children. The
majority of these spectacles are perched on the face in an effort
to correct a condition which the body itself is fighting to
uncorrect again. Eyesight, when the stage of glasses is entered
(not because of glasses), is deteriorating on the psycho-somatic
principle. And this observation is about as irresponsible as a
statement that when apples fall out of trees they usually obey
gravity. One of the incidental things which happen to a clear is
that his eyesight, if it had been bad as an aberree, generally
improves markedly, and with some slight attention will recover
optimum perception in time. (Far from an optician's argument
against dianetics, this assures rather good business, for clears
have been known, at treatment's end, to have to buy, in rapid
succession, five pairs of glasses to compensate adjusting eyesight;
and many aberrees, cleared late in life, settle down ocularly at a
maximum a little under optimum.)
The eyesight was reduced in the aberree on an organic basis by his
aberrations so that the perceptic organ itself was reduced from
optimum operating function. With the removal of aberrations,
repeated tests have proven that the body makes a valiant effort to
reconstruct back to optimum.
Hearing, in addition to other perceptics, varies organically over a
wide range. Calcium deposits, for instance, can make the ears
"ring" incessantly. The removal of aberrations permits the body to
readjust toward its reachable optimum, the calcium deposit
disappears, and
11
the ears stop ringing. But far and beyond this very specific case,
there are great differences in hearing on the organic basis.
Organically as well as aberrationally, hearing can become
remarkably extended or closely inhibited so that one person may
hear footsteps a block away as a normal activity and another would
not hear a bass drum thundering on the porch.
That the various perceptions differ widely from individual to
individual on an aberrational and psycho-somatic basis is the least
of the discoveries outlined here. Ability to recall is far more
fantastic in its variation from person to person.
An entirely new recall process which was inherent in the mind but
which had not been noticed came to light in the process of
observing clears and aberrees. This recall process is possible in
only a small proportion of aberrees in its fullest sense. It is
standard, however, in a clear. Naturally, no intimation is made
here that the scholars of past ages have been unobservant. We are
dealing here with an entirely new and hitherto non-existent object
of inspection, the clear. What a clear can do easily, quite a few
people have, from time to time, been partially able to do in the
past.
An inherent, not a taught, ability of the remembering mechanisms of
the mind can be termed, as a technical word of dianetics,
returning. It is used in its dictionary sense, with the addition of
the fact that the mind has it as a normal remembering function, as
follows: the person can "send" a portion of his mind to a past
period on either a mental or combined mental and physical basis and
can re-experience incidents which have taken place in his past in
the same fashion and with the same sensations as before. Once upon
a time an art known as hypnotism used what was called "regression"
on hypnotized subjects, the hypnotist sending the subject back, in
one of two ways, to incidents in his past. This was done with
trance techniques, drugs and considerable technology.
12
The hypnotic subject could be sent back to a moment "entirely" so
that he gave every appearance of being the age to which he was
returned with only the apparent faculties and recollections he had
at that moment: this was called "revivification" (re-living).
"Regression" was a technique by which part of the individual's self
remained in the present and part went back to the past. These
abilities of the mind were supposed native only in hypnotism and
were used only in hypnotic technique. The art is very old, tracing
back some thousands of years and existing today in Asia as it has
existed, apparently, from the dawn of time.
Returning is substituted for "regression" here because it is not a
comparable thing and because "regression," as a word, has some bad
meanings which would interrupt its use. Reliving is substituted for
"revivification" in dianetics because, in dianetics, the principles
of hypnotism can be found explained and hypnotism is not used in
dianetic therapy, as will be explained later.
The mind, then, has another ability to remember. Part of the mind
can "return" even when a person is wide awake and re-experience
past incidents in full. If you want to test this, try it on several
people until one is discovered who does it easily. Wide awake he
can "return" to moments in his past. Until asked to do so he
probably will not know he has such an ability. If he had it, he
probably thought everybody could do it (the type of supposition
which has kept so much of this data from coming to light before).
He can go back to a time when he was swimming and swim with full
recall of hearing, sight, taste, smell, organic sensation, tactile,
etc.
A "learned" gentleman once spent some hours demonstrating to a
gathering that the recall of a smell as a sensation, for instance,
was quite impossible since "neurology had proven that the olfactory
nerves were not connected to the thalamus." Two people in the
gathering discovered this ability to return and despite this
evidence,
13
the learned gentleman continued the dispute that olfactory recall
was impossible. A check amongst the gathering on this faculty,
independent of returning, brought forth the fact that one-half of
those present remembered smell by smelling it again.
Returning is the full performance of imagery recall. The entire
memory is able to make the organ areas re-sense the stimuli in a
past incident. Partial recall is common, not common enough to be
normal, but certainly common enough to have merited considerable
study. For it again is a wide variable.
Perception of the present would be one method of facing reality.
But if one cannot face the reality of the past then, in some part,
he is not facing some portion of reality. And if it is ageed that
facing reality is desirable, then one would have to face
yesterday's reality as well if he were to be considered entirely
"sane" by contemporary definition. To "face yesterday" requires a
certain condition of recall to be available. One would have to be
able to remember. But how many ways are there of remembering?
First there is the return. That is new. It gives the advantage of
examining the moving pictures and other sense perceptions recorded
at the time of the event with all senses present. He can also
return to his past conclusions and imaginings. It is of
considerable aid in learning, in research, in ordinary living to be
able to be again at the place where the data desired was first
inspected.
Then there are the more usual recalls. Optimum recall is by the
return method of single or multiple senses, the individual himself
remaining in present time. In other words, some people, when they
think of a rose, see one, smell one, feel one. They see in full
color, vividly - with the "mind's eye" to use an old colloquialism.
They smell it vividly. And they can feel it even to the thorns.
They are thinking about roses by actually recalling a rose.
These people, thinking about a ship, would see a specific ship,
feel the motion of her if they thought of
14
being aboard her, smell the pine-tar or even less savory odors and
hear whatever sounds there were about her. They would see the ship
in full color motion and hear it in full tone audio.
These faculties vary widely in the aberree. Some, when told to
think of a rose, can merely visualize one. Some can smell one but
not see it. Some see it without color or in very pale color. When
told to think of a ship some aberrees only see a flat, colorless,
still picture such as a painting of a ship or the photograph of
one. Some perceive a vessel in motion without color but with sound.
Some hear the sound of a ship but fail to see any picture whatever.
Some merely think of a ship as a concept that ships exist and that
they know about them and fail to see, feel, hear, smell or
otherwise sense anything on a recall basis.
Some past observers have called this "imagery" but the term is so
inapplicable to sound and touch, organic sensation and pain that
recall is used uniformly as the technical dianetic term. The value
of recall in this business of living has occupied such scant
attention that the entire concept has never been formulated
previously. It is therefore detailed at some length here, as above.
It is quite simple to test recalls. If one will ask his fellows
what their abilities are, he will gain a remarkable idea of how
widely varied this ability is from individual to individual. Some
have this recall, some have that, some have none, but operate on
concepts of recall only. And remember, if you make a test on those
around you, that any perception is filed in the memory and
therefore has a recall which is to include pain, temperature,
rhythm, taste and weight with the above mentioned sight, sound,
tactile, and smell.
The dianetic names for these recalls are visio (sight), sonic
(sound), tactile (touch), olfactory (smell), rhythmic, kinesthetic
(weight and motion), somatic (pain), thermal (temperature) and
organic (internal sensations and, by new definition, emotion).
15
Then there is another set of mental activities which can be
summated under the headings of imagination and creative
imagination. Here again is abundant material for testing.
Imagination is the recombination of things one has sensed, thought
or intellectually computed into existence, which do not necessarily
have existence. This is the mind's method of envisioning desirable
goals or forecasting futures. Imagination is extremely valuable as
a part of essential solutions in any mental problem and in everyday
existence. That it is recombination in no sense deprives it of its
vast and wonderful complexity.
A clear uses imagination in its entirety. There is an imagination
impression for sight, smell, taste, sound - in short, for each one
of the possible perceptions. These are manufacturered impressions
on the basis of models in the memory banks combined by conceptual
ideas and construction. New physical structures, tomorrow in terms
of today, next year in terms of last year, pleasure to be gained,
deeds to be done, accidents to avoid, all these are imaginational
functions.
The clear has full color-visio, tone-sonic, tactile, olfactory,
rhythmic, kinesthetic, thermal and organic imagination in kind.
Asked to envision himself riding in a gilded coach and four, he
"sees" the equipage, moving, in full color, he "hears" all the
noises which should be present, he "smells" the smells he thinks
should be there, and he "feels" the upholstery, the motion, and the
presence in the coach of himself.
In addition to standard imagination there is creative imagination.
This is a very wide undimensional ability, quite variable from
individual to individual, possessed in enormous quantity by some.
It is included here, not as a portion of the operation of the mind
treated as a usual part of dianetics, but to isolate it as an
existing entity. In a clear who possessed creative imagination,
even if inhibited, as an aberree, it is present and demonstrable.
It is inherent. It can be aberrated only by prohibition of
16
its general practice, which is to say, by aberrating the
persistence in its application or encysting the whole mind. But
creative imagination, that possession by which works of art are
done, states builded and Man enriched, can be envisioned as a
special function, independent in operation and in no way dependent
for its existence upon an aberrated condition in the individual,
since the examination of its activity in and use by a clear
possessing adequately demonstrates its inherent character. It is
rarely absent in any individual.
Finally, there is the last but most important activity of the mind.
Man is to be regarded as a sentient being. His sentience depends
upon his ability to resolve problems by perceiving or creating and
understanding situations. This rationality is the primary, high
echelon function of that part of the mind which makes him a Man,
not just another animal. Remembering, perceiving, imagining, he
has the signal ability of resolving conclusions and of using
conclusions resolved to resolve further conclusions. This is
rational Man.
Rationality, as divorced from aberration, can be studied in a
cleared person only. The aberrations of the aberree give him the
appearance of irrationality. Though such irrationality may be given
the gentler names of "eccentricity" or "human error" or even
"personal idiosyncrasy," it is, nevertheless, irrationality. The
personality does not depend upon how irrationally a man may act. It
is not a personality trait, for instance, to drive while drunk and
kill a child on a crosswalk - or even to risk killing a child by
driving while drunk. Irrationality is simply that - the inability
to get right answers from data.
Now it is a curious thing that although "everybody knows" (and what
a horrible amount of misinformation that statement lets circulate)
it is "human to err," the sentient portion of the mind which
computes the answers to problems and which makes man Man is utterly
incapable of error.
This was a startling discovery when it was made, but it
17
need not have been. It could have been deduced some time before.
For it is quite simple and easy to understand. The actual computing
ability of Man is never in error even in a very severely aberrated
person. Observing the activity of such an aberrated person, one
might thoughtlessly suppose that that person's computations were
wrong. But that would be an observer error. Any person, aberrated
or clear, computes perfectly on the data stored and perceived.
Take any common calculating machine (and the mind is an
exceptionally magnificent instrument far, far superior to any
machine it will invent for ages to come) and put a problem on it
for solution. Multiply seven times one. It will answer, properly,
seven. Now multiply six times one but continue to hold down the
seven. Six times one is six but the answer you will get is
forty-two. Continue to hold down seven and put other problems on
the machine. They are wrong, not as problems, but as answers. Now
fix seven so that it stays down no matter what keys are touched and
try to give the machine away. Nobody will want it because,
obviously, the machine is crazy. It says ten times ten is seven
hundred. But is the calculating portion of the machine really wrong
or is it merely being fed the wrong data?
In the same way the human mind, being called upon to resolve
problems of a magnitude and with enough variables to confound any
mere calculating machine a thousand times an hour, is prey to
incorrect data. Incorrect data gets into the machine. The machine
gives wrong answers. Incorrect data enters the human memory banks,
the person reacts in an "abnormal manner." Essentially, then, the
problem of resolving aberration is the problem of finding a
"held-down seven." But of that much, much more, later. Right now we
have accomplished our immediate ends.
These are the various abilities and activities of the human mind in
its constant task of resolving and putting
18
into solution a multitude of problems. It perceives, it recalls or
returns, it imagines, it conceives and then resolves. Served by its
extensions - the perceptics and the memory banks and the
imaginations - the mind brings forth answers which are invariably
accurate, modified only by observation, education and viewpoint.
And the basic purposes of that mind and the basic nature of man, as
discoverable in the clear, are constructive and good, uniformly
constructive and uniformly good, the solutions modified only by
observation, education and viewpoint.
Man is good.
Take away his basic aberrations and with them go the evil of which
the Scholastic and the moralist were so fond. The only detachable
portion of him is the "evil" portion. And when it is detached, his
personality and vigor intensify. And he is glad to see the "evil"
portion go because it was physical pain.
Later there are experiments and proofs for these things and they
can be measured with the precision so dear to the heart of the
physical scientist.
The clear, then, is not an "adjusted" person, driven to activity by
his repressions now thoroughly encysted. He is an unrepressed
person, operating on self-determinism. And his abilities to
perceive, recall, return, imagine, create and compute are outlined
as we have seen.
The clear is the goal in dianetic therapy, a goal which some
patience and a little study and work can bring about. Any person
can be cleared unless he has been so unfortunate as to have had a
large portion of his brain removed or to have been born with a
grossly malformed nervous structure.
We have seen the goal of dianetics here. Let us now inspect the
goal of Man.
19
CHAPTER III
The Goal of Man
The goal of Man, the lowest common denominator of all his
activities, the dynamic principle of his existence, has long been
sought. Should such an answer be discovered, it is inevitable that
from it many answers would flow. It would explain all phenomena of
behavior; it would lead toward a solution of Man's major problems;
and, most of all, it should be workable.
Consider all knowledge to fall above or below a line of
demarcation. Everything above this line is not necessary to the
solution of Man's aberrations and general shortcomings and is
inexactly known. Such a field of thought could be considered to
embrace such things as metaphysics and mysticism. Below this line
of demarcation could be considered to lie the finite universe. All
things in the finite universe, whether known or as yet unknown, can
be sensed, experienced or measured. The known data in the finite
universe can be classified as scientific truth when it has been
sensed, experienced and measured. All factors necessary to the
resolution of a science of the mind were found within the finite
universe and were discovered, sensed, measured and experienced, and
became scientific truth. The finite universe contains TIME, SPACE,
ENERGY and LIFE. No other factors were found necessary in the
equation.
TIME, SPACE, ENERGY and LIFE have a single denominator in common.
As an analogy it could be considered that TIME, SPACE, ENERGY and
LIFE began at some point of origin and were commanded to continue
to some nearly infinite destination. They were told nothing
20
but WHAT to do. They obey a single order and that order is
"SURVIVE!"
THE DYNAMIC PRINCIPLE OF EXISTENCE IS SURVIVAL
The goal of life can be considered to be infinite survival. Man, as
a life form, can be demonstrated to obey in all his actions and
purposes the one command: "SURVIVE!"
It is not a new thought that Man is surviving. It is a new thought
that Man is motivated only by survival.
That his single goal is survival does not mean that he is the
optimum survival mechanism which life has attained or will develop.
The goal of the dinosaur was also survival and the dinosaur isn't
extant any more.
Obedience to this command, "SURVIVE!" does not mean that every
attempt to obey is uniformly successful. Changing environment,
mutation, and many other things militate against any one organism
attaining infallible survival techniques or form.
Life forms change and die as new life forms develop just as surely
as one life organism, lacking immortality in itself, creates other
life organisms, then dies as itself. An excellent method, should
one wish to cause life to survive over a very long period, would be
to establish means by which it could assume many forms, and death
itself would be necessary in order to facilitate the survival of
the life force itself, since only death and decay could clear away
older forms when new changes in the environment necessitated new
forms. Life, as a force, existing over a nearly infinite period,
would need a cyclic aspect in its unit organisms and forms.
What would be the optimum survival characteristics of various life
forms? They would have to have various
21
fundamental characteristics, differing from one species to the next
just as one environment differs from the next.
This is important, since it has been but poorly considered in the
past that a set of survival characteristics in one species would
not be survival characteristics in another.
The methods of survival can be summed under the headings of food,
protection (defensive and offensive) and procreation. There are no
existing life forms which lack solutions to these problems. Every
life form errs one way or another, by holding a characteristic too
long or developing characteristics which may lead to its
extinction. But the developments which bring about successfulness
of form are far more striking than their errors. The naturalist and
biologist are continually resolving the characteristics of this or
that life form by discovering that need rather than whim govern
such developments. The hinges of the clam shell, the awesome face
on the wing of the butterfly, have survival value.
Once survival was isolated as the only dynamic* of a life form
which would explain all its activities, it was necessary to study
further the action of survival. And it
* In order to establish nomenclature in dianetics which would not
be too complex for the purpose, words normally considered as
adjectives or verbs have occasionally been pressed into service as
nouns. This has been done on the valid principle that existing
terminology, meaning so many different things, could not be used by
dianetics without making it necessary to explain away an old
meaning to bring forth a new. To remove the step of explaining the
old meaning and saying then that one doesn't mean that, thus
entangling our communications inextricably, and to obviate the
ancient custom of compounding ponderous and thundering syllables
from the Greek and Roman tongues, this principle and some others
have been adopted for nomenclature. Dynamic is here used as a noun
and will so continue to be used throughout this volume. Somatic,
perceptic and some others will be noted, defined when used.
22
[GRAPHICS INSERTED]
was discovered that when one considered pain and pleasure, he had
at hand all the necessary ingredients with which to formulate the
action life takes in its effort to survive.
As will be seen in the accompanying graph, a spectrum of life has
been conceived to span from the zero of death or extinction toward
the infinity of potential immortality. This spectrum was considered
to contain an infinity of lines, extending ladderlike toward the
potential of immortality. Each line as the ladder mounted was
spaced a little wider than the last, in a geometric progression.
The thrust of survival is away from death and toward immortality.
The ultimate pain could be conceived as existing just before death
and the ultimate pleasure could be conceived as immortality.
Immortality could be said to have an attractive type of force and
death a repelling force in the consideration of the unit organism
or the species. But as survival rises higher and higher toward
immortality wider and wider spaces are encountered until the gaps
are finitely impossible to bridge. The urge is away from death,
which has a repelling force, and toward immortality, which has an
attracting force; the attracting force is pleasure, the repelling
force is pain.
For the individual, the length of the arrow could be considered to
be at a high potential within the fourth zone. Here the survival
potential would be excellent and the individual would enjoy
existence.
From left to right could be graphed the years.
The urge toward pleasure is dynamic. Pleasure is the reward; and
the seeking of the reward - survival goals - would be a pleasurable
act. And to ensure that survival is accomplished under the mandate,
SURVIVE!, it seems to have been provided that reduction from a high
potential would bring pain.
23
Pain is provided to repel the individual from death, pleasure is
provided to call him toward optimum life. The search for and the
attainment of pleasure is not less valid in survival than the
avoidance of pain. In fact, on some observed evidence, pleasure
seems to have a much greater value in the cosmic scheme than pain.
Now it would be well to define what is meant by pleasure, aside
from its connection with immortality. The dictionary states that
pleasure is "gratification; agreeable emotions, mental or physical;
transient enjoyment; opposed to pain." Pleasure can be found in so
many things and activities that a catalogue of all the things and
activities Man has, does and may consider pleasurable alone could
round out the definition.
And what do we mean by pain? The dictionary states: "physical or
mental suffering; penalty."
These two definitions, in passing, are demonstrative of an
intuitive type of thought which runs through the language. Once one
has a thing which leads to the resolution of hitherto unsolved
problems, even the dictionaries are found to have "always known
it."
If we wished to make this graph for a life-form cycle, it would be
identical except that the value of the years would be increased to
measure eons. For there is no difference, it seems, except
magnitude, in the scope of the individual and the scope of the
species. This inference could be drawn even without such remarkable
evidence as the fact that a human being, growing from zygote to
adult, evolutes through all the forms which the whole species is
supposed to have evolved through.
Now there is more in this graph than has been remarked as yet. The
physical and mental state of the individual varies from hour to
hour, day to day, year to year. Therefore the level of survival
would form either a daily curve or the curve of a life on a measure
of hourly or yearly position in the zones. And there would be two
24
curves made possible by this, the physical curve and the mental
curve. When we get toward the back of the book the relationships
between these two curves will be found vital and it will also be
seen that, ordinarily, a sag in the mental curve will precede a sag
in the physical curve.
The zones, then, can apply to two things: the physical being and
the mental being. Therefore these four zones can be called zones of
the states of being. If a person is happy mentally, the survival
level can be placed in Zone 4. If the person is extremely ill
physically, he might be plotted, on estimation of his illness, in
Zone 1 or close to death.
Very unprecise but nevertheless descriptive names have been
assigned to these zones. Zone 3 is one of general happiness and
well-being. Zone 2 is a level of bearable existence. Zone 1 is one
of anger. Zone 0 is the zone of apathy. These zones can be used as
a tone scale by which a state of mind can be graded. Just above
death, which is 0, would be the lowest mental apathy or lowest
level of physical life, 0.1. A Tone 1, where the body is fighting
physical pain or illness or where the being is fighting in anger,
could be graded from 1.0, which would be resentment or hostility,
through Tone 1.5, which would be a screaming rage, to a 1.9 which
would be merely a quarrelsome inclination. From Tone 2.0 to Tone
3.0 there would be an increasing interest in existence, and so
forth.
It so happens that the state of physical being or mental being does
not long remain static. Therefore, there are various fluctuations.
In the course of a single day an aberree may run from 0.5 to 3.5,
up and down, as a mental being. An accident or illness could cause
a similar fluctuation in a day.
These are, then, figures which can be assigned to four things: the
mental state on an acute basis and the mental state on a general,
average basis, and the physical being
25
on an acute basis and the physical being on a general basis. In
dianetics we do not much employ the physical tone scale. The mental
tone scale, however, is of vast and vital importance!
These values of happiness, bearable existence, anger and apathy are
not arbitrary values. They are deduced from observation of the
behavior of emotional states. A clear is usually found varying
around Tone 4, plus or minus in an average day. He is a general
Tone 4, which is one of the inherent conditions of being clear. A
norm in current society, at a wild guess, is probably around a
general Tone 2.8.
In this descriptive graph, which is two-dimensional, the vital data
for the solution of the problem of the life dynamic are workably
combined. The horizontal lines are in terms of geometric
progression beginning with the zero line immediately above death.
There are ten lines for each zone and each zone denotes a mental or
physical state of being, as noted. Geometric progression, so used,
leaves ever increasing spaces between the lines. The width of this
space is the survival potential existing at the moment the top
point of the survival dynamic arrow is within that space. The
further away from death the top point of the survival dynamic arrow
is, the better chance the individual has of survival. Geometric
progression reaches up toward the impossible of infinity and
cannot, of course, reach infinity. The organism is surviving
through time from left to right. Survival optimum - immortality -
lies in terms of time to the right. Potential only is measured
vertically.
The survival dynamic actually resides within the organism as
inherited from the species. The organism is part of the species as
a railroad tie might be said to be part of a railroad as seen by an
observer on a train, the observer being always in Now - although
this analogy is not perhaps the best.
Within itself the organism possesses a repulsive force
26
toward pain sources. The source of the pain is not a driving force
any more than the thorn bush which tears the hand was a driving
force; the organism repulses the potential pain of a thorn.
At the same time the organism has at work a force which attracts it
to the sources of pleasure. Pleasure does not magnetize the
organism into drawing near. It is the organism which possesses the
attraction force. It is inherent.
The repulsion of pain sources adds to the attraction for pleasure
sources to operate as a combined thrust away from death and toward
immortality. The thrust away from death is no more powerful than
the thrust toward immortality. In other words, in terms of the
survival dynamic, pleasure has as much validity as pain.
It should not be read here that survival is always a matter of
keeping an eye on the future. Contemplation of pleasure, pure
enjoyment, contemplation of past pleasures, all combine into
harmonies which, while they operate automatically as a rise toward
the survival potential, by their action within the organism
physically, do not demand the future as an active portion of the
mental computation in such contemplation.
A pleasure which reacts to injure the body physically, as in the
case of debauchery, discovers at work a ratio between the physical
effect (which is depressed toward pain) and the mental effect of
experienced pleasure. There is a consequent lowering of the
survival dynamic. Averaging out, the future possibility of strain
because of the act, added to the state of being at the moment the
debauchery was experienced, again depresses the survival dynamic.
Because of this, various kinds of debauchery have been in
indifferent odor with Man throughout his history. This is the
equation of "immoral pleasures." And any action which has brought
about survival suppression or which can bring it about, when
pursued as a pleasure, has been denounced at some time or another
in
27
Man's history. Immorality is originally hung as a label upon some
act or class of actions because they depress the level of the
survival dynamic. Future enforcement of
moral stigma may depend largely upon prejudice and aberration and
there is, consequently, a continuous quarrel over what is moral and
what is immoral.
Because certain things practiced as pleasures are actually pains -
and how easy it will be to trace out why when you've finished this
volume - and because of the moral equation as above, pleasure
itself, in any aberrated society can become decried. A certain kind
of thinking, of which more later, permits poor differentiation
between one object and another. Confusing a dishonest politician
with all politicians would be an example of this. In ancient times
the Roman was fond of his pleasures and some of the things he
called pleasure were a trifle strenuous on other species such as
Christians. When the Christian overthrew the pagan state, the
ancient order of Rome was in a villain's role. Anything, therefore,
which was Roman was villainous. This went to such remarkable
lengths that the Roman love of bathing made bathing so immoral that
Europe went unwashed for some fifteen hundred years. The Roman had
become a pain source so general that everything Roman was evil and
it stayed evil long after Roman paganism perished. Immorality, in
such a fashion, tends to become an involved subject. In this case
it became so involved that pleasure itself was stigmatized.
When half the survival potential is struck from the list of lawful
things, there is a considerable reduction in survival indeed.
Considering this graph on a racial scale, the reduction of survival
potential by one-half would forecast that direful things lay in
wait for the race. Actually, because Man is after all Man, no set
of laws, however enforced, can completely wipe away the attraction
of pleasure. But in this case enough was removed
28
and banned to occasion precisely what happened: the Dark Ages and
the recession of society. Society brightened only in those periods
such as the Renaissance, in which pleasure became less unlawful.
When a race or an individual drops into the second zone, as marked
on the chart, and the general tone ranges from the first zone
barely into the third, a condition of insanity ensues. Insanity is
irrationality. It is also a state in which non-survival has been so
closely approached continually that the race or the organism
engages in all manner of wild solutions.
In further interpretation of this descriptic graph there is the
matter of the survival suppressor. This, it will be seen, is a
thrust downward out of potential immortality at the race or
organism represented as the survival dynamic. The survival
suppressor is the combined and variable threats to the survival of
the race or organism. These threats come from other species, from
time, from other energies. These are also engaged in the contest of
survival to potential immortality in terms of their own species or
identities. Thus there is a conflict involved. Every other form of
life or energy could be plotted in a descriptic as the survival
dynamic. If we were to use a duck's survival dynamic in a
descriptic graph, we would see the duck seeking a high survival
level and Man would be a part of the duck's suppressor.
The balance and nature of things do not permit the infinity of the
goal of immortality to be reached. In fluctuating balance and in
almost unlimited complexity, life and energies ebb and flood, out
of the nebulous, into forms and, through decay, into the nebulous
once more.* Many equations could be drawn concerning this, but it
is outside the sphere of our present interest.
In terms of the zones of the descriptic it is of relative
* The Veda; also Lucretius' Nature of Things.
29
concern what the extent of the force of the suppressor is against
the survival dynamic. The dynamic is inherent in individuals,
groups and races, evolved to resist the suppressor through the
eons. In the case of Man, he carries with him another level of
offensive and defensive techniques, his cultures. His primary
technology of survival is mental activity governing physical action
in the sentient echelon. But every life form has its own
technology, formed to resolve the problems of food, protection and
procreation. The degree of workability of the technology any life
form develops (armor or brains, fleetness of foot or deceptive
form) is a direct index of the survival potential, the relative
immortality, of that form. There have been vast upsets in the past;
Man, when he developed into the world's most dangerous animal (he
can and does kill or enslave any life form, doesn't he?) overloaded
the suppressor on many other life forms and they dwindled in number
or vanished.
A great climatic change, such as the one which packed so many
mammoths in Siberian ice, may overload the suppressor on a life
form. A long drought in the American southwest in not too ancient
times wiped out the better part of an Indian civilization.
A cataclysm such as an explosion of the core of the Earth, if that
were possible, or the atom bomb or the sudden cessation of burning
on the Sun would wipe out all life forms on Earth.
And a life form can even overload the suppressor on itself. A
dinosaur destroys all his food and so destroys the dinosaur. A
bubonic plague bacillus attacks its hosts with such thorough
appetite that the whole generation of pasteurella pestis vanishes.
Such things are not intended by the suicide to be suicide; the life
form has run up against an equation which has an unknown variable,
and the unknown variable unfortunately contained enough value to
overload the suppressor. This is the "didn't know the gun was
loaded" equation.
30
And if the bubonic plague bacillus overloads its own suppressor in
an area and then ceases to trouble its food and shelter, the
animals, then the animals consider themselves benefited.
Reckless and clever and well-nigh indestructible, Man has led a
course which is a far cry from "tooth and claw" in every sphere.
And so have the redwood tree and the shark. Just as a life form,
Man, like every life form, is "symbiotic." Life is a group effort.
Lichens and plankton and algae may do very well on sunlight and
minerals alone, but they are the building blocks. Above such
existence, as the forms grow more complex, a tremendous
interdependence exists.
It is very well for a forester to believe that certain trees
willfully kill all other varieties of trees around them and then
conclude a specious "attitude" of trees. Let him look again. What
made the soil? What provides the means of keeping the oxygen
balance? What makes it possible for rain to fall in other areas?
These willful and murderous trees. And squirrels plant trees. And
Man plants trees. And trees shelter trees of another kind. And
animals fertilize trees. And trees shelter animals. And trees hold
the soil so less well rooted plants can grow. Look anywhere and
everywhere and we see life as an assist for life. The multitude of
the complexities of life as affinities for life is not dramatic.
But they are the steady, practical, important reason life can
continue to exist at all.
A redwood tree may be first out for redwood trees and although it
does an excellent job of seeming to exist as redwood alone, a
closer glance will show it has dependencies and is depended upon.
Therefore the dynamic of any life form can be seen to be assisted
by many other dynamics and combines with them against the
suppressive factors. None survive alone.
Necessity has been declared to be a very wonderful thing. But
necessity is a word which has been taken
31
rather loosely for granted. Opportunism seems to have been read
largely into necessity. What is necessity? Besides being the
"mother of invention," is it a dramatic, sudden thing which excuses
wars and murders, which touches a man only when he is about to
starve? Or is necessity a much gentler and less dramatic quantity?
"Everything," according to Leucippus, "is driven by necessity."
This is a keynote of much theorizing down through the ages. Driven,
that is the key to the error. Driven, things are driven. Necessity
drives. Pain drives. Necessity and pain, pain and necessity.
Recalling the dramatic and overlooking the important, Man has
conceived himself, from time to time, to be an object of chase by
necessity and pain. These were two anthropomorphic (manlike) things
which, in full costume, stuck spears at him. It can be said to be a
wrong concept merely because it does not work to produce more
answers.
Whatever there is of necessity is within him. Nothing is driving
him except his original impetus to survive. And he carries that
within himself or his group. Within him is the force with which he
fends off pain. Within him is the force with which he attracts
pleasure.
It chances to be a scientific fact that Man is a self-determined
organism to the outermost limit that any form of life can be, for
he still depends upon other forms of life and his general
environment. But he is self-determined. This is a matter which will
be covered later. But right here it is necessary to indicate that
he is not inherently a determined organism in the sense that he is
driven on this wonderful stimulus-response basis which looks so
neat in certain text books, and works so completely unworkably in
the world of Man. The happy little illustrations about rats do not
serve when we are talking about Man. The more complex the organism,
the less reliably these stimulus-response equation works. And when
one reaches that highest complexity, Man, he has reached
32
a fine degree of variability in terms of stimulus-response. The
more sentient, the more rational an organism, the more that
organism is self-determined. Self-determinism, like all things, is
relative. Compared to a rat, however, Man is very self-determined
indeed. This is only a scientific fact because it can easily be
proven.
The more sentient the man, the less he is a "push-button"
instrument. Aberrated and reduced he can, of course, in a limited
degree, be made to perform like a marionette, but then it is
understood that the more aberrated a person is, the closer he
approaches the intelligence quotient of an animal.
Given this self-determinism, it is interesting to observe what a
man does with it. While he can never escape the "didn't know it was
loaded" equation in terms of cataclysm or the unexpected gain of
some other life form, he operates in a high zone level of survival
potential. But here he is, self-determined, rational, his primary
weapon, his mind, in excellent working order. What are his
necessity instincts?
Necessity, according to that very sentient if rapidly
subject-changing article, the dictionary, is "the state of being
necessary; that which is unavoidable; compulsion." It also adds
that necessity is "extreme poverty," but we don't want that. We are
talking about survival.
The compulsion mentioned can be re-evaluated in terms of the
survival dynamic. That is interior in the organism and the race.
And what is "necessary" to survival?
We have seen and can prove clinically that there are two factors at
work. The necessity of avoiding pain is a factor because, degree by
degree, little things, not much in themselves, can amount to large
pains which, compounded in that rapid geometric progression, bring
on death. Pain is the sadness of being bawled out for poor work,
because that may lead to being fired, which may lead to starvation,
which may lead to death. Run any
33
equation into which pain has entered and it can be seen that it
reduces down to possible non-survival. And if this were all there
were to surviving and if necessity were a vicious little gnome with
a pitch-fork, it seems rather obvious that there would be scant
reason to go on living. But there is the other part of the
equation, pleasure. That is a more stable part than pain, Stoics to
the contrary, as clinical tests in dianetics prove.
There is therefore a necessity for pleasure, for working, as
happiness can be defined, toward known goals over not unknowable
obstacles. And the necessity for pleasure is such that a great deal
of pain can be borne to attain it. Pleasure is the positive
commodity. It is enjoyment of work, contemplation of deeds well
done; it is a good book or a good friend; it is taking all the skin
off one's knees climbing the Matterhorn; it is hearing the kid
first say daddy; it is a brawl on the Bund at Shanghai or the
whistle of amour from a doorway; it's adventure and hope and
enthusiasm and "someday I'll learn to paint"; it's eating a good
meal or kissing a pretty girl or playing a stiff game of bluff on
the stock exchange. It's what Man does that he enjoys doing; it's
what Man does that he enjoys contemplating; it's what Man does that
he enjoys remembering; and it may be just the talk of things he
knows he'll never do.
Man will endure a lot of pain to obtain a little pleasure. Out in
the laboratory of the world, it takes very little time to confirm
that.
And how does necessity fit this picture? There is a necessity for
pleasure, a necessity as live and quivering and vital as the human
heart itself. He who said that a man who had two loaves of bread
should sell one to buy white hyacinth, spoke sooth. The creative,
the constructive, the beautiful, the harmonious, the adventurous,
yes, and even escape from the maw of oblivion, these things are
pleasure and these things are necessity. There was a man once who
had walked a thousand miles just to
34
see an orange tree and another who was a mass of scars and poor-set
bones who was eager just to get a chance to "fan another bronc."
It is very well to dwell in some Olympian height and write a book
of penalties and very well to read to find what writers said that
other writers said, but it is not very practical.
The pain-drive theory does not work. If some of these basics of
dianetics were only poetry about the idyllic state of Man, they
might be justified in that, but it happens that out in the
laboratory of the world, they work.
Man, in affinity with Man, survives, and that survival is pleasure.
35
CHAPTER IV
The Four Dynamics
In the original equations of dianetics, when the research was
young, it was believed that survival could be envisioned in
personal terms alone and still answer all conditions. A theory is
only as good as it works. And it works as well as it explains
observed data and predicts flew material which will be found, in
fact, to exist.
Survival in personal terms was computed until the whole activity of
Man could be theoretically explained in terms of self alone. The
logic looked fairly valid. But then it was applied to the world.
Something was wrong: it did not solve problems. In fact, the theory
of survival in personal terms alone was so unworkable that it left
a majority of behavior phenomena unexplained. But it could be
computed and it still looked good.
Then it was that a nearly intuitive idea occurred. Man's
understanding developed in ratio to his recognition of his
brotherhood with the Universe. That was high flown but it yielded
results.
Was Man himself a brotherhood of Man? He had evolved and become
strong as a gregarious being, an animal that hunted in packs. It
seemed possible that all his activities could be computed in terms
of the survival of the group. That computation was made. It looked
good. Man survived, it was postulated, solely in terms of the
survival of his group. It looked good but it left a majority of
observed phenomena unexplained.
It was attempted, then, to explain Man's behavior in terms of
Mankind alone; which is to say, it was assumed that Mankind
survived for Mankind in a highly altruistic
36
way. This was straight down the sylvan path of Jean Jacques
Rousseau. It could be computed that Man lived alone for the
survival of all Mankind. But when addressed to the laboratory - the
world - it did not work.
Finally, it was recalled that some had thought that Man's entire
activity and all his behavior could be explained by assuming that
he lived for sex alone. This was not an original assumption. But
some original computations were made upon it and it is true that,
by a few quick twists of the equation, his survival activity can be
made to resolve on only the sexual basis. But when this was applied
to observed data, again it failed to explain every phenomenon.
An examination was made of what had been attempted. It had been
assumed that Man survived only for himself as an individual; it had
been computed that he survived only for the group, the pack, for
society; it had been postulated that he survived only for Mankind;
and finally, it had been theorized that he lived only for sex. None
worked alone.
A new computation was made on the survival dynamic. Exactly for
what was man surviving? All four of these factors, self, sex, group
and Mankind were entered into a new equation. And now it was found,
a theory was in hand which worked. It explained all observed
phenomena and it predicted new phenomena which were discovered to
exist. It was a scientific equation, therefore!
From the survival dynamic, in this fashion, were evolved the four
dynamics. By survival dynamic was meant the basic command, SURVIVE!
which underlay all activity. By dynamic was meant one of the four
purpose divisions of the entire dynamic principle. The four
dynamics were not new forces; they were sub-divisions of the
primary force.
DYNAMIC ONE is the urge toward ultimate survival on the part of the
individual and for himself. It includes
37
his immediate symbiotes*, the extension of culture for his own
benefit, and name immortality.
DYNAMIC TWO is the urge of the individual toward ultimate survival
via the sex act, the creation of and the rearing of children. It
includes their symbiotes, the extension of culture for them, and
their future provision.
DYNAMIC THREE is the urge of the individual toward ultimate
survival for the group. It includes the symbiotes of the group and
the extension of its culture.
DYNAMIC FOUR includes the urge of the individual toward ultimate
survival for all Mankind. It includes the symbiotes of Mankind and
the extension of its culture.
Life, the atom and the universe and energy itself are included
under the symbiotic classification.
It will be seen immediately that these four dynamics are actually a
spectrum without sharp division lines. The survival dynamic can be
seen to sweep out from the individual to embrace the entire species
and its symbiotes.
None of these dynamics is necessarily stronger than any of the
others. Each is strong. They are the four roads a man takes to
survival. And the four roads are actually one road. And the one
road is actually a spectrum of thousands of roads contained within
the four. They are all in terms of past, present and future in that
the present may be a sum of the past and the future may be the
product of the past and present.
All the purposes of Man can be considered to lie within this
spectrum and all behavior becomes explained.
That Man is selfish is a valid statement when one means an
aberrated Man. That Man is anti-social is an equally valid
statement if one adds the modifier, aberration. And other such
statements resolve equally.
* The dianetic meaning of symbiote is extended beyond the
dictionary definition to mean "any or all life or energy forms
which are mutually dependent for survival." The atom depends on the
Universe, the Universe on the atom.
38
Now it happens that these four dynamics can be seen to compete, one
with another, in their operation within an individual or a society.
There is a rational reason for this. The phrase "social
competition" is a compound of aberrated behavior and sentient
difficulties.
Any man, group or race may be in contest with any race, group or
man and even in contest with sex on an entirely rational level.
The Equation of the Optimum Solution would be that a problem has
been well resolved which portends the maximum good for the maximum
number of dynamics. That is to say that any solution, modified by
the time available to put the solution into effect, should be
creative or constructive for the greatest possible number of
dynamics. The optimum solution for any problem would be a solution
which achieved the maximum benefit in all the dynamics. This means
that a man, determining upon some project, would fare best if he
benefited everything concerned in the four dynamics as his project
touched them. He would then have to benefit himself as well for the
solution to be optimum. In other words, the benefiting of the group
and Mankind dynamic but the blocking of the sex dynamic and the
self dynamic would be much poorer than the best solution. The
conduct survival pattern is built upon this equation of the optimum
solution. It is the basic equation of all rational behavior and is
the equation on which a clear functions. It is inherent in Man.
In other words, the best solution to any problem is that which will
bring the greatest good to the greatest number of beings, including
self, progeny, family associates, political and racial groups, and
at length to all mankind. The greatest good may require, as well,
some destruction, but the solution deteriorates in a ratio to the
destructiveness employed. Self-sacrifice and selfishness are alike
reductive of the optimum action equation and alike have been
suspected and should be.
39
This is entirely a matter of: does it work? Even on an unaberrated
basis there are times when one or another of these dynamics rave to
be dropped from the computation of some activity or other and
indeed, few problems are so entirely intense that they must take
into account
the dynamics. But when a problem achieves such intensity and time
is not an important factor, serious errors can follow the omission
of one or another of the dynamics from the factors considered.
In the case of a Napoleon "saving France" at the expense of the
remainder of Mankind in Europe, the equation of the optimum
solution was so far neglected that all the revolutionary gains of
the French people were lost. In the case of Caesar "saving Rome,"
the equation was so poorly done that the survival of Rome was
impeded.
But there are special cases when the equation of the optimum
solution becomes so involved with time that certain dynamics must
be neglected to permit other dynamics to persist. The case of a
sailor giving his own life to save his ship answers the group
dynamic. Such an action is a valid solution to a problem. But it
violates the optimum solution because it did not answer for Dynamic
One: self.
Many examples of various kinds could be cited where one or another
of the dynamics must, of necessity, receive priority, all on an
entirely rational basis.
On an aberrated basis the equation is still valid but complicated
by irrationalities which have no part of the situation. Many
solutions are bad merely because of false educational data or no
data at all. But these are still solutions. In the case of
aberrated solutions, the dynamics are actually and actively
impeded, as will later be outlined in full.
40
CHAPTER V
Summary
The dynamic principle of existence is survival.
This survival can be graduated into four zones, each one
progressively portending a better opportunity of reaching the
potential of immortality. Zone 0 borders from death and includes
apathy; Zone 1 borders from apathy and includes violent effort;
Zone 2 borders from violence into mediocre but not entirely
satisfactory success; Zone 3 borders from the mediocre to the
excellent chance. These zones are each occasioned by the ratio of
the suppressor to the survival dynamic. In apathy, Zone 0, the
suppressor appears too great to be overcome. In the area of
violence, Zone I, the suppressor more or less overbalances the
survival dynamic, requiring enormous effort which, when expended
without result, drops the organism into the Zero Zone. In the area
of mediocrity, Zone 2, the suppressor and the survival dynamic are
more or less evenly balanced. In the area of Zone 3 the survival
dynamic has overcome the suppressor and, the chances of survival
being excellent, is the area of high response to problems. These
four zones might be classed as the zone of no hope, the zone of
violent action, the area of balance and the area of high hope.
Clinical experiment is the basis of these zones since they follow a
progress of mental or physical being as it rises from the death
area into high existence.
The four dynamics are subdivisions of the survival dynamic and are,
in Mankind, the thrust toward potential survival in terms of
entities. They embrace all the purposes, activities and behavior of
Mankind. They could be said to be a conduct survival pattern. The
first
41
of these, but not necessarily the most important nor yet the one
which will receive priority in various efforts, is the individual
dynamic, DYNAMIC ONE, which includes the personal survival of the
individual as a living person and the survival of his personal
symbiotes. DYNAMIC TWO is the thrust toward potential immortality
through children and includes all sexual activity as well as the
symbiotes of the children. DYNAMIC THREE is survival in terms of
the group, which term may include such things as a club, a military
company, a city, a state, a nation; this would include the
symbiotes of the group. DYNAMIC FOUR is the thrust toward potential
immortality of Mankind as a species and the symbiotes of Mankind.
Embraced within these classifications are any part of existence,
any form of matter and, indeed the Universe.
Any problem or situation discoverable within the activities or
purposes of Mankind is embraced within these dynamics.
The equation of the optimum solution is inherent within the
organism and, modified by education or viewpoint and modified
further by time, is the operating method of unaberrated
individuals, groups or Mankind. The equation of the optimum
solution is always present even in severely aberrated individuals
and is used as modified by their education, viewpoint and available
time. The aberration does not remove activity from the dynamics of
survival. Aberrated conduct is irrational survival conduct and is
fully intended to lead to survival. That the intent is not the act
does not eradicate the intent.
THESE ARE THE FUNDAMENTAL
AXIOMS OF DIANETICS:
The dynamic principle of existence - SURVIVE!
42
Survival, considered as the single and sole Purpose, sub-divides
into four dynamics.
DYNAMIC ONE is the urge of the individual toward survival for the
individual and his symbiotes. (By symbiote is meant all entities
and energies which aid survival.)
DYNAMIC TWO is the urge of the individual toward survival through
procreation; it includes both the sex act and the raising of
progeny, the care of children and their symbiotes.
DYNAMIC THREE is the urge of the individual toward survival for the
group or the group for the group and includes the symbiotes of that
group.
DYNAMIC FOUR is the urge of the individual toward survival for
Mankind or the urge toward survival of Mankind for Mankind as well
as the group for Mankind, etc., and includes the symbiotes of
mankind.
The absolute goal of survival is immortality or infinite survival.
This is sought by the individual in terms of himself as an
organism, as a spirit or as a name or as his children, as a group
of which he is a member or as Mankind and the progeny and symbiotes
of others as well as his own.
The reward of survival activity is pleasure.
The ultimate penalty of destructive activity is death or complete
non-survival, and is pain.
Successes raise the survival potential toward infinite survival.
Failures lower the survival potential toward death.
43
The human mind is engaged upon perceiving and retaining data,
composing or computing conclusions and posing and resolving
problems related to organisms along all four dynamics and the
purpose of perception, retention, concluding and resolving problems
is to direct its own organism and symbiotes and other organisms and
symbiotes along the four dynamics toward survival.
Intelligence is the ability to perceive, pose and resolve problems.
The dynamic is the tenacity to life and vigor and persistence in
survival.
Both the dynamic and intelligence are necessary to persist and
accomplish and neither is a constant quantity from individual to
individual, group to group.
The dynamics are inhibited by engrams, which lie across them and
disperse life force.
Intelligence is inhibited by engams which feed false or improperly
graded data into the analyzer.
Happiness is the overcoming of not unknown obstacles toward a known
goal and, transiently, the contemplation of or indulgence in
pleasure.
The analytical mind is that portion of the mind which perceives and
retains experience data to compose and resolve problems and direct
the organism along the four dynamics. It thinks in differences and
similarities.
The reactive mind is that portion of the mind which files and
retains physical pain and painful emotion and seeks to direct the
organism solely on a stimulus-response basis. It thinks only in
identities.
44
The somatic mind is that mind which, directed by the analytical or
reactive mind, places solutions into effect on the physical level.
A training pattern is that stimulus-response mechanism resolved by
the analytical mind to care for routine activity or emergency
activity. It is held in the somatic mind and can be changed at will
by the analytical mind.
Habit is that stimulus-response reaction dictated by the reactive
mind from the content of engrams and put into effect by the somatic
mind. It can be changed only by those things which change engams.
Aberrations, under which is included all deranged or irrational
behavior, are caused by engams. They are stimulus-response pro- and
contra-survival.
Psycho-somatic ills are caused by engrams.
The engram is the single source of aberrations and psycho-somatic
ills.
Moments of "unconsciousness" when the analytical mind is attenuated
in greater or lesser degree are the only moments when engrams can
be received.
The engram is a moment of "unconsciousness" containing physical
pain or painful emotion and all perceptions and is not available to
the analytical mind as experience.
Emotion is three things: engramic response to situations, endocrine
metering of the body to meet situations on an analytical level and
the inhibition or the furtherance of life force.
45
The potential value of an individual or a group may be expressed by
the equation
x
PV = ID
where I is Intelligence and D is Dynamic.
The worth of an individual is computed in terms of the alignment,
on any dynamic, of his potential value with optimum survival along
that dynamic. A high PV may, by reversed vector, result in a
negative worth as in some severely aberrated persons. A high PV on
any dynamic assures a high worth only in the unaberrated person.
46
Book Two
THE SINGLE SOURCE OF ALL INORGANIC
MENTAL AND ORGANIC PSYCHO-SOMATIC ILLS
CHAPTER I
The Analytical Mind and the Standard Memory Banks
This chapter begins the search for human error and tells where it
is not.
The human mind can be considered to have three major divisions.
First, there is the analytical mind, second, there is the reactive
mind, and third, there is the somatic mind.
Consider the analytical mind as a computing machine. This is
analogy, because the analytical mind, while it behaves like a
computing machine, is yet more fantastically capable than any
computing machine ever constructed and infinitely more elaborate.
It could be called the "computational mind" or the "egsusheyftef."
But for our purposes, the analytical mind, as a descriptive name,
will do. This mind may live in the pre-frontal lobes - there is
some hint of that - but this is a problem of structure, and nobody
really knows about structure. So we shall call this computational
part of the mind the "analytical mind" because it analyzes data.
The monitor can be considered part of the analytical mind. The
monitor could be called the center of awareness of the person. It,
inexactly speaking, is the person. It has been approximated by
various names for thousands of years, each one reducing down to
"I." The monitor is in control of the analytical mind. It is not in
control because it has been told to be but only because it is,
inherently. It is not a demon who lives in the skull nor a little
man who vocalizes one's thoughts. It is "I." No matter how many
aberrations a person may have, "I" is
49
always "I." No matter how "clear" a person becomes, "I," is still
"I." "I" may be submerged now and then in an aberree, but it is
always present.
The analytical mind shows various evidences of being an organ, but
as we know in this age so little of structure, the full structural
knowledge of the analytical mind must come after we know what it
does. And in dianetics we know precisely that for the first time.
It is known and can be proven with ease that the analytical mind,
be it one organ of the body or several, behaves as you would expect
any good computing machine to behave.
What would you want in a computing machine? The action of the
analytical mind - or analyzer - is everything anyone could want
from the best computer available. It can and does do all the tricks
of a computer. And over and above that, it directs the building of
computers. And it is as thoroughly right as any computer ever was.
The analytical mind is not just a good computer, it is a perfect
computer. It never makes a mistake. It cannot err in any way so
long as a human being is reasonably intact (unless something has
carried away a piece of his mental equipment).
The analytical mind is incapable of error, and it is so certain
that it is incapable of error that it works out everything on the
basis that it cannot make an error. If a person says, "I cannot
add," he either means that he has never been taught to add or that
he has an aberration about adding. It does not mean that there is
anything wrong with the analytical mind.
While the whole being is, in an aberrated state, grossly capable of
error, still the analytical mind is not. For a computer is just as
good as the data on which it operates and no better. Aberration,
then, arises from the nature of the data offered to the analytical
mind as a problem to be computed.
The analytical mind has its standard memory banks. Just where
these are located structurally is again no
50
concern of ours at this time. To operate, the analytical mind has
to have percepts (data), memory (data), and imagination (data).
There are another data storage bank and another part of the human
mind which contain aberrations and are the source of insanities.
These will be fully covered later and should not be confused with
either the analytical mind or the standard memory banks.
Whether or not the data contained in the standard memory banks is
evaluated correctly or not, it is all there. The various senses
receive information and this information files straight into the
standard memory banks. It does not go through the analyzer first.
It is filed and the analyzer then has it from the standard banks.
There are several of these standard banks and they may be
duplicated in themselves so that there are several of each kind of
bank. Nature seems generous in such things. There is a bank, or set
of banks, for each perception. These can be considered racks of
data filed in a cross-index system which would make an intelligence
officer purple with envy. Any single percept is filed as a concept.
The sight of a moving car, for instance, is filed in the visio-bank
in color and motion, at the time seen, cross-indexed to the area in
which seen, cross-indexed to all data about cars, cross-indexed to
thoughts about cars, and so forth and so forth with the additional
filing of conclusions (thought stream) of the moment and thought
streams of the past with all their conclusions. The sound of that
car is similarly filed from the ears, straight into the audio-bank,
and cross-indexed multitudinously as before. The other sensations
of that moment are also filed, in their own banks.
Now it may be that the whole filing is done in one bank. It would
be simpler that way. But this is not a matter of structure but
mental performance. Eventually somebody will discover just how they
are filed. Right now the function of filing is all that interests
us.
51
Every percept - sight, sound, smell, feeling, taste, organic
sensation, pain, rhythm, kinesthesia (weight and muscular motion)
and emotion - is each properly and neatly filed in the standard
banks in full. It does not matter how many aberrations a physically
intact person has or whether he thinks he can or cannot contain
this data or recall it, the file is there and is complete.
This file begins at a very early period, of which more later. It
then runs consecutively, whether the individual is asleep or awake,
except in moments of "unconsciousness,"* for an entire lifetime. It
apparently has an infinite capacity.
The numbers of these concepts (concept means that which is retained
after something has been perceived) would stagger an astronomer's
computer. The existence and profusion of memories retained were
discovered and studied in a large number of cases, and they can be
examined in anyone by certain processes.
Everything in this bank is correct in so far as the single action
of perception is concerned. There may be organic errors in the
organs of perception, such as blindness or deafness (when physical,
not aberrational), which would leave blanks in the banks; and there
may be organic impairment such as partial organic deafness which
would leave partial blanks. But these things are not error in the
standard memory banks; they are simply absence of data. Like the
computer, the standard memory banks are perfect, recording
faithfully and reliably.
Now part of the standard banks is audio-semantic, which is to say,
the recordings of words heard. And part of the banks is
visio-semantic, which is to say, the recordings of words read.
These are special parts of the sound
* "Unconscious" throughout this work means a greater or lesser
reduction of awareness on the part of "I" - an attenuation of
working power of the analytical mind.
52
and sight files. A blind man who has to read with his fingers
develops a tactile-semantic file. The content of the speech files
is exactly as heard without alteration.
Another interesting part of the standard memory banks is that they
apparently file the original and hand forward exact copies to the
analyzer. They will hand out as many exact copies as are demanded
without diminishing the actual file original. And they hand out
these copies each in kind with color-motion sight, tone-audio, etc.
The amount of material which is retained in the average standard
memory banks would fill several libraries. But the method of
retention is invariable. And the potentiality of recall is perfect.
The primary source of error in "rational" computation comes under
the headings of insufficient data and erroneous data. The
individual, daily facing new situations, is not always in
possession of all the material he requires to make a decision. And
he may have been told something on Good Authority which was not
true and yet which did not find counter-evidence in the banks.
Between the standard banks, which are perfect and reliable, and the
computer, the analytical mind, which is perfect and reliable, there
is no irrational concourse. The answer is always as right as it can
be made to be in the light of data at hand, and that is all anyone
can ask of a computing device or a recording device.
The analytical mind goes even further in its efforts to be right
than one would suppose. It constantly checks and weighs new
experience in the light of old experience, forms new conclusions in
the light of old conclusions, changes old conclusions and generally
is very busy being right.
The analytical mind might be considered to have been given a sacred
post of trust by the cells to safeguard the colony, and it does
everything within its power to carry
53
out that Mission. It has correct data, as correct as possible, and
it does correct computations on them, as correct as they can be
made. When one considers the enormous number of factors which one
handles, for instance, in the action of driving a car ten blocks,
he can appreciate how very, very busy on how very many levels that
analytical mind can be.
Now before we introduce the villain of this piece, the reactive
mind, it is necessary to understand something about the relation of
the analytical mind to the organism itself.
The analytical mind, charged with full responsibility, is far from
without authority to carry out its actions and desires. Through the
mechanisms of the life function regulator (which handles all the
mechanical functions of living), the analytical mind can effect any
function of the body it desires to effect.
In excellent working order - which is to say, when the organism is
not aberrated - the analytical mind can influence the heartbeat,
the endocrines (such things as calcium and sugar in the blood,
adrenalin, etc.), selective blood flow (stopping it in the limbs or
starting it at will), urine, excreta, etc. All glandular, rhythm
and fluid functions of the body can be at the command of the
analytical mind. This is not to say that in a cleared person they
always are. That would be very uncomfortable and bothersome. But it
does say that the analytical mind can effect changes at desire when
it skills itself to do so. This is a marter of laboratory proof,
very easy to do.
People have long been intuitive about the "full power of the mind."
Well, the full power of the mind would be the analytical mind
working with the standard memory banks, the life function regulator
and one other thing.
The last and most important thing is, of course, the organism. It
is in the charge of the analytical mind. And the analytical mind
controls it in other ways than life
54
function. All muscles and the remainder of the organism can be
under the full command of the analytical mind.
In order to keep it and its circuits free of bric-a-brac and minor
activities, the analytical mind is provided with a learned training
pattern regulator. Into this, by education, it can place the
stimulus-response patterns necessary for the performance of tasks
like talking, walking, piano playing, etc. These learned patterns
are not unchangeable. Because they are selected by the analytical
mind after thought and effort, there is seldom any need to change
them; if new situations arise, a new pattern is trained into the
muscles. None of these are "conditionings"; they are simply
training patterns which the organism can use without attention of
any magnitude from the analyzer. An uncountable number of such
patterns can be laid into the organism by this method. And they are
not the source of any trouble since they file by time and
situation, and a very little thought will serve to annul old ones
in favor of new ones.
All muscles, voluntary and "involuntary," can be at the command of
the analytical mind.
Here, then, is the composite of a sentient being. There is no
chance for error beyond the error incident to insufficient data and
erroneous but accepted data (and the last will be used by the
analyzer just once if that once proves the data to be wrong), Here
is the realm of pleasure, emotion, creation and construction, and
even destruction if the computation on the optimum solution says
something has to be destroyed.
The dynamics underlie the activities of the analytical mind. The
urge toward survival explains all its actions. That we can
understand the fundamental simplicity of the functional mechanism
does not, however, mean that a man operating this way alone is cold
or calculating or intent on "tooth and claw." The nearer Man
approaches this optimum, in an individual or in a whole society,
the
55
quicker and warmer is that society, the more honest may be its
moods and actions.
Sanity depends upon rationality. Here is optimum rationality and
therefore optimum sanity. And here also are all the things Man
likes to think Man should be like or, for that matter, what he has
represented his better gods to be like. This is the clear.
This is sanity. This is happiness. This is survival.
Where is the error?
56
CHAPTER II
The Reactive Mind
It is fairly well accepted in these times that life in all forms
evolved from the basic building blocks, the virus and the cell. Its
only relevance to dianetics is that such a proposition works - and
actually that is all we ask of dianetics. There is no point to
writing here a past tome on biology and evolution. We can add some
chapters to those things, but Charles Darwin did his job well, and
the fundamental principles of evolution can be found in his and
other works.
The proposition on which dianetics was originally entered was
evolution. It was postulated that the cells themselves had the urge
to survive and that that urge was common to life. It was further
postulated that organisms - individuals - were constructed of cells
and were in fact aggregations of colonies of cells.
As went the building block, so went the organism. In the finite
realms and for any of our purposes, Man could be considered to be a
colonial aggregation of cells and it could be assumed that his
purpose was identical with the purpose of his building blocks.
The cell is a unit of life which is seeking to survive and only to
Survive.
Man is a structure of cells which are asking to survive, and only
to survive.
Man's mind is the command post of operation and is constructed to
resolve problems and pose problems related to survival and only to
survival.
The action of survival, if optimum, would lead to survival.
57
The optimum survival conduct pattern was formulated and then
studied for exceptions, and there were no exceptions found.
The survival conduct pattern was discovered to be far from sterile
and barren but was full of rich and most pleasant activity.
None of these postulates outlawed any concept concerning the human
soul or divine or creative imagination. It was understood perfectly
that this was a study in the finite universe only and that spheres
and realms of thought and action might very well exist above this
finite sphere. But it was also discovered that none of these
factors were needed to resolve the entire problem of aberration and
irrational conduct.
The human mind was discovered to have been most grossly maligned,
for it was found to be possessed of capabilities far in excess of
any heretofore imagined much less tested.
Basic human character was found to have been pilloried because Man
had not been able to distinguish between irrational conduct derived
from poor data and irrational conduct derived from another, far
more vicious source.
If there ever was a devil, he designed the reactive mind.
This functional mechanism managed to bury itself from view so
thoroughly that only inductive philosophy, traveling from effect
back to cause, served to uncover it. The detective work which was
invested in the location of this arch criminal of the human psyche
occupied many years. Its identity can now be certified by any
technician in any clinic or in any group of men. Two hundred and
seventy-three individuals have been examined and treated,
representing all the various types of inorganic mental illness and
the many varieties of psycho-somatic ills. In each one this
reactive mind was found operating, its principles unvaried. This is
a long series of cases and will soon become longer.
58
The reactive mind is possessed by everyone. No human being examined
anywhere was discovered to be without one or without aberrative
content in his engram bank, the reservoir of data which serves the
reactive mind.
What does this mind do? It shuts off hearing recall. It places
vocal circuits in the mind. It makes people tone-deaf. It makes
people stutter. It does anything and everything that can be found
in any list of mental ills: psychoses, neuroses, compulsions,
repressions...
What can it do? It can give a man arthritis, bursitis, asthma,
allergies, sinusitis, coronary trouble, high blood pressure, and so
on down the whole catalogue of psycho-somatic ills, adding a few
more which were never specifically classified as psycho-somatic,
such as the common cold.
And it is the only thing in the human being which can produce these
effects. It is the thing which uniformly brings them about.
This is the mind which made Socrates think he had a "demon" that
gave him answers. This is the mind that made Caligula appoint his
horse to a government post. This is the mind which made Caesar cut
the right hands from thousands of Gauls, which made Napoleon reduce
the height of Frenchmen one inch.
This is the mind which keeps war a thing of alarm, which makes
politics irrational, which makes superior officers snarl, which
makes children cry in fear of the dark. This is the mind which
makes a man suppress his hopes, which holds his apathies, which
gives him irresolution when he should act, and kills him before he
has begun to live.
If there ever was a devil, he invented it.
Discharge the content of this mind's bank and the arthritis
vanishes, myopia gets better, heart illness decreases, asthma
disappears, stomachs function properly, and the whole catalogue of
ills goes away and stays away.
Discharge the reactive engram bank and the schizophrenic faces
reality at last, the manic-depressive sets
59
forth to accomplish things, the neurotic stops clinging to books
which tell him how much he needs his neuroses and begins to live,
the woman stops snapping at her children and the dipsomaniac can
drink when he likes and stop.
These are scientific facts. They compare invariably with observed
experience.
The reactive mind is the entire source of aberration. It can be
proved and has been repeatedly proven that there is no other, for
when that engram bank is discharged, all undesirable symptoms
vanish and a man begins to operate on his optimum pattern.
If one were looking for something like demons in a human mind -
such as those one observes in some inmates of madhouses - he could
find them easily enough. Only they are not demons. They are by-pass
circuits from the engram bank. What prayer and exhortations have
been used against these by-pass circuits!
If one did not believe in demons, if one supposed that Man were
good after all (as a postulate, of course), how would the evil get
into him? What would be the source of these insane rages? What
would be the source of his slips of the tongue? How would he come
to know irrational fear?
Why is it that one does not like his boss although his boss has
always been pleasant? Why is it that suicides smash their bodies to
bits?
Why does Man behave destructively, irrationally, fighting wars,
killing, ruining whole sections of Mankind?
What is the source of all neuroses, psychoses, insanities?
Let us return to a brief examination of the analytical mind. Let us
examine its memory banks. Here we find all the sense concepts on
file. Or so it appears at first glance. Let us take another look, a
look at the time factor. There is a time sense about these
analytical mind banks. It is
60
very accurate, as though the organism were equipped with a fine
watch. But there is something wrong here about time - it has gaps
in it! There are moments when nothing seems to be filed in these
standard banks. These are gaps which take place during moments of
"unconsciousness," that state of being caused by anaesthesia,
drugs, injury or shock.
This is the only data missing from a standard bank. If in hypnotic
trance you examine a patient's memory of an operation these
incidents are the only periods in the banks you will not find. You
can find these if you care to look and don't care what happens to
your patient - of which more later. But the point is that there is
something missing which has always been considered by one and all
in any age never to have been recorded.
One and all in every age have never been able to put a finger on
insanity either. Are these two data in agreement and do they have
relationship? They definitely do.
There are two things which appear to be - but are not - recorded in
the standard banks: painful emotion and physical pain.
How would you go about the building of a sensitive machine upon
which the life and death affairs of an organism depended, which was
to be the chief tool of an individual? Would you leave its delicate
circuits prey to every overload or would you install a fuse system?
If a delicate instrument is in circuit with a power line, it is
protected by several sets of fuses. Any computer would be so
safeguarded.
It happens that there is some small evidence to support the
electrical theory of the nervous system. In pain there are very
heavy overcharges in the nerves. It may well have been - and
elsewhere some dianetic computations have been made about this -
that the brain is the absorber for overcharges of power resulting
from injury, the power itself being generated by the injured cells
in the area of
61
injury. That is theory and has no place here save to serve as an
example. We are dealing now only with scientific fact.
The action of the analytical mind during a moment of intense pain
is suspended. In fact, the analytical mind behaves just as though
it were an organ to which vital supply was shut off whenever shock
is present.
As an example, a man struck in the side by a car is knocked
"unconscious" and on regaining "consciousness" has no record of the
period when he was "knocked out." This would be a non-survival
circumstance. It means that there would be no volition on the part
of anyone who was injured, and this is the time when the organism
most requires volition. So this is non-survival, if the whole mind
cuts out whenever pain appears. Would an organism with more than a
billion years of biological engineering behind it leave a problem
like this unsolved?
Indeed, the organism solved the problem. Maybe the problem is very
difficult, biologically, and maybe the solution is not very good,
but large provision has been made for those moments when the
organism is "unconscious."
The answer to the problem of making the organism react in moments
of "unconsciousness" or near "unconsciousness" is also the answer
to insanity and psycho-somatic illnesses and all the strange mental
quirks to which people are liable and which gave rise to that fable
"it is human to err."
Clinical tests prove these statements to be scientific facts:
1. The mind records on some level continuously during the entire
life of the organism.
2. All recordings of the lifetime are available.
3. "Unconsciousness," in which the mind is oblivious of its
surroundings, is possible only in
62
death and does not exist as total amnesia in life.
4. All mental and physical derangements of a psychic nature come
about from moments of "unconsciousness."
5. Such moments can be reached and drained of charge with the
result of returning the mind to optimum operating condition.
"Unconsciousness" is the single source of aberration. There is no
such action as "mental conditioning" except on a conscious training
level (where it exists only with the consent of the person).
If you care to make the experiment you can take a man, render him
"unconscious," hurt him and give him information. By dianetic
technique, no matter what information you gave him, it can be
recovered. This experiment should not be carelessly conducted
because you might also render him insane.
A pale shade of this operation can be obtained by hypnosis, either
by its usual techniques or drugs. By installing "positive
suggestions" in a subject, he can be made to act like an insane
person. This test is not a new one. It has been well known that
compulsions or repressions can be so introduced into the psyche.
The ancient Greek was quite familiar with it and used it to produce
various delusions.
There is what is known as a "post-hypnotic suggestion." An
understanding of this can assist an understanding of the basic
mechanism of insanity. The actions under both circumstances are not
identical, but they are similar enough in their essence.
A man is placed in a hypnotic trance by standard hypnotic technique
or some hypnotic drug. The operator then may say to him, "When you
awaken there is something you must do. Whenever I touch my tie you
will remove your coat. When I let go my tie, you will put on your
coat. Now you will forget that I have told you to do this."
63
The subject is then awakened. He is not consciously aware of the
command. If told he had been given an order while "asleep," he
would resist the idea or shrug but he would not know. The operator
then touches his tie. The subject may make some remark about its
being too warm and so take his coat off. The operator then releases
his tie. The subject may remark that he is now cold and will put
his coat back on. The operator then touches his tie. The subject
may say that his coat has been to the tailor's and with much
conversation finally explain why he is taking it off, perhaps to
see if the back seam had been sewn properly. The operator then
releases his tie and the subject says he is satisfied with the
tailor and so replaces his coat. The operator may touch his tie
many times and each time receive action on the part of the subject.
At last the subject may become aware, from the expressions on
people's faces, that something is wrong. He will not know what is
wrong. He will not even know that the touching of the tie is the
signal which makes him take off his coat. He will begin to grow
uncomfortable. He may find fault with the operator's appearance and
begin to criticize his clothing. He still does not know the tie is
a signal. He will still react and remain in ignorance that there is
some strange reason he must take off his coat - all he knows is
that he is uncomfortable with his coat on whenever the tie is
touched, uncomfortable with his coat off every time the tie is
released.
These various actions are very important to an understanding of the
reactive mind. Hypnotism is a laboratory tool. It is not used to
any extent in dianetic therapy, but it has served as a means of
examining minds and getting their reactions. Hypnotism is a wild
variable. A few people can be hypnotized, many cannot be. Hypnotic
suggestions will sometimes "take" and sometimes they won't.
Sometimes they make persons well and sometimes they make them ill -
the same suggestion reacting differently in different people. An
engineer knows how to make use of a
64
wild variable. There is something which makes it unpredictable.
Finding out the basic reason hypnotism was a variable helped to
discover the source of insanity. And understanding the mechanism of
the post-hypnotic suggestion can aid an understanding of
aberration.
No matter how foolish a suggestion is given to a subject under
hypnosis, he will carry it out one way or another. He can be told
to remove his shoes or call someone at ten the following day or to
eat peas for breakfast and he will. These are direct orders and he
will comply with them. He can be told that his hats do not fit him
and he will believe that they do not. Any suggestion will operate
within his mind unbeknownst to his higher levels of awareness.
Very complex suggestions can be given. One such would be to the
effect that he was unable to utter the word "I." He would omit it
from his conversation, using remarkable makeshifts without being
"aware" that he was having to avoid the word. Or he could be told
that he must never look at his hands and he will not. These are
repressions. Given to the subject when drugged or in a hypnotic
sleep, these suggestions operate when he is awake. And they will
continue to operate until released by the hypnotic operator.
He can be told that he has an urge to sneeze every time he hears
the word "rug" and that he will sneeze when it is spoken. He can be
told that he must jump two feet in the air every time he sees a cat
and he will jump. And he will do these things after he has been
awakened. These are compulsions.
He can be told that he will think very sexual thoughts about a
certain girl but that when he thinks them he will feel his nose
itch. He can be told that he has a continual urge to lie down and
sleep and that every time he lies down he will feel that he cannot
sleep. He will experience these things. These are neuroses.
In further experiments he can be told, when he is in his hypnotic
"sleep," that he is the president of the country
65
and that the secret service agents are trying to murder him. Or he
can be told that he is being fed poison in every restaurant in
which he attempts to eat. These are psychoses.
He can be informed that he is really another person and that he
owns a yacht and answers to the name of "Sir Reginald." Or he can
be told that he is a thief, that he has a prison record, and that
the police are looking for him. These would be schizophrenic and
paranoid-schizophrenic insanities respectively.
The operator can inform the subject that the subject is the most
wonderful person on earth and that everybody thinks so. Or that the
subject is the object of adoration of all women. This would be a
manic-type insanity.
He can be convinced, while hypnotized, that when he wakes he will
feel so terrible that he will hope for nothing but death. This
would be the depressive-type insanity.
He can be told that all he can think about is how sick he is and
that every malady of which he reads becomes his. This would make
him react like a hypochondriac.
Thus we could go down the catalogue of mental ills and by
concocting positive suggestions to create the state of mind, we
could bring about, in the awakened subject, a semblance to every
insanity.
Understood that these are semblances. They are similar to insanity
in that the subject would act like an insane person. He would not
be an insane person. The moment the suggestion is relieved - the
subject being informed that it was a suggestion - the aberration
(and all these insanities, etc., are grouped under the heading of
aberration) theoretically vanishes.*
* An injunction here. These are tests. They have been made on
people who could be hypnotized and people who could not be but who
were drugged. They brought forth valuable data for dianetics. They
can be duplicated only when you know dianetics unless you want to
actually drive somebody insane by accident. For these suggestions
do not always vanish. Hypnotism is a wild variable. It is dangerous
and belongs in the parlor in the same way you would want an atom
bomb there.
66
The duplication of aberrations of all classes and kinds in subjects
who have been hypnotized or drugged has demonstrated that there is
some portion of the mind which is not in contact with the
consciousness but which contains data.
It was the search for this portion of the mind which led to the
resolution of the problem of insanity, psycho-somatic ills and
other aberrations. It was not approached through hypnotism, and
hypnotism is just another tool, a tool which is of only occasional
use in the practice of dianetics and is, indeed, not needed at all.
Here we have an individual who is acting sanely, who is given a
positive suggestion and who then temporarily acts insanely. His
sanity is restored by the release of the suggestion into his
consciousness, at which moment it loses its force upon him. But
this is only a semblance of the mechanism involved. The actual
insanity, one not laid now by some hypnotist, does not need to
emerge into the consciousness to be released. There is this
difference and others between hypnotism and the actual source of
aberration; but hypnotism is a demonstration of its working parts.
Review the first example of the positive suggestion. The subject
was "unconscious," which is to say, he was not in possession of
complete awareness or self-determinism. He was given something he
must do and the something was hidden from his consciousness. The
operator gave him a signal. When the signal occurred, the subject
performed an act. The subject gave reasons for the act which were
not the real reasons for it. The subject found fault with the
operator and the operator's clothing but did not see that it was
the tie which signaled the action. The suggestion was released and
the subject no longer felt a compulsion to perform the act.
67
These are the parts of aberration. Once one knows exactly what
parts of what are aberrations, the whole problem is very simple. It
seems incredible at first glance that the source could have
remained so thoroughly hidden for so many thousands of years of
research. But at, second glance, it becomes a wonder that the
source was ever discovered. For it is hidden cunningly and well.
"Unconsciousness" of the non-hypnotic variety is a little more
rugged. It takes more than a few passes of the hand to cause
"unconsciousness" of the insanity-producing variety.
The shock of accidents, the anaesthetics used for operations, the
pain of injuries and the deliriums of illness are the principal
sources of what we call "unconsciousness."
The mechanism, in our analogue of the mind, is very simple. In
comes a destructive wave of physical pain or a pervading poison
such as ether and out go some or all of the fuses of the analytical
mind. When it goes out, so go what we know as the standard memory
banks.
The periods of "unconsciousness" are blanks in the standard memory
banks. These missing periods make up what dianetics calls the
reactive mind bank.
The times when the analytical mind is in full operation plus the
times when the reactive mind is in operation are a continuous line
of consecutive recording for the entire period of life.
During the periods when the analytical mind is cut out of circuit
in full or in part, the reactive mind cuts in in full or in part.
In other words, if the analytical mind is unfused so that it is
half out of circuit, the reactive mind is half in circuit. No such
sharp percentages are actually possible, but this is to give an
approximation.
When the individual is "unconscious" in full or in part, the
reactive mind is cut in in full or in part. When he is fully
conscious, his analytical mind is fully in command of the organism.
When his consciousness is reduced,
68
the reactive mind is cut into the circuit just that much.
The moments which contain "unconsciousness" in the individual are
contra-survival moments, by and large. Therefore it is vital that
something take over so that the individual can go through motions
to save the whole organism. The fighter who fights half out on his
feet, the burned man who drags himself out of the fire - these are
cases when the reactive mind is valuable.
The reactive mind is very rugged. It would have to be in order to
stand up to the pain waves which knock out other sentience in the
body. It is not very refined. But it is most awesomely accurate. It
possesses a low order of computing ability, an order which is
sub-moron, but one would expect a low order of ability from a mind
which stays in circuit when the body is being crushed or fried.
The reactive bank does not store memories as we think of them. It
stores engrams. * These engrams are a complete recording, down to
the last accurate detail, of every perception present in a moment
of partial or full "unconsciousness." They are just as accurate as
any other recording in the body. But they have their own force.
They are like phonograph records or motion pictures, if these
contained all perceptions of sight, sound, smell, taste, organic
sensation, etc.
The difference between an engram and a memory, however, is quite
distinct. An engram can be permanently fused into any and all body
circuits and behaves like an entity.
In all laboratory tests on these engrams they were found to possess
"inexhaustible" sources of power to command the body. No matter how
many times one was
* The word engram, in dianetics is used in its severely accurate
sense as a "definite and permanent trace left by a stimulus on the
protoplasm of a tissue." It is considered as a unit group of
stimuli impinged solely on the cellular being.
69
reactivated in an individual, it was still powerful. Indeed, it
became even more able to exert its power in proportion to its
reactivation.
The only thing which could even begin to shake these engrams was
the technique which developed into dianetic therapy, which will be
covered in full in the third section of this volume.
This is an example of an engram: A woman is knocked down by a blow.
She is rendered "unconscious." She is kicked and told she is a
faker, that she is no good, that she is always changing her mind. A
chair is overturned in the process. A faucet is running in the
kitchen. A car is passing in the street outside. The engram
contains a running record of all these perceptions: sight, sound,
tactile, taste, smell, organic sensation, kinetic sense, joint
position, thirst record, etc. The engram would consist of the whole
statement made to her when she was "unconscious": the voice tones
and emotion in the voice, the sound and feel of the original and
later blows, the tactile of the floor, the feel and sound of the
chair overturning, the organic sensation of the blow, perhaps the
taste of blood in her mouth or any other taste present there, the
smell of the person attacking her and the smells in the room, the
sound of the passing car's motor and tires, etc.
These would all be considered something on the order of a "positive
suggestion." But there is something else here which is new,
something which is not in the standard banks except by context:
pain and painful emotion.
These things are what make the difference between the standard
banks and the reactive engram banks: physical pain and painful
emotion. Physical pain and painful emotion are the difference
between an engram, which is the cause of aberration, all
aberration, and a memory.*
* In dianetics, a memory is considered to be any concept of
perceptions stored in the standard memory banks which is
potentially recallable by the "I." A scene beheld by the eyes and
perceived by the other senses becomes a record in the standard
memory banks and later may be recalled by "I" for reference.
70
We all have heard that bad experience is helpful to living and that
without bad experience, man never learns. This may be very, very
true. But it doesn't embrace the engram. That isn't experience.
That is commanded action.
Perhaps before Man had a large vocabulary, these engrams were of
some use to him. They were survival in ways which will be developed
later. But when Man acquired a fine, homonymic (words that sound
the same but mean different things) language, and indeed, when he
acquired any language, these engrams were much more a liability
than a help. And now with Man well evolved, these engrams do not
protect him at all but make him mad, inefficient and ill.
The proof of any assertion lies in its applicability. When these
engrams are deleted from the reactive mind bank, rationality and
efficiency are enormously heightened, health is greatly increased
and the individual computes rationally on the survival conduct
pattern, which is to say, he enjoys himself and the society of
those around him and is constructive and creative. He is
destructive only when something actually threatens the sphere of
his dynamics.
These engrams, then, are entirely negative in value in this stage
of Man's development. When he was nearer the level of his animal
cousins (who have, all of them, reactive minds of this same kind),
he might have had use for the data. But language and his changed
existence make any engram a distinct liability, and no engram has
any constructive value.
The reactive mind was provided to secure survival. It still
pretends to act in that fashion. But its wild errors now lead only
in the other direction.
71
There are actually three kinds of engrams, all of them aberrative:
First is the contra-survival engram. This contains physical pain,
painful emotion, all other perceptions and menace to the organism.
A child knocked out by a rapist and abused receives this type of
engram. The contra-survival engram contains apparent or actual
antagonism to the organism.
The second engram type is the pro-survival engram. A child who has
been abused is ill. He is told, while he is partially or wholly
"unconscious," that he will be taken care of, that he is dearly
loved, etc. This engram is not taken as contra-survival but
pro-survival. It seems to be in favor of survival. Of the two this
last is the most aberrative since it is reinforced by the law of
affinity which is always more powerful than fear. Hypnotism preys
on this characteristic of the reactive mind, being a sympathetic
address to an artificially unconscious subject. Hypnotism is as
limited as it is because it does not contain, as a factor, physical
pain, and painful emotion: things which keep an engram out of sight
and moored below the level of "consciousness."
The third is the painful emotion engram which is similar to the
other engrams. It is caused by the shock of sudden loss such as the
death of a loved one.
The reactive mind bank is composed exclusively of these engrams.
The reactive mind thinks exclusively with these engrams. And it
"thinks" with them in a way which would make Korzybski swear, for
it thinks in terms of full identification, which is to say
identities, one thing identical to another.
If the analytical mind did a computation on apples and worms, it
could be stated, probably, as follows: some apples have worms in
them, other don't; when biting an apple one occasionally finds a
worm unless the apple has been sprayed properly; worms in apples
leaves holes.
The reactive mind, however, doing a computation on apples and worms
as contained in its engram bank, would calculate as follows: apples
are worms are bites are
72
holes in apples are holes in anything are apples and always are
worms are apples are bites, etc.
The analytical mind's computations might embrace the most
staggering summations of calculus, the shifty turns of symbolic
logic, the computations requisite to bridge-building or
dress-making. Any mathematical equation ever seen came from the
analytical mind and might be used by the analytical mind in
resolving the most routine problems.
But not the reactive mind! That's so beautifully, wonderfully
simple that it can be stated, in operation, to have just one
equation: A = A = A = A = A.
Start any computation with the reactive mind. Start it with the
data it contains, of course. Any datum is just the same to it as
any other datum in the same experience.
An analytical computation done on the woman being kicked, as
mentioned, would be that women get themselves into situations
sometimes when they get kicked and hurt and men have been known to
kick and hurt women.
A reactive mind computation about his engram, as an engram, would
be: the pain of the kick equals the pain of the blow equals the
overturning chair equals the passing car equals the faucet equals
the fact that she is a faker equals the fact that she is no good
equals the fact that she changes her mind equals the voice tones of
the man equals the emotion equals a faker equals a faucet running
equals the pain of the kick equals organic sensation in the area of
the kick equals the overturning chair equals changing one's mind
equals.... But why continue? Every single perception in this engram
equals every other perception in this engram. What? That's crazy?
Precisely!
Let us further examine our post-hypnotic positive suggestion of the
touched tie and the removed coat. In this we have the visible
factors of how the reactive mind operates.
This post-hypnotic suggestion needs only an emotional
73
charge and physical pain to make it a dangerous engram. Actually it
is an engram of a sort. It is laid in by sympathy between the
operator and subject, which would make it a sympathy engram -
pro-survival.
Now we know that the operator had only to touch his tie to make the
awakened subject remove his coat. The subject did not know what it
was which caused him to remove his coat and found all manner of
explanation for the action, none of which was the right one. The
engram, the post-hypnotic suggestion in this case, was actually
placed in the reactive mind bank. It was below the level of
consciousness, it was compulsion springing from below the level of
consciousness. And it worked upon the muscles to make the subject
remove his coat. It was data fused into the circuits of the body
below the command level of the analytical mind and operated not
only upon the body but also upon the analytical mind itself.
If this subject took off his coat every time he saw somebody touch
a necktie, society would account him slightly mad. And yet there
was no power of consent about this. If he had attempted to thwart
the operator by refusing to remove the coat, the subject would have
experienced great discomfort of one sort or another.
Let us now take an example of the reactive mind's processes in a
lower echelon of life: a fish swims into the shallows where the
water is brackish, yellow, and tastes of iron. He has just taken a
mouthful of shrimp when a bigger fish rushes at him and knocks
against his tail.
The small fish manages to get away but he has been physically hurt.
Having negligible analytical powers, the small fish depends upon
reaction for much of his choice of activity.
Now he heals his tail and goes on about his affairs. But
one day he is attacked by a larger fish and gets his tail
bumped. This time he is not seriously hurt, merely bumped. But
something has happened. Something within him considers that in his
choice of action he is now being careless. Here is a second injury
in the same area.
74
The computation on the fish reactive level was: shallows equals
brackish equals yellow equals iron taste equals pain in tail equals
shrimp in mouth, and any one of these equals any other.
The bump in the tail on the second occasion keyed-in the engram. It
demonstrated to the organism that something like the first accident
(identity thought) could happen again. Therefore, beware!
The small fish, after this, swims into brackish water. This makes
him slightly "nervous." But he goes on swimming and finds himself
in yellow and brackish water. And still he does not turn back. He
begins to get a small pain in his tail. But he keeps on swimming.
Suddenly he gets a taste of iron and the pain in his tail turns on
heavily. And away he goes like a flash. No fish was after him.
There were shrimp to be had there. But away he went anyway.
Dangerous place! And if he had not turned away, he would have
really gotten himself a pain in the tail.
The mechanism is survival activity of a sort. In a fish it may
serve a purpose. But in a man, who takes off a coat every time
somebody touches a tie, the survival mechanism has long outlived
its time. But it is there!
Let us further investigate our young man and the coat. The signal
for the coat removal was very precise. The operator touched his
tie. This is equivalent to any or all of the perceptions the fish
received and which made the fish turn back. The touch of the tie
could have been a dozen things. Any one of the dozen might have
signaled the removal of the coat.
In the case of the woman who was knocked out and kicked, any
perception in the engram she received has some quality of
restimulation. Running water from a faucet might not have affected
her greatly. But water running from a faucet plus a passing car
might have begun some slight reactivation of the engram, a vague
discomfort in the areas where she was struck and kicked, not enough
yet to cause her real pain but there all the
75
same. To the running water and the passing car we add the sharp
falling of a chair and she experiences a shock of mild proportion.
Add now the smell and voice of the man who kicked her and the pain
begins to grow. The mechanism is telling her that she is in
dangerous quarters, that she should leave. But she is not a fish,
she is a highly sentient being, to our knowledge the most complex
mental structure so far evolved on Earth, organism of the species,
Man. There are many other factors in the problem than this one
engram. She stays. The pains in the areas where she was abused
become a predisposition to illness or are chronic illness in
themselves, minor it is true in the case of this one incident, but
illness just the same. Her affinity with the man who beat her may
be so high that the analytical level, being assisted by a normally
high general tone, may counter against these pains. But if that
level is low, without much to assist it, then the pains can become
major.
The fish that was so struck and received an engram did not disavow
shrimp. Shrimp might have made him a little less enthusiastic
afterwards, but the survival potential of shrimp-eating made shrimp
equal far more pleasure than it did pain.
A pleasant and hopeful life in general - and never think we
intimate that the woman stays for food alone whatever the wits say
about women - has a high survival potential, and that can overcome
a very great deal of pain. As the survival potential diminishes,
however, the level of pain (Zone 0 and Zone 1) is more closely
approached and such an engram could begin to be reactivated
severely.
There is another factor here, however, besides pain - in fact,
several more factors. If the young man with the detachable coat had
been given one of the neurotic positive suggestions as listed a few
pages back, he would have reacted to it on signal.
The engram this woman has received contains a neurotic positive
suggestion quite in addition to the general
76
restimulators such as the faucet and the car and the overturning
chair. She has been told that she is a faker, that she is no good,
and that she is always changing her mind. When the engram is
restimulated in one of the great many ways possible, she has a
"feeling" that she is no good, a faker, and she will change her
mind.
There are several cases to hand which peculiarly illustrate the
sadness of this. One case in particular which was cleared had been
beaten severely many times and told a similar thing each time, all
derogatory. The content inferred that she was very loose morally
and would cohabit with anyone. She was brought in as a case by her
father - she had since been divorced - who complained that she was
very loose morally and had cohabited with several men in as many
weeks. She herself admitted that she was, she could not see how it
could be and it worried her, but she just "could not seem to help
it." Examination of the engrams in her reactive mind bank brought
forth a long series of beatings with this content. Because this was
a matter of research, not treatment - although that was given - her
former husband was contacted. An examination, independent of her
knowledge, demonstrated his rage dramatization to contain these
very words. He had beaten his wife into being a morally loose woman
because he was afraid of morally loose women.
All cases examined in all this research were checked, the patient's
engrams against the engrams in the donor. The contents of the
incidents were verified wherever possible and were found uniformly
to agree. Every safeguard was made to prevent any other method of
communication between donor and patient. Everything found in the
"unconscious" periods of every patient, when checked against other
source, was found to be exact.
The analogy between hypnotism and aberration bears out well.
Hypnotism plants by positive suggestion one or another form of
insanity. It is usually a temporary planting, but sometimes the
hypnotic suggestion will not "lift" or remove in a way desirable to
the hypnotist. The danger
77
of running experiments with hypnosis. on uncleared patients is
found in another mechanism of the reactive kind.
When an engram such as our example above exists, the woman
obviously was "unconscious" at the time she received the engram.
She had no standard bank memory (record) of the incident beyond the
knowledge that she had been knocked out by the man. The engram was
not, then, an experience as we understand the word. It could work
from below to aberrate her thinking processes, it could give her
strange pains - which she attributed to something else - in the
areas injured. But it was not known to her.
The key-in was necessary to activate the engram. But what,
precisely, could key it in? At some later time when she was tired
the man threatened to strike her again and called her names. This
was conscious level experience. It was found to be "mentally
painful" by her. And it was "mentally painful" only because there
was real, live, physical pain unseen under it, which had been
"keyed-in" by the conscious experience. The second experience was a
lock. It was a memory but it had a new kind of action in the
standard banks. It had too much power and it gained that power from
a past physical blow. The reactive mind is not too careful about
its time clock. It can't tell one year old from ninety, in fact,
when a key-in begins. The actual engram moved up under the standard
bank.
She thinks she is worried about what he said in the lock
experience. She is actually worried about the engram. In this way
memories become "painful." But pain doesn't store in the standard
banks. There is no place in that bank for pain. None. There is a
place for the concept of pain and these concepts of what is painful
are good enough to keep the sentient organism called Man away from
all the pain he believes is actually dangerous. In a
78
clear there are no pain-inducing memories because there is no
physical pain record left to ruin the machinery from the reactive
mind bank.
The young man with the detachable coat did not know what was
worrying him or what made him do what he did. The person with an
engram does not know what is worrying him. He thinks it is the lock
and the lock may be a very long way removed from anything
resembling the engram. The lock may have similar perceptic content.
But it may be on another subject entirely.
It is not very complicated to undersand what these engrams do. They
are simply moments of physical pain strong enough to throw part or
all the analytical machinery out of circuit; they are antagonism to
the survival of the organism or pretended sympathy to the
organism's survival. That is the entire definition. Great or little
"unconsciousness," physical pain, perceptic content and
contra-survival or pro-survival data. They are handled by the
reactive mind, which thinks exclusively in identities of everything
equals everything. And they enforce their commands upon the
organism by wielding the whip of physical pain. If the organism
does not do exactly as they say (and believe any clear, that's
impossible!), the physical pain turns on. They steer a person like
a keeper steers a tiger - and they can make a tiger out of a man in
the process without much trouble - and give him mange into the
bargain.
If man had not invented language, or, as will be demonstrated, if
his languages were a little less homonymic and more specific with
their personal pronouns, engrams would still be survival data and
the mechanism would work. But Man has outgrown their use. He chose
between language and potential madness and for the vast benefits of
the former he received the curse of the latter.
The engram is the single and sole source of aberration and
psycho-somatic illness.
79
An enormous quantity of data has been sifted. Not one single
exception has been found. In "normal people," in the neurotic and
insane, the removal of these engrams wholly or in part, without
other therapy, has uniformly brought about a state greatly superior
to the current norm. No need was found for any theory or therapy
other than those given in this book for the treatment of all
psychic or psycho-somatic ills.
80
CHAPTER III
The Cell and the Organism
The reason the engram so long remained hidden as the single source
of aberration and psycho-somatic ills is the wide and almost
infinitely complex manifestations which can derive from simple
engrams.
Several theories could be postulated as to why the human mind
evolved exactly as it did, but these are theories, and dianetics is
not concerned with structure. A comment or two as a stimulation to
future workers in that field might be made, however, wholly as a
postulate, that there is a definite connection between any
electriclike energy in the body and the energy effusion of cells
undergoing injury. A theory could be constructed along the lines
that injured cells, further injuring their neighbors by a discharge
of electric-like energy, forced the development of a special cell
which would act as a conduit to "bleed off" this painful charge.
The conduits of cells might have become neurons and the charge
might have been better distributed so through the body with less
likelihood of local incapacitation at the point of the injury
impact. These conduits - neurons - might have been started in
formation by impacts at the extremity of the body toward the
direction of locomotion. This would make the skull the greatest
mass of neurons. Man, walking upright, might have had another new
point of impact, the forehead, and so gained his pre-frontal lobes.
And maybe not. That is just theory, with only a few data to support
it which have a scientific value. And it has not been subjected to
experiment of any kind whatever.
This much, however, has to be advanced as theory on structure. The
cell is one of the basic building blocks of
81
the body. Cells, the better to survive, seem to have become
colonies which, in turn, had the primary interest, survival. And
the colonies developed or recruited into aggregations which in turn
were organisms, also with the sole purpose of survival. And the
organisms developed minds to coordinate the muscles and resolve the
problems of survival. Again, this is still theory and even if it
was the track of reasoning which led toward dianetics, it can be
completely wrong. It works. It can be pulled away from dianetics
and dianetics will remain a science and go on working. The concept
of the electronic brain was not vital but only useful to dianetics
and it could be swept away as well - dianetics would still stand. A
science is a changing affair as far as its internal theory goes. In
dianetics we have our wedge into an enormous scope of research. As
dianetics stands, it works and it works every time and without
exception. The reasons why it works will undoubtedly be mulled over
and changed here and there to its betterment - if they aren't, an
abiding faith in this generation of scientists and the future
generations will not have been justified.
Why we talk about cells will become apparent as we progress. The
reason we know that past concepts of structure are not correct is
because they don't work as function. All our facts are functional
and these facts are scientific facts, supported wholly and
completely by laboratory evidence. Function precedes structure.
James Clerk Maxwell's mathematics were postulated and electricity
was widely and beneficially used long before anyone had any real
idea about the structure of the atom. Function always comes before
structure. The astounding lack of progress in the field of the
human mind during the past thousands of years is partly
attributable to its "organ of thought" lying within a field,
medicine, which was and long may be an art, not a science. Basic
philosophy to explain life will have to come before that art makes
much further progress.
82
What the capabilities of the cell are, for instance, have been but
poorly studied. Some work has been carried on in recent years to
find out more, but basic philosophy was absent. The cell was being
observed, not predicted.
The studies of cells in Man have been largely done from dead
tissue. An unknown quality is missing from dead tissue, the
important quality - life.
In dianetics, on the level of laboratory observation, we discover
much to our astonishment that cells are evidently sentient in some
currently inexplicable way. Unless we postulate a human soul
entering the sperm and ovum at conception, there are things which
no other postulate will embrace than that these cells are in some
way sentient. Entering a new field with postulates which work in
all directions - and the basic philosophy of survival is a pilot
which leads us on and on into further and further realms,
explaining and predicting phenomena on every hand - it is
inevitable that data will turn up which does not agree with past
theory. When that data is as scientific as the observation that
when an apple is dropped under usual conditions on Earth it falls,
one cannot help but accept it. Abandoning past theories may do
damage to treasured beliefs and one's nostalgic love of the old
school tie, but a fact is a fact.
The cells as thought units evidently have an influence, as cells,
upon the body as a thought unit and an organism. We do not have to
untangle this structural problem to resolve our functional
postulates. The cells evidently retain engrams of painful events.
After all, they are the things which get injured. And they
evidently retain a whip hand of punishment for every time the
analyzer fails them. The story of the engram seems to be a story of
a battle between the troops and the general every time the general
gets some of the troops killed off. The less fortunate this general
is in protecting these troops, the more power the troops assume.
The cells evidently pushed the brain on an upward evolution toward
higher
83
sentience. Pain reversed the process as though the cells were sorry
they had put so much power in the hands of a central commander.
The reactive mind may very well be the combined cellular
intelligence. One need not assume that it is, but it is a handy
structural theory in the lack of any real work done in this field
of structure. The reactive engram bank may be material stored in
the cells themselves. It does not matter whether this is credible
or incredible just now. Something has to be said about it to give
one a mental hold on what happens during moments of
"unconsciousness."
The scientific fact, observed and tested, is that the organism, in
the presence of physical pain, lets the analyzer get knocked out of
circuit so that there is a limited quantity or no quantity at all
of personal awareness as a unit organism. It does this either to
protect the analyzer or to withdraw its power in the belief that an
engram is best in an emergency - with which the analyzer, by the
way, on observed experience, does not agree.
Every percept present, including physical pain, is recorded during
these non-analytical moments. Whenever pain is present - physical
pain - that is, the analyzer gets shut down to a small or large
extent. If the duration of the pain is only an instant, there is
still an instant there of analytical reduction. This can be proven
very easily - just try to recall the last time you were seriously
hurt and see if there isn't at least a momentary blank period.
Going to sleep under anaesthetic and waking up some time later is a
more complicated sort of shut-down in that it includes physical
pain but is initially caused by a poison (and all anaesthetics are
poisons, technically). Then there is the condition of suffocating,
as in drowning, and this is a shut-down period to greater or lesser
extent. And there is the condition caused by blood, for one cause
or another, leaving the area or areas which
84
contain analytical power - wherever they are - and this again
causes a greater or lesser degree of analytical shutdown: such
incidents include shock (in which the blood tends to lake in the
center of the body), the loss of blood by surgery or injury or
anemia and the closing of the arteries leading through the throat.
Natural sleep causes a reduction of analytical activity but is
actually not very deep or serious; by dianetic therapy any
experience occurring during sleep can be recovered with ease.
It can now be seen that there are many ways in which analytical
power can be shut down. And it can be seen that there is greater or
lesser reduction. When one burns one's finger with a cigarette,
there is a small instant of pain and a small amount of reduction.
When one undergoes an operation, the duration may be in terms of
hours and the amount of shut-down may be extreme. The duration and
the amount of reduction are two different things, related but quite
dissimilar. This is not so very important but it is mentioned.
We have seen, reading in dianetics this far, that the principle of
the spectrum has been quite useful to us. And it can be seen that
the amount of reduction in analytical power can be described in the
same way that survival potential can be described. There can be a
very little bit and there can be a very great deal. Going back and
taking a look at the survival potential range, one can see that
there would be death at the bottom and immortality at the top.
There is "infinite" survival. Whether or not there can be infinite
analytical power is a matter of mysticism. But that there is a
definite relationship between individual tone and the amount of
analytical shutdown is a scientific fact. Put it this way: with the
individual well and happy and enthusiastic, analytical power can be
considered to be high (Zones 3 and 4). With the individual under
the wheels of a truck, "unconscious" and in agony, the analytical
power may be considered to
85
be ranging in Zone 0. There is a ratio between potential survival
and analytical power. As one goes down, so does the other. There is
more data to be concluded from this than one would think at first
glance. It is a very important ratio.
All the percepts are included in an engram. Two of these percepts
are physical pain and painful emotion. A third is organic
sensation, which is to say, the condition of the organism during
the moment of the engram. And how was the organism when the engram
was received? Greater or lesser "unconsciousness" was present. This
meant that there was an organic sensation of reduced analytical
power, since analytical power derives, evidently, from an organ or
organs in the body. If an engram is reactivated by a restimulator
or restimulators - that is to say if the individual with an engram
receives something in his environment similar to the perceptions in
the engram - the engram puts everything it contains - its percepts
such as faucets and words - into greater or lesser operation.
There can be greater or lesser restimulation. An engram can be put
into force just a little bit by restimulators in the environment of
the individual or, with many restimulators present and the body in
an already reduced state, the engram can go into a full force
display (which is covered later). But whether the engram is
slightly restimulated or greatly restimulated, everything in it
goes into effect one way or another.
There is just one common denominator of all engrams, just one thing
which every engram has and which is possessed by every other
engram. Each contains the datum that the analyzer is more or less
shut-down. There is a shut-down datum in every engram. Therefore,
every time an engram is restimulated, even though physical pain has
not been received by the body, some analytical power turns off, the
organ or organs which are the analyzer are fused out of circuit in
some degree.
86
This is highly important to an understanding of the mechanics of
aberration. It is a scientific fact, susceptible of proof, and it
never varies. This always happens: when an engram is received, the
analyzer is shut down by the physical pain and emotion; when the
engram is restimulated the analyzer shuts down as part of the
commands of the engram. Actually this is a very mechanical thing.
Engram is restimulated, part of the analytical power is shut down.
This is as inevitable as turning on and off an electric light. Pull
the cord and the light goes off. The reduction of the analyzer is
not that sharp - there are grades of light - but it is just as
mechanical.
Put a man under ether, hurt him in the chest. He has received an
engram because his analytical power was turned off first by ether
and then by a chest pain. While he was there on the operating
table, the reactive mind recorded the click of instruments,
everything said, all sounds and smells. Let us suppose that a nurse
was holding one of his feet because he was kicking. This is a
complete engram.
The engram will be keyed-in by something in the future, a similar
incident. After this, in greater or lesser degree, whenever he
hears clicks like instrument clicks he gets nervous. If he pays
attention to what is happening in his body at that minute, he may
find that his foot feels slightly as if it were being held. But he
is not likely to give any attention to his foot because if he had
any attention to give, the chest pain would be found present in
some degree. But his analytical ability has been turned off
slightly. As the foot felt it was being held, so does the analyzer
have the conception of being shut down by ether and pain. The
restimulator (the clicking) tended to bring the whole engram
slightly into being and part of the engram command is a reduced
analytical power.
This is "push-button" in its precision. If one knew another's main
restimulators (words, voice tones, music, whatever they are -
things which are filed in the reactive
87
mind bank as parts of engrams) one could turn another's analytical
power almost completely off, actually render him unconscious.
We all know people who make us feel stupid. There can be two causes
for that but both of them are from engrams and one of them is the
fact that no matter what engram is brought into restimulation, part
of the analytical power is turned off.
Engrams can, if environment is uniform, be held in chronic
restimulation. This means a chronic partial shutdown of analytical
power. The recovery of intelligence by a clear and the rise of that
intelligence to such fantastic heights results in part from the
relief of word commands in engrams that he is stupid and in a
larger part from the relief of this chronic shut-down condition.
This is not theory. This is scientific fact. It is strictly
test-tube. The engram contains the percept of a shutdown analyzer;
when it is restimulated the engram puts that datum back into force
in some degree.
Engrams, then, being received in "unconsciousness" cause a partial
"unconsciousness" to exist every time they are restimulated. The
person who has an engram (any aberree) need not receive new
physical pain to have a new moment of partial "unconsciousness"
take place. Feeling "dopey" or "sleepy" or "dull" results in part
from a partially shut-down analyzer. Being "nervous" or in a rage
or frightened also carries with it partially shutoff analytical
power.
The hypnotist has "success" where he does because he is able, by
talking to people about "sleep," to put into restimulation some
engram which contains the word sleep and shut-down analytical
power. This is one of the reasons hypnotism "works."
The whole society, however, is liable to analytical shutdown in
greater or lesser degree by the restimulation of engrams.
88
The number of engrams a person's reactive bank contains may not,
however, establish the amount of analytical reduction to which he
is subjected. A person may have engrams and they may not have been
keyed-in. And if they have been keyed-in, he might not be in an
environment which contains any great number of restimulators. Under
these conditions his survival zone position may be high even though
he is possessed of a great many engrams. And again, he might have
educated himself over and above these engrams to some slight
degree.
But a person who has keyed-in engrams and does exist in the area of
many restimulators is liable to an enormous amount of restimulation
and analytical shut-down. This is a normal condition. If a person
has a large number of engrams and they are keyed-in and he lives
around many restimulators his condition can vary from normal to
insane. And in a single day - as in the case of a man who
experiences moments of rage or a woman who drops into apathies -
the condition of a person may vary from normal to insane and back
to normal. We take here the word "insane" to mean utter
irrationality. So there is temporary or chronic insanity.
The court of law which goes through the lugubrious process of
having a man pronounced sane or insane after that man has murdered
somebody is itself being irrational. Of course the man was insane
when he committed the murder. What the court is asking now is
whether or not the man is chronically insane. This has little
bearing on the matter. If a man has gone insane enough to murder
once, he will go insane enough in the future to murder again.
Chronic, then, means either a chronic cycle or a continuous
condition. The law says sanity is the "ability to tell right from
wrong." When Man is subject to a mechanism (and all men are) which
lets him be rational one minute and restimulated the next, none in
the society, if uncleared, can be considered able to always tell
89
right from wrong. This is completely aside from what the law means
by "right" and what it means by "wrong."
This is an example of the roller-coaster sanity curve of the
aberree. All aberrees possess engrams (the normal number is
probably in the hundreds per individual). Analytically people have
a wide latitude of choice and they can deal even with philosophic
rights and wrongs. But in aberrated persons the engram bank is
always susceptible of restimulation. The "sanest" aberree of
Tuesday may be a murderer on Wednesday if the exactly right
situation occurs to trip the exact engram. A clear is not entirely
predictable in any given situation - he has such a wide power of
choice. But an aberrated person transcends all predictability for
the following reasons: (1) what engrams an aberree has in his
reactive engram bank none know including himself; (2) what
situation will contain what restimulators is a matter of chance;
and (3) what his power of choice will be with the factors in the
engrams on a reactive level cannot be established.
The variety of conduct which one can evolve out of these basic
mechanics is so wide that it is no wonder that Man was considered
to be a rather hopeless case by some philosophies.
The cells, if the engram bank is retained on a cellular level,
might be theoretically supposed to have made sure that the analyzer
did not get too adventurous in this life and death matter of
living. They therefore could be considered to have copied down all
data contained in every moment of physical pain and emotion
resulting in or contained in "unconsciousness." Then when any data
similar to this appeared in the environment they could be wary and,
with a large number of restimulators in sight, they could be
considered to shut down the analyzer and proceed on reaction. This
has a crude safety factor. Obviously, if the organism survived
through one period of "unconsciousness," it could be theorized by
the cells that the placing of the data and action in effect under
90
circumstances which threatened to be similar would result once more
in survival. What's good enough for grandpa is good enough for me.
What was good enough in the bus accident is good enough in a bus.
This moronic "thinking" is typical of the reactive mind. It is just
the sort of thinking it does. It is the ultimate in conservatism.
It misses the point and important data at every turn, it overloads
the body with pain, it is a whirlpool of confusion. If there were
just one engram per situation, maybe it would get by. But there may
be ten engrams with similar data in them (an engram lock chain) and
yet the data may be so contradictory that when a new emergency
arises which contains the restimulators of the chain, no proper
past conduct can be put forth to meet it.
Obviously the x factor is language. The cells, if this is a problem
in cells (for recall, this part is theory based on data in an
effort to explain what happens and a theory can be altered without
altering the scientific usefulness of the facts), probably do not
understand languages very well. If they did they wouldn't evolve
such "solutions."
Take two engrams about baseball bats. In the first, the individual
is hit on the head and knocked out and somebody yells, "Run! Run!
Run!" In the second the individual is knocked out by the bat in the
same environment and somebody yells, "Stay there! You're safe!" Now
what does he do when he hears a baseball bat or smells one or sees
one or hears these words? Run or stay there! He has a similar pain
for each action. What actually happens? He gets a headache. This is
that thing called conflict. This is anxiety. And anxiety can become
very acute indeed on a purely mechanical level when one has ninety
engrams pulling him south and eighty-nine pulling him north. Does
he go north or south? Or does he have a "nervous breakdown?"
The level of brilliance of the reactive mind is about the same as a
phonograph. The needle gets put on the record and the record plays.
The reactive mind merely puts on
91
the needle. When it tries to select several records out and play
them all at once, things happen.
By intentional construction or accident in design or by-pass in
evolution - where the old, useless organ is still built - the cells
managed to hide this engram bank fairly well. Man is conscious in
his analytical mind. When he is "unconscious," his analytical mind
is unable to monitor the incoming data and the data is not to be
found in the thing we call, by analogue, the standard banks.
Therefore whatever came in passed by consciousness. And having
passed by, consciousness cannot (without dianetic process) recall
it, since there is no channel for recall.
The engram enters when consciousness is absent. It thereafter
operates directly into the organism. Only by dianetic therapy can
the analyzer come into possession of this data (and the removal of
it does not depend upon the analyzer contacting it at all, despite
an old belief that the "realization" of something cures it:
"realize" an engram and one is in quick trouble, without dianetic
technique). The engram is received by the cellular body. The
reactive mind could be the very lowest level of analytical power,
of course, but this does not alter the scientific fact that the
engram acts as if it were a soldered-in connection to the life
function regulator and the organic co-ordination and the basic
level of the analytical mind itself. By "soldered-in" is meant
"permanent connection." This keying-in is the hook-up of the engram
as part of the operating machinery of the body. An analytical
thought process is not permanently hooked in but can be thrown in
and out of circuit at the will of the analyzer. This is not true of
the engram, thus the term, "soldered-in."
The analytical mind lays down a training pattern; on a
stimulus-response basis this training pattern will work smoothly
and well whenever it will do the organism the most good. An engram
is a training pattern, all complete in a package, "permanently"
hooked into the circuits
92
(without dianetic therapy) and it goes into operation like a
training pattern without any consent whatever from the analyzer.
Influenced itself by the engram in the several ways of reduced
analytical power and positive suggestion in the engram, the
analytical mind is unable to discover any truly valid reason for
the conduct of the organism. It therefore makes up a reason, for
its job is to make sure the organism is always right. Just as the
young man with the detachable coat gave forth a number of silly
explanations as to why he was detaching his coat so does the
analytical mind, observing the body engaged in irrational actions,
including speech, for which there seems to be no accounting,
justify the actions. The engram can dictate all the various
processes incident to living; it can dictate beliefs, opinions,
thought processes or lack of them and actions of all kinds, and can
establish conditions remarkable for their complexity as well as
their stupidity. An engram can dictate anything it contains and
engrams can contain all the combinations of words in the entire
language. And the analytical mind is forced, in the light of
irrational behavior or conviction, to justify the acts and
conditions of the organism, as well as its own strange blunders.
This is justified thought.
There are three kinds of thought, then, of which the organism is
capable: (a) analytical thought, which is rational as modified by
education and viewpoint, (b) justified thought, analytical thought
attempting to explain reactions, and (c) reactive thought, which is
wholly in terms of everything in an engram equals everything in an
engram equals all the restimulators in the environment and all
things associated with those restimulators.
We have all seen somebody make a blunder and then give forth an
explanation of just why that blunder had been made. This is
justified thought. The blunder was made, unless out of education or
viewpoint, by an
93
engram. The analytical mind then had to justify the blunder to make
sure that the body was right and that its computations were right.
Now there are two other conditions which can be caused by engrams.
One is dramatization and the other is valence.
You have seen some child come forth with a tirade, a tantrum. You
have seen some man go through a whole rage action. You have seen
people go through a whole irrational set of actions. These are
dramatizations. They come about when an engram is thoroughly
restimulated, so thoroughly that its soldered-in aspect takes over
the organism. It may come into circuit slightly or wholly, which is
to say that there are degrees of dramatization. When it is in full
parade, the engram is running off verbatim and the individual is
like an actor, puppet-like, playing his dictated part. A person can
be given new engrams which will make these old ones take secondary
importance. (Society's punishment complex is aimed squarely at
giving anti-engram education.)
Dramatization is survival conduct - in the silly, reactive mind way
of thinking - based on the premise that the organism, in a
"similar" situation lived through it because these actions were
present.
The woman who was knocked down and kicked would dramatize her
engram, possibly, by doing and saying exactly the same things done
and said to her. Her victim may be her child or another woman. It
could or would be the person who gave her the engram if she were
strong enough to overcome him. Just because she has this engram
does not mean she will use it. She may have a hundred other engrams
she can use. But when she dramatizes one, it is as if the engram,
soldered-in, were taking over a puppet. As much analytical power as
she has left may be devoted to altering the pattern. Therefore she
can make a similar or an identical dramatization.
94
This aspect of dramatization is strictly "tooth and claw" survival.
This is the sort of thing which made observers think that "tooth
and claw" was a primary rule.
In went the engram, by-passing rationality and the standard memory
banks. Now it is in the organism but the organism does not know it
in the level of consciousness. It is keyed-in by a conscious level
experience. Then it can be dramatized. And far from becoming milder
the more it is used, the more an engram is dramatized the more
solid is its hold in the circuits. Muscles, nerves, all must
comply.
"Tooth and claw" survival. The cells were making sure. And here we
come to valence. Valens means "powerful" in Latin. It is a good
term because it is the second half of ambivalent (power in two
directions) and exists in any good dictionary. It is a good term
because it describes (although the dictionary did not mean it to)
the intent of the organism when dramatizing an engram.
Multi-valence would mean "many powerfuls." It would embrace the
phenomena of split personality, the strange differences of
personality in people in one and then another situation. Valence in
dianetics means the personality of one of the dramatic personnel in
an engram.
In the case of the woman being knocked out and kicked, there were
two valences present: herself and her husband. If another person
had been present the engram would have contained three valences,
providing he took any part: herself, her husband and the third
person. In an engram, let us say, of a bus accident where ten
people speak or act, there would be, in the "unconscious" person an
engram containing eleven valences, the "unconscious" person and the
ten who spoke or acted.
Now in the case of the woman beaten by her husband, the engram
contains just two valences. Who won? Here is the law of "tooth and
claw," the aspect of survival in
95
engrams. Who won? The husband. Therefore it is the husband who will
be dramatized. She didn't win. She got hurt. Aha! When these
restimulators are present, the thing to do is to be the winner, the
husband, to talk like him, to say what he did, to do what he did.
He survived. "Be like him!" say the cells.
Hence, when the woman is restimulated into this engram by some
action, let us say, on the part of her child, she dramatizes the
winning valence. She knocks the child down and kicks him, tells him
he is a faker, that he is no good, that he is always changing his
mind.
What would happen if she dramatized herself? She would have to fall
down, knocking over a chair, pass out and believe she was a faker,
no good and was always changing her mind and she would have to feel
the pain of all blows!
"Be yourself" is advice which falls on deaf reactive mind ears.
Here is the scheme. Every time the organism gets punished by life,
the analytical mind, according to the reactive mind, has erred. The
reactive mind then cuts the analytical mind out of circuit in ratio
to the amount of restimulation present (danger) and makes the body
react as if it were the person who won in the earlier but similar
situation where the organism was hurt.
Now what happens if "society" or the husband or some exterior force
told this woman, who is dramatizing this engram, that she must face
reality? That's impossible. Reality equals being herself, and
herself gets hurt. What if some exterior force breaks the
dramatization? That is to say, if society objects to the
dramatization and refuses to let her kick and yell and shout! The
engram is still soldered-in. The reactive mind is forcing her to be
the winning valence. Now she can't be. As punishment, the reactive
mind, the closer she slides in to being herself, approximates the
conditions of the other valence in the engram. After all, that
valence didn't die. And the pain of the blows turns on and she
thinks she is a faker, that she is
96
no good and that she always changes her mind. In other words, she
is in the losing valence. Consistent breaking of dramatization will
make a person ill just as certainly as there are gloomy days.
A person accumulates, with the engrams, half a hundred valences
before he is ten. Which were the winning valences? You will find
him using them every time an engram is kicked into restimulation.
Multiple personality? Two persons? Make it fifty to a hundred. In
dianetics you can see valences turn on and off in people and change
with a rapidity which would be awesome to a quick-change artist.
Observe these complexities of conduct, of behavior. If one set out
to resolve the problem of aberration by a system of cataloguing
everything he observed and were unaware of the basic source, he
would end up with as many separate insanities, neuroses, psychoses,
compulsions, repressions, obsessions and disabilities as there are
combinations of words in the English language. Discovery of
fundamentals by classification is never good research. And the
unlimited complexities possible from the engrams (and the severest,
most thoroughly controlled experiments discovered these engrams to
be capable of just such behavior as is listed here) is the whole
catalogue of aberrated human conduct.
There are a few other basic, fundamental things that engrams do.
These will be covered under their own headings: parasite circuits,
emotional impaction and psycho-somatic ills. With the few
fundamentals listed here, the problem of aberration can be
resolved. These fundamentals are simple, they have given rise to as
much trouble as individuals and societies have experienced. The
institutions for the insane, the prisons for the criminals, the
armaments accumulated by nations, yes and even the dust which was a
civilization of yesterday exist because these fundamentals were not
understood.
The cells evolved into an organism and in the evolution
97
created what was once a necessary condition of mind. Man has grown
up to a point where he creates now the means of overcoming that
evolutionary blunder. Examination of the clear proves he no longer
needs it. He is now in a position where he can take an artificial
evolutionary step on his own. The bridge has been built across the
canyon.
98
CHAPTER IV
The "Demons"
For a moment let us leave such scientific things as cells and
consider some further aspects of the problem of understanding the
human mind.
People have been working on problems related to Man's behavior for
a good many millenia. Hindu, Egyptian, Greek, Roman and our own
philosophers and researchers of the past few hundred years have
been struggling against a superabundance of complexity.
Dianetics could be evolved only by the philosophic compartmentation
of the problem into its elements and the invention of several dozen
yardsticks such as The Introduction of an Arbitrary, The Law of
Affinity, The Dynamic, The Equation of the Optimum Solution, The
Laws of the Selection of Importances, The Science of Organizing
Sciences, Nullification by Comparison of Authority to Authority and
so forth and so forth. All this is fine matter for a tome on
philosophy, but here is dianetics, which is a science. It should be
mentioned, however, that one of the first steps taken was not
invented but borrowed and modified: that was the Knowable and
Unknowable of Herbert Spencer.
Absolutism is a fine road to stagnation and I do not think Spencer
meant to be so entirely absolute about his Knowable and Unknowable.
SURVIVE! is the demarcation point between those things which can be
experienced by the senses (our old friends Hume and Locke) and
those things which cannot necessarily be known through the senses
but which possibly may be known but which one does not necessarily
need to solve the problem.
99
Amongst those things which one did not necessarily need to know
(the dianetic version of the Unknowable) were the realms of
mysticism and metaphysics. Many things, in the evolution of
dianetics, were by-passed solely because they had not yielded
solution to anyone else. Therefore mysticism got short shrift
despite the fact that the author studied it, not in the little
understood, secondhand sources commonly used as authority by some
western mental cults, but in Asia where a mystic who can't make his
"astral self" get out and run errands for him is strictly a second
rate character indeed. Well aware that there were pieces in this
jig-saw puzzle which were orange with yellow spots and purple with
carmine stripes, one found it necessary to pick up only those
pieces which were germane. Someday a large number of pieces - about
structure with the rest - will come in and there will be answers to
telepathy, prescience and so on and on. Understand that there are a
lot of pieces in the construction of a philosophic universe. But
none of the mystic pieces were found necessary to the creation of a
uniformly applicable and aberration-resolving science of mind. No
opinion will be delivered at this stage of dianetics about ghosts
or the Indian rope trick beyond the fact they are seen to be
multicolored pieces and the only ones we want are white. We have
most of the white pieces and it makes a good, solid whiteness where
there was blackness before.
Imagine, then, the consternation one must have felt when "demons"
were discovered. Socrates had a demon, you'll remember. It told him
not what to do but whether or not he had made the right decision.
Here we had been pursuing a course in the finite universe which
would have pleased Hume himself for its tenacity to those things
which could be sensed. And up popped "demons."
A thorough examination of a number of subjects (14) revealed that
every one apparently had a "demon" of
100
some sort. They were randomly selected subjects in various
conditions in society. Therefore the "demon" aspect was most
alarming. However, unlike some of the cults (or schools as they
call themselves), the temptation to sail off into romantic
inexplicable and confounding labels was resisted. A bridge had to
be built across a canyon and demons are darned bad girders.
Out in the Pacific islands - Borneo, the Philippines - I had seen
quite a bit of demonology at work. Demonology is fascinating stuff.
A demon gets into a person and makes him sick. Or it gets in and
talks in lieu of him. Or he goes crazy because he has a demon in
him and runs around with the demon shouting. This is demonology in
a narrow sense. The shaman, the medicine man, these people deal
pretty heavily in demonology (it pays well). But, while not
skeptical particularly, it had always seemed to me that demons
could be explained a little more easily than in terms of ectoplasm
or some such unsensible material.
To find "demons" living in one's civilized fellow countrymen was
disturbing. But there they were. At least there were the
manifestations which the shaman and medicine man had said were
caused by demons. It was found that these "demons" could be
catalogued. There were "commanding demons," "critical demons,"
ordinary "tell-you-what-to-say demons" and "demons" which stood
around and yelled or "demons" which simply occluded things and kept
them out of sight. These are not all the classes, but they cover
the general field of "demonology."
A few experiments with drugged subjects showed that it was possible
to set these "demons" up at will. It was even possible to set up
the whole analytical mind as a "demon." So there was something
wrong with demonology. Without proper ritual, simply by word of
mouth, one could make new demons appear in people. So there
101
are no real demons in dianetics (that's underscored in case some
mystic runs around telling people that a new science of mind
believes in demons).
A dianetic demon is a parasitic circuit. It has an action in the
mind which approximates another entity than self. And it is derived
entirely from words contained in engrams.
How this demon gets there is not very hard to understand, once
you've inspected one, close up, papa, while baby is unconscious,
yells at Mama that she's got to listen to him and nobody else, by
God. The baby gets an engram. It is keyed-in sometime between
babyhood and death. And then there's the demon circuit at work.
An electronics engineer can set up demons in a radio circuit to his
heart's content. In human terms it is as if one ran a line from the
standard banks toward the analyzer but before it got there he put
in a speaker and a microphone and then continued the line to the
plane of consciousness. Between the speaker and the microphone
would be a section of the analyzer which was an ordinary, working
section but compartmented off from the remainder of the analyzer.
"I" on a conscious plane wants data. It should come straight from
the standard bank, compute on a sub-level and arrive just as data.
Not spoken data. Just data.
With the portion of the analyzer compartmented off and the
speaker-microphone installation and the engram containing the above
words "got to listen to me, by God" in chronic restimulation,
another thing happens. The "I" in the upper level attention units
wants data. He starts to scan the standard banks with a sub-level.
The data comes to him spoken. Like a voice inside his head.
A clear does not have any "mental voices!" He does not think
vocally. He thinks without articulation of his thoughts and his
thoughts are not in voice terms. This will come as a surprise to
many people. The "listen to me" demon is common in the society,
which is to say
102
this engram circulates widely. "Stay right there and listen to me"
fixes the engram in present time (and fixes the individual in the
time of the engram to some extent). After it is keyed-in and from
there on, the individual thinks "out loud," which is to say, he
puts his thoughts into language. This is very slow. The mind thinks
out solutions (in a clear) at such speed that the word stream of
consciousness would be left at the post.
Proving this was very easy. In clearing every case without
exception one or another of these demons was discovered. Some cases
had three or four. Some had ten. Some had one. It is a safe
assumption that almost every aberree contains a demon circuit.
The type of engram which makes a critical demon is, "You are always
criticizing me." There are dozens of such statements contained in
engrams, any one of which will make a critical demon, just as any
combination of words resulting in a demand to listen and obey
orders will make a commanding demon.
All these demons are parasitic. That is to say, they take a part of
the analyzer and compartment it off. A demon can think only as well
as the person's mind can think. There is no extra power. No
benefit. All loss.
It is possible to set up the whole computer (analyzer) as a demon
circuit and leave "I" on a tiny and forlorn shelf. This, on the
surface, is a pretty good stunt. It makes it possible for the whole
analytical mind to work out computations undisturbed and relay the
answer to the "I." But in practice it is very bad, for "I" is the
will, the determining force of the organism, the awareness. And
very soon "I" becomes so dependent upon this circuit that the
circuit begins to absorb him. Any such circuit, to last, would have
to have pain and be chronic. It would have to be, in short, an
engram. Therefore, it would have to be reductive of the intellect
and would victimize the owner by eventually making him ill one way
or another.
103
Of all the engram demon circuits found and removed, those which
contained a seemingly all-powerful exterior entity which would
solve all problems and answer every want were the most dangerous.
As the engram keyed-in further and further and was constantly
restimulated, it eventually made a spineless puppet out of "I";
because other engrams existed, the sum of the reduction tended
toward insanity of a serious sort. If you want a sample, just
imagine what you would have to say to a hypnotized person to make
him think that he was in the hands of a powerful being who gave him
orders and then imagine this as the phrase spoken when an
individual had been knocked unconscious one way or another.
There is another full class of demons, the occlusion demons, the
demons who shut things off. These are not properly demons because
they don't talk. A bona-fide demon is one who gives thoughts voice
or echoes the spoken word interiorly or who gives all sorts of
complicated advice like a real, live voice exteriorly. (People who
hear voices have exterior vocal demons - circuits which have tied
up their imagination circuits.) The occlusion demon doesn't have
anything to say. It is what he doesn't permit to be said or done
that makes the mental derangement.
An occlusion demon can exist for a single word. For instance, a
child receives an engram by falling off her bicycle and losing
consciousness; a policeman tries to assist her; she is still
unconscious but moving and mutters that she can't move (an old
engram at work); the officer says, cheerfully, "Never say can't!"
Some time later she has a conscious level experience such as
another fall but without injury. (We keep mentioning this second
necessary step, the lock, because it is the thing old time mystics
thought was causing all the trouble - it is "mental anguish.") Now
she has difficulty saying "can't." Dangerous in any event. What if
she had that common engram expression, "Never say no!"?
104
Occlusion demons hide things from "I." It is as easy for one to
mask many words. The individual having one will then omit these
words or alter them or misspell them and make mistakes with them.
The demon is not the only reason words get altered but he is a
specific case. An occlusion demon can be of a much higher strength
and breadth. He can be created with the phrase, "Don't talk!" or
"Never talk back to your elders," or "You can't talk here. Who said
you could talk?" Any of these phrases might produce a stammerer.
Other things besides speech can be occluded. Any ability of the
mind can be inhibited by a demon specifically designed to obstruct
that ability. "You can't see!" will occlude visual recall. "You
can't hear!" will occlude audio recall. "You can't feel!" occludes
pain and tactile recall (homonymic stuff, English).
Any perception can be occluded in recall. And whenever it is
occluded in recall, it affects actual perception and the organ of
perception as well. "You can't see!" may reduce not only recall but
the actual organic ability of the eyes, as in astigmatism or
myopia.
One can imagine, with the entire English language (or in other
lands with other tongues, any language) susceptible to inclusion
within engrams just how many abilities of the mind's operation can
be occluded. An extremely common one is "You can't think!"
So far now "you" has been used in illustrations and examples in
order to keep the similarity to hypnotic or drug tests. Actually
sentences which contain "I", are more destructive. "I can't feel
anything," "I can't think," "I can't remember." These and their
thousands and thousands of variations, when spoken within the
hearings of an "unconscious" person, are applicable to himself when
he gets the engram keyed-in to circuit.
"You" has several effects. The statement, "You are no good," to an
awake person makes that person feel very angry perhaps when he has
an engram to that effect.
105
Within him he feels, possibly, that people think he is no good. He
may have a demon that tells him he is no good. And he will
dramatize by telling other people that they are no good. It can be
sprayed off by being dramatized. A person who has an engram to the
effect that he is sexually sterile, for instance, will tell people
that they are sexually sterile. ("Don't do as I do, do as I say.")
If he has an engram that says, "You are no good, you have to eat
with your knife," he may eat with his knife but he gets excited
about people eating with their knives, and he would grow very angry
if somebody said he ate with his knife.
Thus, there are "compulsion demons" and "confusion demons" and so
forth and so on.
The engram has a command value. There is a power of choice
exercised in the reactive mind about which and what engrams will be
used. But any engram, strongly enough restimulated, will come to
the surface to be dramatized. And if dramatization is blocked, it
will turn on the individual either temporarily or chronically.
The literalness of this reactive mind, in its interpretation of
commands and the literalness of their action within the poor,
harassed analytical mind is a strange thing in itself. "It is too
horrible to be borne" might be interpreted to the effect that a
baby was in such bad condition that it had better not be born.
There are thousands of cliches in any language which, when
literally taken, mean quite the opposite from what the speaker
intends.
The reactive engram bank takes them, stores them with pain and
emotion and "unconsciousness" and with moronic literalness, hands
them forth to be LAW and COMMAND to the analytical mind. And when
the happy little moron who runs the engram bank sees it possible to
use up some analytical mind circuits with some of these confounded
demons, it is done.
106
The analytical mind, then, can be seen to be subject to yet another
form of attrition. Its circuits, ordinarily intended for smooth,
rapid computation, become tied up and overloaded with demon
lash-ups. The demons are parasites. They are pieces of analytical
mind compartmented off and denied to larger computation.
Is it any wonder that, when these demons are deleted, I.Q. soars as
it can be observed to do in a clear? Add the demon circuits to the
shut-down aspect of restimulation, and truth can be seen in the
observation that people run on about one-twentieth of their mental
power. Research and scientific tabulation indicate that with the
"unconsciousness" aspect and the demon circuits deleted from the
engram bank and the data restored into the standard bank as
experience where it should be, about forty-nine fiftieths of the
mind have been placed at the service of "I" which he never could
use as an aberree.
107
CHAPTER V
Psycho-somatic Illness
Psycho-somatic illnesses are those which have a mental origin but
which are nevertheless organic. Despite the fact that there existed
no precise scientific proof of this before dianetics, an opinion as
to their existence has been strong since the days of Greece, and in
recent times various drug preparations have been concocted and sold
which were supposed to overcome these sicknesses. Some success was
experienced, sufficient to warrant a great deal of work on the part
of researchers. Peptic ulcers, for instance, have yielded to
persuasion and environmental change. A recent drug called ACTH has
had astonishing but wildly unpredictable results. Allergies have
been found to yield more or less to things which depressed
histamine in the body.
The problem of psycho-somatic illness is entirely embraced by
dianetics, and by dianetic technique such illness has been
eradicated entirely in every case.
About seventy per cent of the physician's current roster of
diseases falls into the category of psycho-somatic illness. How
many more can be so classified after dianetics has been in practice
for a few years is difficult to predict, but it is certain that
more illnesses are psycho-somatic than have been so classified to
date. That all illnesses are psycho-somatic is, of course, absurd,
for there exist, after all, life forms called germs which have
survival as their goals.
The work of Louis Pasteur formulated the germ theory of disease.
With dianetics is gained the non-germ theory of disease. These two,
with bio-chemistry, complement
108
each other to form the whole field of pathology so far as can be
determined at this time, providing of course that the virus is
included under the germ theory.
Dianetics adds an additional leaf to the germ theory in that it
includes predisposition. There are three stages of pathology:
predisposition, by which is meant the factors which prepared the
body for sickness, precipitation, by which is meant the factors
which cause the sickness to manifest itself, and perpetuation, by
which is meant the factors which cause the sickness to continue.
There are two kinds of illness: the first could be called
autogenetic, which means that it originated within the organism and
was self-generated, and exogenetic, which means that the origin of
the illness was exterior. Actually, although this is good medicine,
it is not quite as precise as dianetics could desire. Mental
illness itself is actually exterior in origin. But medically, we
consider that the body can generate its own sicknesses
(autogenetic) or that the sickness can come from an exterior source
such as bacteria (exogenetic). The Pasteur germ theory would be the
theory of exogenetic - exteriorly generated - illness.
Psycho-somatic illness would be autogenetic, generated by the body
itself.
Treatment for accidental injury, surgery for various things such as
malformation inherent in the body on a genetic basis, and
orthopedics, which actually can be classed under both, remain
properly outside the field of dianetics, although it can be
remarked in passing that almost all accidents are to be traced to
dramatization of engrams and that clears rarely have accidents.
Psycho, of course, refers to mind and somatic refers to body; the
term psycho-somatic means the mind making the body ill or illnesses
which have been created physically within the body by derangement
of the mind. Naturally such diseases, when one has resolved the
problem of human aberration, become uniformly susceptible to cure.
109
Arthritis, dermatitis, allergies, asthma, some coronary
difficulties, eye trouble, bursitis, ulcers, sinusitis, etc. form a
very small section of the psycho-somatic catalogue. Bizarre aches
and pains in various portions of the body are generally
psycho-somatic. Migraine headaches are psycho-somatic and, with the
others, are uniformly cured by dianetic therapy. (And the word
cured is used in its fullest sense.)
Just how many physical errors are psycho-somatic depends upon how
many conditions the body can generate out of the factors in the
engrams. For example, the common cold has been found to be
psycho-somatic. Clears do not get colds. Just what, if any, part
the virus plays in the common cold is not known, but it is known
that when engrams about colds are lifted, no further colds appear -
which is a laboratory fact not so far contradicted by 270 cases.
The common cold comes about, usually, from an engram which suggests
it and which is confirmed by actual mucus present in another
engram. A number of germ diseases are predisposed and perpetuated
by engrams. Tuberculosis is one.
The engram itself, as has been covered, follows a cycle of action.
The body is predisposed to the conduct and conditions contained in
the engram when that engram is first received. Then a
conscious-level experience keys-in the engram and other experience
or the content of the engram itself may make it chronic. This is
predisposition, precipitation and perpetuation in the mental plane.
Engrams and inherited disabilities and accidents and germs are the
four ways an organism can be reduced physically from the optimum.
Many conditions which have been called "inherited disabilities" are
actually engramic Engrams predispose people to accidents. Enengrams
predispose and perpetuate bacterial infections. Therefore the
catalogue of ills affected by dianetics is very long. This is not a
book listing effects but a book
110
stating causes, and so the reader is asked to call upon his own
knowledge or consult a medical text to understand just how many
thousands and thousands of conditions result from engrams to
disturb or derange the body.
At the present time dianetic research is scheduled to include
cancer and diabetes. There are a number of reasons to suppose that
these may be engramic in cause, particularly malignant cancer. This
is remarked so that attention may be given to the possibility; no
tests of any kind have been made on cancer or diabetic patients,
and the thought is purely theory and is not to be taken as any kind
of an avowal about a cancer cure. Those diseases which were
catalogued above, however, have been thoroughly tested and have
uniformly yielded to dianetic therapy.
The mechanism by which the mind is able to cause a physical
disability or predispose the body to an illness and perpetuate
sickness is, in its basic cause, a very simple thing. The
complexity arrives when one begins to combine all the factors
possible; then a staggering list of potential illnesses can be
written.
A series of simple tests can be made on drugged or hypnotic
patients which will prove clinically in other laboratories this
basic mechanism. A series of these tests were run in the
formulation of dianetics with uniform success.
Let us take first something - which is only mildly psycho-somatic
and scarcely an illness at all. A patient is hypnotized. He is
given the positive suggestion that he will be able to hear much
more acutely. This is "extended hearing." Controlling out other
means of his gaining data (including safeguards against telepathy
between operator and subject) the hearing can be found to be
amplifiable many times over. In fact, there exist all around
aberrees who have "extended hearing." By suggestion the power of
the hearing can be tuned down or up so that a person
111
is nearly deaf or can hear pins fall at a great distance. When the
suggestion is removed, the subject's hearing returns to its
previous normal state.
Similarly, experiments can be performed on the eyes, using light
sensitivity. The patient's sight is tuned up or down so that his
eyes are much more or much less sensitive to light than is normal
for him. This is done entirely on the word suggestion basis such as
"The light will appear very, very bright to you," or "The light
will appear so dim it will be hard for you to see." With the former
suggestion the patient can be made to see almost as well as a cat,
although other people around might think it impossible to see
objects the patient can unerringly point out. In the latter
suggestion the patient can be placed under light almost blinding
and yet can read through a glare with apparent comfort.
The tactile sense can likewise be tuned up or down by verbal
suggestion until touch becomes painfully acute or so dull it
scarcely registers.
So with the various senses. Here we have simply the spoken word
going into the mind and causing physical function to change.
Let us now address the heart. By deep hypnosis or drugs we take a
patient into amnesia trance, a state of being wherein the "I" is
not in control but the operator is the "I" (and that's all there
is, really, to the function of hypnosis: the transfer of analytical
power through the law of affinity from subject to operator, a thing
which had a racial development and survival value in animals which
ran in packs).
A caution should be observed that a patient who has a very sound
heart and no heart-trouble history be chosen for this experiment,
which, even above any other hypnotic experiment, can make a patient
very ill if he has a heart history. And none of these hypnotic
tests should be performed until one has finished this book and
knows
112
how to get rid of the suggestions; for hypnosis, as practiced, is
strictly live fuse stuff and the hypnotist who is unacquainted with
dianetics has no more idea how to get rid of a suggestion he has
made than he has of how to peel an atom. He has thought he had the
answer, but dianetics has treated many, many former hypnotic
subjects who were thoroughly, as the engineers interested in
dianetics say, "loused-up." This is no criticism of hypnosis or
hypnotists, who are often very able people, but it is a comment
that there is more to be known about it.
The heart, by positive suggestion alone, can be speeded up, slowed
down or otherwise excited. Here are words spoken into the deep
strata of the mind which cause physical action. Further, blood flow
can be inhibited in some area of the body by suggestion alone.
(This experiment, it is warned, particularly overloads the heart.)
Blood can be denied to a hand, for instance, so that if you were to
cut a vein in that hand it would bleed slightly if at all. A fine
swami trick; which most amazed the author in India, was the
inhibition of blood flow by the awake individual in himself. On
command a cut would bleed or not bleed. It looked fantastic and
made very good press agentry that here was a swami who had so
associated himself with Nirvana that he was in control of all
material matters. Awe faded when the author learned that, via
hypnosis, he could make his own body do the same thing and no
Nirvana involved. The mechanism fades out rapidly and in a few days
would have to be renewed: the body has its own optimum operation,
and although such a function can be "analytically" handled, it is
not an upper echelon analytical job to keep the blood going in the
hand. The point here is that blood flow can be interrupted by
verbal suggestion. Words connect up with the physical being.
How this can come about can be shown by an analogic explanation
such as a schematic diagram, but we are not
113
so much interested in structure as in function at this stage of the
science of mind - because by knowing function alone we can cure
aberrations and psycho-somatic ills every time, predict new ills
and conditions, and generally "work miracles," as such actions were
once called before Man knew anything about the mind.
Excreta are among the easiest things to regulate by suggestion.
Constipation can be caused or cured by positive suggestion with
remarkable speed and facility. The urine can also be so controlled.
And so can the endocrine system.
It is harder to make tests on some of the more poorly understood
functions of the endocrines. Glandular research has not progressed
very far at this time. But, by removing engrams and watching the
endocrine system rebalance, it has been made obvious that the
endocrine system is a part of the control mechanism with which the
mind handles the body. The glands are easily influenced. These
fluids and secretions - testosterone, estrogen, adrenalin, thyroid,
parathyroid, pituitrin, etc. - are the substances the mind uses as
one means of controlling the body. They form relay circuits, so to
speak. Each one has its own action within the body.
This experiment tends to prove the fallacy of an ancient assumption
that the mind was controlled by the glands. An aberree is given a
shot of 25 mg. of testosterone in oil twice a week. There may be
some improvement in his physical status for a short time - his
voice may deepen and he may grow more hair on his chest. Now,
without suggestion, we simply delete the engrams from his reactive
bank so that they can re-form as experience in the standard bank.
Before we have completed this task
his body begins to use more of the testosterone. The dose can be
markedly reduced and still give more benefit than formerly. Finally
the dose can be eliminated. This experiment has also been performed
on people who had not been able to receive benefit from glandular
substances
114
such as testosterone and estrogen. And upon people who were made
ill by the administration of these hormones. The deletion of the
engrams from the reactive bank uniformly brought about a condition
where they could receive benefit from the hormones but where such
artificial administration was not necessary save in cases of
extreme age. What this means to gerontology, the study of longevity
in life, cannot at this time be estimated, but it can be predicted
with confidence that the deletion of engrams from the reactive bank
has a marked effect upon the extension of life. A hundred years or
so from now this data will be available, but no clears have lived
that long as yet.
Just now, to our purpose, it is easy to demonstrate the effect of
positive suggestion upon the endocrine system and the lack of
effect of artificial hormones upon aberrees.
This sort of an engram has a terribly reductive effect upon
testosterone manufacture: "Sex is horrible; it is nasty; I hate
it."
The autonomic nervous system, which has been supposed to run
without much connection to the mind can be shown to be influenced
in its parts by the mind. There is a dwindling spiral effect (note
the lines on the survival potential chart) whereby the engram
starts malfunction in the life function regulator; this produces
malfunction in the mind, which in turn has further effect on the
life function regulator; this again reduces physical activity, and
the mind, being part of the organ and, so far as we can tell,
organic itself, is further reduced in tone. Mental tone makes body
tone go down. Body tone, then being down, makes mental tone go
down. This is a matter of inverse geometric progression. A man
starts to get sick and, having engrams, he gets sicker. Clears are
not subject to this dwindling spiral. Indeed, so entirely
superficial is this horrible stuff called psycho-somatic illness
that it is the first thing which surrenders and can be alleviated
without clearing.
115
Now the reason why various drug preparations which seek to change
psycho-somatic illness meet with such uncertain success lies in the
fact that the mind, containing these engrams which are "survival"
(like a fellow needs a hole in his head), handles the life function
regulator to actively produce illnesses. Something comes to take
them away (they're "survival," you see, and these confounded cells
moronically insist upon it) and the mind has to rapidly reverse the
activity and put an illness back in place again. Try to influence
the reactive mind by reason or needles and it is not any easier to
convince than a drug-crazed man bent on murdering everybody in a
bar. He's "surviving," too.
A concoction like ACTH has a slightly different effect. It is too
exclusive to have any research done with it, but on reports about
it, it seems to affect engrams in the time sense. That is to say,
as will be covered under therapy, the individual's reactive
location in time is shifted by it. ACTH and perhaps many others in
its category move the individual from one chronic engram into
another. This is about as reliable as changing dictators in Europe.
The next one may be twice as bad. It may even be a manic and that's
horrible despite its apparent "euphoria."
Electric shock treatment, the beatings of Bedlam and other things
of their ilk, including surgical treatment of things psycho-somatic
in origin, have another effect but one not dissimilar to drugs like
ACTH in that they give another shock which transfers the engram
pattern to another part of the body (and switches around the
aberrations; when these things work it is because the new
aberration is less violent than the old one). Shocks, blows,
surgery and maybe even things like cobra venom change the effect of
the engram bank on the body, not necessarily for the worse, not
necessarily for the better; they just change them. Like shooting
dice: sometimes one gets a seven.
116
Then there is the deletion of tissue treatment of psycho-somatic
ills. This simply removes the area which is busy dramatizing in the
physical line. This can be the removal of a toe or the removal of a
brain. These things are quite commonly used, as this is being
written. The removal of the toe is addressed to one part of the
engram content, the somatic, and the removal of parts of the brain
(as in the trans-orbital leukotomy and the pre-frontal lobotomy or
anything else more recent) is addressed mistakenly to "the removal
of" the psycho-aberration. There is a surrender system at work in
this as well: the surgeon or the patient has an aberration about
"getting rid of it," and so bits of the body are cut up or removed.
Some patients surrender anatomy on advice or at their own
insistence like old timers shed blood in a phlebotomy. There is a
straight parallel between bleeding the patient to make him well and
cutting away parts of him to make him well. Both are based on a
surrender (get rid of) engram and neither are effective in any way.
Barber basin medicine, it is hoped, will eventually die out as did
its patients.
These are the five classes of psycho-somatic ills: (1) those ills
resulting from mentally caused derangement in physical fluid flow,
which class subdivides into (a) inhibition of fluid flow and (b)
magnification of fluid flow; (2) those ills resulting from mentally
caused derangement of physical growth, which class subdivides into
(a) inhibition of growth and (b) magnification of growth; (3) those
ills resulting from predisposition to disease resulting from a
chronic psycho-somatic pain in an area; (4) those ills resulting
from perpetuation of a disease on account of chronic pain in an
area; and (5) these ills caused by the verbal command content of
the engrams.
In Class 1 (a) fall such ordinary things as constipation and such
extraordinary things as arthritis. Arthritis is a complex mechanism
with a simple cause and a relatively
117
simple cure. Remember that there are two things present in an
engram: physical pain and verbal command. In arthritis both must be
present (as in the bulk of psycho-somatic ills). There must have
been an accident to the joint or area affected, and there must have
been a command during the "unconsciousness" which attended the
injury which would make the engram susceptible to chronic
restimulation. (Such commands as "It is always like this" or "It
just goes right on hurting" or "I'm stuck" will produce similar
results). Given this engram and given this engram keyed-in, there
is a chronic pain in the area of the injury. It may be minor, but
it is a pain just the same. (It can be a pain but not be felt if
the engram contains a command which is anaesthetic such as "He'll
never feel this," which produces a similar condition but makes one
"unconscious" of the pain there.) This pain in the body probably
tells the cells and the blood that this area is dangerous. It is
therefore avoided. The command permits the mind to influence, let
us say, the parathyroid, which contains the secret of the calcium
content in the blood stream. A mineral deposit then begins to be
laid down in the area. The mineral deposit is not necessarily the
cause of the pain, but it is an organic restimulator so that the
more mineral, the more pain, the more the engram keys-in. This is
the dwindling spiral. And this is arthritis in action. Understand
that the parathyroid and the blood avoidance are theoretical cause;
the scientific fact is that when an engram is picked up and deleted
about an area containing arthritis, that arthritis vanishes and
does not return and this is X-ray plate evidence; it happens every
time and does not happen because of any suggestion or medicine; it
happens because an engram is picked up and refiled. As the engram
goes away, so goes the pain, so vanishes the arthritis. This forms
a whole class of ills, of which arthritis is only one. The
mechanisms involved vary slightly.
118
All can be headed under "physical derangement caused by reduced
body fluid flow."
Class 1 (b) of psycho-somatic ills, magnification of fluid flow,
contains such things as high blood pressure, diarrhea, sinusitis,
priapism (overactivity of the male sex glands), or any other
physical condition resulting from a superabundance of fluid.
Class 2 (a) can cause such things as a withered arm, a
foreshortened nose, underdeveloped genital organs or any other
underdevelopment of a gland having to do with size (which
cross-classes this with 1 [a]), hairlessness (which also like the
rest can be part of the gene pattern and therefore inherent), and
in short reduction in size of any part of the body.
Class 2 (b) causes such things as oversized hands, a lengthened
nose, oversized ears, enlarged organs and other common physical
malformations. (Cancer might possibly come under this heading as
overhealing.)
Class 3 would include tuberculosis (some cases), liver trouble,
kidney trouble, rashes, common colds, etc. (cross-classing with
others, as do all of these in one way or another).
Class 4 would include those diseases which, arising without
psycho-somatic influence, yet fix upon by accident a previously
injured area and by restimulation, keep an engram keyed-in in that
area so that a condition becomes chronic. Tuberculosis could be
included here. Conjunctivitis, all running sores and any condition
which refuses to heal, etc.
This fourth class would also include all bizarre pains and
sicknesses which cannot be found to have actual pathology.
Class 5 includes an enormously wide catalogue of conditions, any
one of which may cross-index to other classes or which arise solely
out of engrams which dictate the presence or necessity of an
illness. "You always have
119
colds," "I have sore feet," etc. announce a psycho-somatic illness
and the mechanisms of the body can furnish one.
Any disease whatever can be precipitated by engrams. The disease
may be of germ origin; the individual possesses an engram to the
effect that he may become sick and on this generalization, becomes
sick with whatever is to hand. Further and even more general, the
engram reduces the physical resistance of the body to disease, and
when an engram goes into restimulation (perhaps because of a
domestic quarrel, an accident or some such thing), the ability of
the individual to resist sickness is automatically decreased.
Children, as will be explained, have many more engrams than has
been supposed. Almost all childhood illnesses are preceded by
psychic disturbance and if psychic disturbance is present - keeping
an engram restimulated - such illnesses can be far more violent
than they should be. Measles, for instance, can be just measles or
it can be measles in company with engramic restimulation, in which
case it can be nearly or entirely fatal. A check of many subjects
on this matter of childhood illness being predisposed by,
precipitated by and perpetuated by engrams causes one to wonder
just how violent the diseases themselves really are: they have
never been observed in a cleared child and there is reason to
investigate the possibility that childhood illnesses are in
themselves extremely mild and are complicated only by psychic
disturbance - which is to say, the restimulation of engrams.
In fact, one could ask this question of the entire field of
pathology: what is the actual effect of disease minus the mental
equation? How serious are bacteria?
The field of bacteriology has been without dynamic principles until
now; the dynamic, survival, is applicable to all life forms and
"life forms" include germs. The purpose of the germ is to survive.
Its problems are those of food, protection (offense and defense)
and procreation.
120
To accomplish these things the germ survives at its optimum
efficiency. It mutates, alters with natural selection and changes
dynamically from survival necessity (the missing step of the
evolution theory, that last) in order to accomplish the maximum
survival possible. It makes errors by killing the hosts, but to
have a purpose to survive does not mean that a form necessarily
survives.
In pathology, the germ, bent on its purpose, acts as a suppressor
to the survival dynamic of the human species. How serious this
suppressor is in the absence of engram suppression in the human has
not been determined; enough data exists to indicate that a human
individual with his potential in the fourth zone is not,
apparently, very subject to disease: the common cold, for instance,
if it is a virus or not, passes him by; chronic infections are
absent. What antibodies have to do with this or what this factor
is, is yet another question. But it remains that a clear is not
easily made ill. In the aberree illness closely pursues mental
depression (depression of the dynamic level).
The aberration of mind and body by engrams leads, then, not only to
psycho-somatic ills but also to actual pathology, which has
hitherto been considered more or less independent of the mental
state. As has been proven by clinical research, clearing of engrams
does more than remove psycho-somatic illness, potential, acute or
chronic; the clearing also tends to proof the individual against
the receipt of pathology: to what extent it is not yet known, for
such a wide and long term view is required to establish the actual
statistics that the project will require thousands of cases and the
observations of medical doctors over a long term.
The amount of aberration which a person manifests, which is to say,
the position he would occupy on a sanity scale, has little to do
with psycho-somatic illness. Such illnesses require only one or two
engrams of a specific
121
nature to become manifest. These engrams may not be aberrative in
any other way than to predispose the individual to illness. Having
a psycho-somatic illness is not the same as being "crazy" or having
hypochondriacal tendencies. The hypochondriac thinks he has
illnesses, a special case of Class (5) above.
Derangement falls sharply into two categories: the first is the
mental derangement, any irrational condition, which in dianetics we
call aberration in order to avoid constant cataloguing of the
thousands, the millions of manifestations irrationality can have.
The other derangement of the individual is somatic: this applies
entirely to his physical being and physical ability and health.
Both these things are present in every engram: the aberration and
the somatic. But the engram can manifest itself chronically as
either a somatic (a noun has been made out of an adjective here and
it is commonly employed in dianetics to avoid the use of the word
pain, which is not embracive and which is restimulative) or as an
aberration or as both together.
An engram must contain physical pain. When an engram is
restimulated in everyday life, that physical pain may appear or it
may not. If it does not appear as pain but as aberration, then the
individual is in another valence than his own (the "necessity to
manifest his hostilities"). If he is sane enough to be in his own
valence, the physical pain will be present. In dianetics we say the
somatic has appeared. When any somatic appears, unless the
individual is a pre-clear in therapy, some of the aberration is
also appearing. In short, the aberration can appear by itself or
the somatic plus some of the aberration can appear. When a person
dramatizes another valence than his own, the aberration is present;
when the dramatization, running off the engram
phonograph-record-wise in one or another valence, is suppressed by
some other factor such as the police or a stronger person
122
or even the individual himself (this has been called repression -
the term is not used here because it is loaded with other
meanings), the somatic most certainly will come into view. The
individual is then apparently "better off," as the cells meant him
to be, to occupy the survival role in the engram, the winning
valence, for he is, at least, not ill. But how many people have
been killed, how many banks have been robbed and how many marital
partners have been driven mad by these dramatizations? So the
health of the individual would be considered by society, in its
effort to protect its members to be a secondary affair. In fact,
"society" has not known about this mechanical aspect. The
individual who dramatizes the survival valence in his engrams may
do violent things to other people. The individual who will not
permit himself such a dramatization or who is forced by society
away from such dramatization will most certainly become
psycho-somatically ill. "Heads I win, tails you lose." The answer
is in the alleviation or deletion of the engram. For there are many
additional aspects to the problem: the man who dramatizes his
engrams, society or no society, is not apt to survive, and if he
dramatizes them, he is subject to whatever slurs were leveled at
the valence he is in by another valence in that same engram.
The combinations of the classes and aspects of psycho-somatic
illness listed and described here lead to some highly complex
situations. It is a scientific fact that no psycho-somatic ill
exists without an aberration. And it is true that no aberration
exists without a potential or actual psycho-somatic ill. One of the
psycho-somatic illnesses one would least expect to find as a
psycho-somatic affair is the illness of sexual perversion.
The sexual pervert (and by this term dianetics, to be brief,
includes any and all forms of deviation in Dynamic II such as
homosexuality, lesbianism, sexual sadism, etc. and all down the
catalogue of Ellis and Krafft-Ebing) is
123
actually quite ill physically. Perversion as an illness has so many
manifestations that it must be spread through the entire gamut of
classes from (1) to (5) above. Over-development of sexual organs,
underdevelopment, seminal inhibition or magnification, etc. are
found some in one pervert, some in another. And the sum of it is
that the pervert is always a very ill person in one way or another,
whether he is conscious of it or not. He is very far from culpable
for his condition, but he is also so far from normal and so
extremely dangerous to society that the tolerance of perversion is
as thoroughly bad for society as punishment for it. Lacking proper
means prior to this time, society has been caught between tolerance
and punishment, and the problem of perversion has, of course, not
been resolved. A bit off the subject here, but it can be remarked
about perversion that the best previous explanation for it was
something about girls becoming envious of Papa's penis or boys
becoming upset about that terrible thing, the vulva, which Mama was
incautious enough to show one day. It takes a great deal more than
this utter tripe to make a pervert. It is, rather, something on the
order of kicking a baby's head in, running over him with a steam
roller, cutting him in half with a rusty knife, boiling him in
lysol and all the while with crazy people screaming the most
horrifying and unprintable things at him. The human being is a very
tough character. He is so confoundedly tough that he has whipped
the whole animal kingdom and he can shake the stars. And when it
comes to throwing his second dynamic out of balance, what that
takes is straight out of Dante and Sax Rohmer combined. Hence the
pervert, containing hundreds and hundreds of vicious engrams, has
had little choice between being dead and being a pervert. But with
an effective science to handle the problem, a society which would
continue to endure perversion and all its sad and sordid effects
doesn't deserve to survive.
Perversion can have other aspects. In one society examined, these
aberrations had multiplied so far that a
124
principal mystic cult had sprung up which contended that all mental
illness came from sex; this, of course, gave further impetus to
aberrations on the second dynamic (sex), as such a cultic belief
must have been originated by an individual who had severe
aberrations across the second dynamic; this belief that sex was the
only source of human aberration and travail, naturally attracted as
its practitioners individuals who had similar aberrative patterns.
And so the cult further enforced existing aberrative factors in the
society, since all their activity was leveled at making sex
something ogreish and dreadful by labeling it the society's primary
source of illness. The prophet of this god was Manichaeus, a
Persian of the third century, who taught that all things about the
body, especially sex, were evil; the cult of Manichaeus carried on
well into the Dark Ages and then vanished, to trouble Man no more.
Any dynamic can be blocked, the personal dynamic, the sex dynamic,
the group dynamic or the Mankind dynamic. Each one has been the
target at some time of one cult or another seeking to cure all
Man's ills and save him. Dianetics is not interested in saving Man,
but it can do much to prevent him from being "saved." As an
organized body of scientific knowledge dianetics can draw only the
conclusion which it observes in the laboratory.
It can be observed that the Church is entirely correct in doing all
in its power to prevent blasphemy. Blasphemy can very often be
uttered during the "unconsciousness" of a person who has been
struck. This would enter sacred names and curses into engrams
which, reacting within the individual, give him an unnatural terror
and compulsion or repulsion toward God. It is not the religion
which is at fault, it is the blaspheming of the religion. Such
blasphemy makes the insane zealot and the murderous atheist, both
of whom the Church would very gladly do without.
In the realm of psycho-somatic illness any combination of the
language is as damaging a factor in an engram as
125
any other factor. The moronic reasoning of the reactive mind, which
considers everything in an engram equal to everything in an engram,
also considers that everything similar to the engram in the
exterior world (the restimulators) is sufficient cause to place an
engram in effect. Hence aberration and illness can come about.
There is, however, a peculiarity in psycho-somatic illnesses which
is chronic: the aberree's reactive mind exercises a power of choice
to the extent that only pro-survival engrams become chronic. It
could be said, on a reactive level, that the aberree will not
permit himself to suffer illness from his engrams unless that
illness has a "survival" value. This is very important in therapy.
The chronic psycho-somatic illnesses which a patient displays are
those which have a sympathy (pro-survival) background.
It is not possible to "spoil" a child with love and affection.
Whoever postulated that it was possible was postulating out of bad
data and no observation. A child needs all the love and affection
it can possibly get. A test was run in one hospital which tended to
show that babies, when left without attention, ran fevers. When
given attention the fevers immediately abated. The test, while not
observed personally by the author, seems to have been conducted
with proper controls according to report. If this is true, it
postulates a mechanism in the human being which uses illness for
affection on a genetic basis. There is no reason why not; there
have been enough years of engineering - almost two billion - to
build anything into the blueprint. These babies, in several groups,
were left in the hospital by their parents for the test; they
uniformly became ill when not given affection. Here is the law of
affinity at work, if these tests were accurately conducted, their
purpose was not to help dianetics but to show that the leaving of a
baby in the hospital after his birth because he has a slight
illness invariably increases that illness.
A series of severely controlled dianetic experiments over a much
longer period demonstrated that the law of affinity,
126
as applicable to psycho-somatic illness, was more powerful than
fear and antagonism by a very wide margin. So great is this margin
that it could be compared as the strength of a steel girder to a
straw. It was found, as above, that chronic psycho-somatic ills
existed only when they had a sympathy engram behind them. The law
of affinity might be interpreted as the law of cohesion; "affinity"
might be defined as "love" in both its meanings. Deprivation of or
absence of affection could be considered as a violation of the law
of affinity. Man must be in affinity with man to survive. The
suicide ordinarily commits the act on the computation that the
removal of self will some way benefit other selves - this, on the
reactive mind level is a very ordinary computation, deriving
exclusively from engrams. The violent industrial chieftain with his
merciless mien, when he suffers from a psycho-somatic ill,
ordinarily derives it out of a sympathy engram.
The sympathy engram pretends to be pro-survival. As one preclear
said, a man is not victimized by his enemies but by his friends. An
engram comes about always from a greater or lesser moment of
"unconsciousness." There is no engram without "unconsciousness." It
is only when the analyzer is out of circuit that the exterior world
can come interior, unrationalized, and work from within. The second
the analyzer identifies one of those engrams as such, that engram
loses about twenty percent of its value to aberrate and usually a
hundred percent of its value to cause a psycho-somatic illness.
Pain is extremely perishable. Pleasure is recorded in bronze. (Not
poetry here, science. Physical pain will delete with brief
attention, a pleasant or even a media-media experience is so
solidly fixed in the mind that no treatment known to dianetics will
shake it and a great deal of effort has been leveled at pleasure
recordings just to test them for permanence. They are permanent;
physical pain is perishable. Too bad, Schopenhauer, but you were a
most mistaken man.)
Exposing a lock to the analyzer - a moment of "mental
127
anguish" - once the engram which gave it power is gone causes that
lock to blow away like chaff. The analyzer works on the Doctrine of
the True Datum: it has no truck with anything which it once
discovers to be false. Just exposing an engram without relieving it
has some therapeutic value - twenty percent - and this gave rise to
a belief that all one had to do was know about his ills and they
would vanish. Nice if it were so.
The most aberrative engram, then, is one which is held down by the
reactive mind's - that moron's - concept that it is needed in the
survival of the individual. This sympathy engram is the one which
comes forward and stays chronic as a psycho-somatic illness. There
are two reasons for this: one is usually in one's own valence when
a sympathy engram is received; and one's reactive mind, knowing
well the value of affinity, puts forward the psycho-somatic illness
to attract affinity. There is no volition here on the part of the
individual's "I" analytical self. But there is every "volition" on
the part of the reactive mind.
A sympathy engram would go something like this: a small boy, much
victimized by his parents, is extremely ill. His grandmother
attends him and while he is delirious soothes him and tells him she
will take care of him, that she will stay right there until he is
well. This puts a high "survival" value on being sick. He does not
feel safe around his parents; he wants his grandmother present (she
is a winning valence because she orders the parents around), and he
now has an engram. Minus the engram there would be no
psycho-somatic illness. Sickness, "unconsciousness" and physical
pain are essential to the receipt of this engram. But it is not a
contra-survival engram. It is a pro-survival engram. It can be
dramatized in one's own valence.
The psycho-somatic illness, in such a case as this, would be a
"precious possession." "I" doesn't even know
128
the computation. The analyzer was out when the engram went in. The
analyzer cannot recall that engram with anything short of dianetic
therapy. And the engram will not clear away.
Now with this engram we have a patient with sinusitis and a
predisposition to lung infections. It may be that he was luckless
enough to marry a counterpart of his mother or his grandmother. The
reactive mind cannot tell the difference between grandmother or
mother and wife if they are even vaguely similar in speech,
voice-tone or mannerisms. The wife is not sympathetic. In goes the
engram to demand that sympathy. And even if the wife thinks that
sinusitis and lung infection are repulsive enough to lead to
divorce, the reactive mind keeps that engram keyed-in. The more
hatred from the wife, the more that engram keys-in. You can kill a
man that way.
The above is a standard sympathy engram. When a therapist tries to
get that engram away from the patient, the reactive mind balks. The
"I" doesn't balk. The analyzer doesn't balk. These are hopeful that
this engram will spring. But the reactive mind keeps it nailed down
until the dianeticist puts a crowbar under it. Then it is gone.
(Enough locks may be lifted, by the way, to alleviate this
condition. But the patient will dig up another engram!)
Resistance to past therapies has resulted from these sympathy
engrams. Yet they lie right there on the surface, fully exposed as
chronic psycho-somatic illness.
Feeding a patient with a psycho-somatic ill any number of drugs can
result in only temporary relief. "I" doesn't want the illness. The
analyzer doesn't want it. But the body has it and if anybody
succeeds in curing it short of removing that engram, the body, at
the command of the reactive mind, will find something else to
substitute for that ill or develop an "allergy" to the drug or
annul the effect of the drug entirely.
129
Of course one can always rip living tissue out of the skull with
knives, ice-picks or shock in wholesale quantities. This will cure
a psycho-somatic ill. It also, unhappily, cures the personality,
the intellect and all too often, life itself.
In dianetics the application of technique to relieve the engrams
causing these ills has brought the uniform relief of all patients
treated without relapse. In short and in brief, psycho-somatic ills
can now be cured. All of them.
130
CHAPTER VI
Emotion and the Dynamics
Emotion is a theta quantity, which is to say that it is so involved
with life forces that dianetics at this stage handles it with
invariable success but does not attempt to give forth more than a
descriptive theory. Much research must be done on emotion; but so
long as the therapy embraces it and releases it with success,
further data can be dispensed with up to a point.
Emotion would have to be divided sharply into minus emotions and
plus emotions. The minus emotion would be non-survival in
character, the plus emotion would be pro-survival. The pleasant and
pleasurable emotions are not of any great concern to us here. It is
believed that all emotion is the same thing but in its aspects
above Zone 1 it can be by-passed as unnecessary to explain at this
time for the purpose of this book.
In Zones 1 and 0, emotion becomes very important to therapy. As has
been covered earlier, Zones 1 and 0 are the anger and apathy zones
respectively. From death up to the border between anger and fear is
Zone 0. From this borderline to the beginning of boredom is anger,
Zone 1.
It is as if the survival dynamic, in becoming contracted into Zone
1, first began to display hostility, then, on further suppression
toward death, anger. On further suppression, rage began to be
displayed. Then fear as the next lower level, then terror and
finally, just above death, apathy.
And as the dynamic is suppressed, the cells react forcefully to the
menace, it could be said, by resisting the
131
menace. The analyzer resists down to the top border of Zone 1, but
in ever decreasing control. From here on down the cells, the actual
organism, do the resisting in a last ditch effort. The reactive
mind is thoroughly in command from the top border of Zone 1
straight on down to death, and it is in ever increasing command of
the organism as the dynamic is suppressed.
Emotion seems to be inextricably connected up with the actual force
of life. That there is a life force no engineer could doubt. Man
and medicine usually look at the pitcher and forget that the
pitcher is only there to hold milk and that the milk is the
important quantity. Life force is the helium which fills the free
balloon. Out goes the helium, down comes the balloon. When this
type of energy is located and isolated as itself - if it is just an
energy type - then medicine can start moving forward in strides
which will make all former steps look like those of a man in a sack
race. Medicine doesn't have any spare helium, for one thing.
How high this life force can go on the survival scale is not known.
Above Zone 3 is the area of question marks. A clear goes up into a
level of persistence, vigor, tenacity, rationality and happiness.
Perhaps some day a clear will attain the nebulosity the author used
to hear about in India which marked the man who was all soul.
How far down it can go is definitely known. A man dies. He doesn't
move or think. He dies as an organism, then he dies as cells. There
are different periods of "life after death" for the cells and
biologists remark that the hair and nail cells do not die for
months. So here is a spectrum of death, first the organism and
then, colony by colony, the cells.
That is from the bottom of Zone 0 downward. But what we are
interested in is the area from Zone 1 down to the bottom of Zone 0.
It could be postulated that the analytical mind has its greatest
bounce against the suppressor, its highest ability to care for the
organism, when
132
it is in the third zone. As the suppressor thrusts downward against
it, the analyzer, within lower Zone 3 thrusts heavily back. This is
necessity at work. The necessity level can rise, in this action, to
a point which keys-out all engrams!
It must be realized that the analyzer considers future suppressors
and is continually engaged upon computations which pose problems of
the future which the analyzer resolves - this is one of the
functions of the imagination; it must further be realized that the
analyzer is engaged upon a multitude of computations about the
present: for the analytical mind is dealing continually with an
enormous number of factors which comprise the suppressor of the
present and the suppressor of the future. It computes for instance
on the alliances with friends and symbiotes and its greatest
victories are achieved by taking some of the suppressor and turning
it into an alliance factor.
The individual can be visualized, on the survival spectrum, as
being at the tip of the survival dynamic. The suppressor thrusts
down, or future suppressors threaten a thrust and the analytical
mind thrusts up with solutions. The level of the individual is
determined by how well these suppressors are apparently met.
We speak now of the clear and until further mention we will
continue to use the clear. The clear is an unaberrated person. He
is rational in that he forms the best possible solutions he can on
the data he has and from his viewpoint. He obtains the maximum
pleasure for the organism, present and future, as well as for the
subjects along the other dynamics. The clear has no engrams which
can be restimulated to throw out the correctness of computation by
entering hidden and false data into it. No aberration. Hence the
reason we use him here as an example.
The survival dynamic is high, more than balancing the suppressor.
Take this as a first condition. This would
133
place the dynamic in Zone 3, Tone 3.9. Now increase the suppressor.
The dynamic is pushed back to Tone 3.2. Necessity surges up. The
suppressor is thrust back. The dynamic is once more at Tone 3.9.
This action could be termed an enthusiastic resurgence. The
individual has actually gotten "angry" - that is to say, he has
called upon his being to furnish power for thought and action.
Mentally he calls upon whatever constitutes mental energy.
Physically, if the suppression was physical, he would call upon his
adrenalin. This is proper use of the endocrines, to use them for
regaining position in relation to the suppressor. Any and all body
function is under analytical (but not necessarily monitored)
command.
Now let us suppose that the suppressor surges down against the
dynamic and drives the dynamic to 3.0. Necessity level comes up.
Action is taken. The full force of the being is thrown against the
suppressor. Now let us suppose that a new factor comes into the
suppressor and makes it much, much stronger. The individual still
attempts to resurge against it. But the suppressor weighs heavier
and heavier against him. He is beginning to exhaust his supplies of
mental or physical energy (and this suppressor can be on either a
mental or physical level.) Wearying, the individual drops down to a
2.5. The suppressor again increases. Resurgence is attempted once
more. The last supply of available energy or data is thrown out.
And another factor comes into the suppressor, increasing its
weight. The individual sags down to 2.0.
At exactly this point the analyzer, having failed, finally cuts
out. Here is entered the top of Zone 1. Hostility sets in. The
suppressor is down, pressing down against actual cellular survival.
And it drops lower. The individual goes into anger, recruiting
cellularly but not sentiently, the last forces. Again the
suppressor gets new weight. The individual goes into rage. Once
more the suppressor drops. The individual goes into fear, Tone 0.9.
Again the
134
suppressor lowers, recruiting new factors. The individual is thrust
down to 0.6 and here is in terror. Once more the suppressor drops
with new force. The individual slides into fear paralysis, 0.2.
Suppose we parallel this in a very simple, dramatic example so that
we do not have to consider a thousand subtle factors. A clear,
inexperienced in hunting, determines to shoot a grizzly. He has a
fine rifle. The grizzly appears to be easy game. The man is at 3.9
or above. He feels good. He is going to get that grizzly as the
grizzly has been threatening the man's stock. High enthusiasm
carries him to the lair. He waits, he finally sees the grizzly.
There is a cliff above the man which he could not ordinarily climb.
But to get a good shot before the grizzly vanishes, the man has to
climb the cliff. Seeing he was in danger of losing the game brought
the man down to 3.2. Necessity sends him up the cliff. He fires but
in firing falls back down the cliff. The grizzly is wounded. He
starts toward the man. Necessity surges up. The man recovers the
gun and shoots again. He is at 3.0 the moment he shoots. He misses.
He fires again but the miss, with the grizzly charging, brought him
down to 2.5. He shoots once more. The grizzly takes the ball and
keeps on coming. The man shoots again but he has suddenly realized
that his rifle is not going to stop this grizzly. His tone drops to
2.0. He begins to snarl and feverishly work his gun. His bullets go
wild. He experiences rage at the gun, the grizzly, the world, and
throws the gun away, ready to meet the grizzly, almost upon him,
with bare hands. Suddenly the man knows fear. His tone is 1.2. It
drops to 0.9 with a smell in his nostrils of the bear. He knows the
bear will kill him. He turns and tries to claw up the cliff and get
away but his efforts are frenzied. He is at Tone 0.6, stark terror.
The bear strikes him and knocks him from the cliff-side. The man
lies still, breathing almost halted, heart-beat slowed to nearly
135
nothing. The bear hits him again and the man lies still. Then the
bear decides he is dead and walks away. Shaken, the man eventually
comes around, his tone gradually rising up to 2.0, the point where
his analyzer shut off. He stirs more and gets up. His tone is back
to 2.5: he is analytically afraid and cautious. He recovers his
gun. He begins to leave the scene. He feels a great necessity to
recoup his own self-esteem and his tone comes to 3.2. He walks away
and reaches a safe area. Suddenly it occurs to him that he can
borrow a friend's Mauser. He begins to make plans to get that bear.
His enthusiasm mounts. But, completely aside from the engram
received when the bear knocked him out, he acts on his experience.
Three days later he kills the bear and his tone rises to 4.0 for
the space of contemplation and telling the tale and then his mind
occupies itself with new matters.
Life is much more complicated than the business of killing
grizzlies, usually a lot less dramatic but always full of
situations which cause a fluctuation of the suppressor. The gaining
of all pleasurable goals - a bear killed, a woman kissed, a seat in
the front row at the opera, a friend won, an apple stolen - are
sweeps through various levels of tone. And the individual is
generally carrying on three or three thousand computations at once
and there are thirty or thirty thousand variables in his
computations. Too many unknowns, too many entrances of "didn't know
the gun was loaded" factors, all these can throw the analyzer from
a direct alignment into the scattered dispersal of non-function.
The analyzer can be considered to cut out when Tone 2.0 is reached.
From 2.5 down the computations it makes are not very rational - too
many unknowns, too many unexpected factors, too many discoveries of
miscalculations.
This is living on a "clear" basis. When our hunter was hit by the
bear he received an engram. That engram, when it keyed-in, would
give him a fear, an apathy attitude, in the presence of certain
factors: every perceptic present - the smell of that ground, twigs,
bear-breath,
136
etc. But he killed the bear. The chances of that engram keying-in
are remote. Not because he killed the bear but because he was,
after all, a grown man. And, if a clear, he could have thought back
and cleared the whole thing himself.
This is a complete cycle of emotion. Enthusiasm and high pleasure
are at the extreme top. Fear and paralysis are at the bottom.
Feigned death, in Man, is very close to the actual thing on the
tone scale. It is a valid mechanism. But it is complete apathy.
So long as the analyzer is operating, the receipt of an engram is
impossible. Everything files in the standard banks. As soon as the
border 2.0 is passed on the way down, "unconsciousness" can be
judged to have set in and anything registered, in company with pain
or painful emotion, is an engram. This is not a shift of
definition. The analyzer cuts out, with surgical anaesthetic, at
2.0. The anaesthetic may depress the level of awareness further.
Pain may depress it even more. But depressing the level of
awareness is not necessarily depressing emotion. How much conceived
danger or sympathy is present in the environment? This is what
depresses the tone scale. There can be a reactive engram which
contains a Tone 4.0 or one that contains a 1.0 or another that
contains a 0.1. This is not, then, quite two-dimensional, this
emotion.
The level of depth of consciousness can be affected by painful
emotion, poisons or other things which depress awareness. After
that it is all engram and the engrams have their own tone scale
which runs from 4.0 down to 0.1.
It can be seen now that two things are at work. First is the state
of physical being. It is this which tunes down the analyzer. Then
there is the mental state of being. This is what tunes down the
emotional tone scale.
But remember that in engrams there is another factor present:
valence. Once its own analyzer is out the body will assume the
evaluation or emotional condition of any
137
other analyzer present. Here we have affinity at work in earnest.
"Unconscious" in the presence of other beings, an individual picks
up a valence for every other being present. Some of these valences
are incidental. He will pick first that valence which is most
sympathetic as a desirable future friend (or some similar person).
And he will pick that valence which is the top valence (highest
survival, the boss, the winner) for his dramatization. He will also
take the valence of the winning entity (winning over himself or
others) for emotional tone. If the winning valence is also the
sympathetic valence, he has an engram which can be utilized to its
fullest extent.
Let us make this an example: a man is under nitrous oxide (the most
vicious anaesthetic ever invented as it is actually not anaesthetic
but a hypnotic) undergoing exodontistry. As usual everybody present
around the "unconscious" patient chatters and yaps about the
patient, the weather, the most popular movie star, or baseball. The
exodontist is a tough character, bossy to the nurse, apt to be
angry about trifles; he is also very sympathetic toward the
patient. The nurse is a blue-eyed blonde who is sexually aberrated.
The patient, actually in agony, receiving an engram amongst engrams
which may ruin his life (terrible stuff, nitrous oxide; really
hands out a fancy engram as any dianeticist can attest) is
unanalytical. Everything said to him or around him is taken
literally. He takes the valence of the exodontist as both the top
valence present and the sympathetic valence. But every phrase
uttered is aberrative and will be interpreted by that happy little
moron, the reactive mind, on the order of Simple Simon who was told
he had to be careful how he stepped in the pies, so he stepped in
them carefully. These people may be talking about somebody else but
every "I" or "he" or "you" uttered is engramic and will be applied
to others and himself by the patient in the most literal sense. "He
can't remember anything"
138
says the exodontist. All right, when the engram keys-in, this
patient will have an occlusion on memory in greater or lesser
degree. "He can't see or feel it": this means an occlusion on
sight, pain and tactile. If the patient has his eyes watering in
agony at the moment (though completely "under") he may get actual
bad vision as well as poor visual recall from this experience. Now
they put him in the hands of this blonde nurse to let him sleep off
the drug and recover. She is an aberree amongst aberrees. She knows
patients do weird things when they are still "out" so she pumps him
for information about his life. And she knows they are hypnotic
(yes, she sure does) so she gives him some positive suggestions.
Amusing herself. She says he'll like her. That she'll be good to
him. And stay there now for the present.
So the poor patient, who has had two wisdom teeth, impacted, taken
out, has a full anger-sympathy dramatization. The general tone he
takes is the tone the exodontist showed to the others in the room.
The exodontist was angry at the nurse. With his recalls all messed
up, the patient a few years later meets a woman similar to this
nurse. The nurse has given him compulsions toward her. The silly
little moron, the reactive mind, sees in this entirely different
person enough similarity to create an identity between the nurse
and this new woman. So the patient divorces his wife and marries
the pseudo-nurse. Only now that he has married the pseudo-nurse the
dental engram begins to key-in in earnest. Physically he gets ill:
the two molars adjacent to where the wisdom teeth came out develop
large cavities and begin to rot (circulation shut down, pain in the
area but can't be felt because there's a pain recall shut-off). His
memory goes to pieces. His recalls become worse. He begins to
develop eye trouble and a strange conjunctivitis. Further (because
the dentist leaned on his chest and stomach with a sharp elbow from
time to time) he has chest and stomach
139
pains. The nitrous oxide hurt his lungs and this pain is also in
chronic restimulation. But most horrible: he believes that this
pseudo-nurse will take care of him and he stops to some degree
taking care of himself in any way; his energy dissipates; and
analytically he knows it is all wrong and that he is not himself.
For he is now fixed in the valence of the exodontist who is angry
with this nurse and so he beats the pseudo-nurse because he senses
that from her all evil flows. The girl he married is not and was
not the nurse: she sounds something like her and is a blonde. She
has her own engrams and reacts. She attempts suicide.
Then, one day, since this is one engram among many, the mental
hospital gets our patient and the doctors there decide that all he
needs is a good solid series of electric shocks to tear his brain
up, and if that doesn't work, a nice ice-pick into each eyeball
after and during electric shock, the ice-pick sweeping a wide arc
to tear the analytical mind to pieces. His wife agrees. Our patient
can't defend himself: he's insane and the insane have no rights,
you know.
Only the cavalry, in this one case, arrived in the form of
dianetics and cleared the patient and the wife and they are happy
today. This is an actual engram and an actual case history. It is a
sympathy engram, pro-survival on the moronic reactive mind level.
This is to show the ebb and flow of emotion within this one engram.
The physical being is out and in agony. The mental being is given a
variety of emotional tones on a contagion principle. The actual
emotional tone of the patient, his own, is beaten apathy; hence he
can no longer "be himself."
In passing it should be mentioned that only absolute silence, utter
silence and tomb-like silence, should attend an operation or injury
of any kind. There is nothing which can be said or given as a
perceptic in any moment of "unconsciousness" which is beneficial to
a patient.
140
Nothing! In the light of these researches and scientific findings
(which can be proven in any other laboratory or group of people in
very short order), speech or sound in the vicinity of an
"unconscious" person should be punished criminally as, to anyone
who knows these facts, such an act would be a willful effort to
destroy the intellect or mental balance of an individual. If the
patient is complimented, as in hypnosis or during an injury or
operation, a manic is formed which will give him temporary euphoria
and eventually plunge him into the depressive stage of the cycle.*
The golden rule could be altered to read: If you love your brother,
keep your mouth shut when he is unconscious.
Emotion can be seen then to exist in two planes, the personal plane
and the extra-valence plane. It is communicable in terms of
identical thinking. Rage present when a man is "unconscious" will
give him a Tone 1 engram: it will contain rage. Apathy present in
the vicinity of an "unconscious" person will give him a Tone 0
* The author is well aware that many physicians, in using
narcosynthesis, have occasionally accidentally entered
"unconscious" periods. They have promptly considered, then, that
these areas were equivocal, that the patient was probably not
unconscious. In dianetic research patients have been rendered
"unconscious" to the satisfaction of two doctors, both skeptical
(since no longer skeptical) and have been given material which the
dianeticist knew nothing about. Along with the complete data of the
tests, as muttered by the doctors as they took them to make sure,
by blood pressure, respiration, etc. that the patient could not be
more "unconscious" unless he were dead, the data were recovered in
full in every case and for every condition of "unconsciousness."
Two patients were for a time severely aberrated by the careless
comments of the anesthetizing and examining doctors, a note added
to warn those attempting this experiment in the future. This is the
stuff of which insanity is made. Be careful with it when
manhandling patients.
141
engram. Happiness present during an engram is not very aberrative
but will give a Tone 4 engram. And so forth. In other words, the
emotion of those present around an "unconscious" person is
communicated into the person as part of his engram. Any mood can be
so communicated.
In dramatizing an engram, the aberree always takes the winning
valence and that valence is not, of course, himself. If only one
other person is present and the other is talking in terms of
apathy, then the apathy is the tone value of the engram. When an
apathy engram is restimulated, the individual, unless he wants to
be hurt severely, is apathetic and this tone, being the nearest to
death, is the most dangerous one to the individual. The rage
emotion communicated to an "unconscious" person gives him a rage
engram he can dramatize. This is most harmful to the society. A
merely hostile tone present around an "unconscious" person gives
him a merely hostile engram (covert hostility). With two people
present, each having a different mood, the "unconscious" person
receives an engram with two valences other than his own. When this
happens he will first dramatize the winning valence with its mood
and, if forced from this, will dramatize the second valence with
its mood. Driven from this in a chronic engram, he goes insane.
Nothing here should be construed to mean that a person only uses or
dramatizes sympathy engrams. This is very far from the case. The
sympathy engram gives him the chronic psycho-somatic illness. He
can dramatize any engram he has when it is restimulated.
Emotion, then, is communication and a personal condition. The
cellular level evaluation of a situation depends upon any other
analyzer present, even if that analyzer is thoroughly hostile to
it. Lacking such evaluation, the individual takes his own tone for
the moment.
There is another condition of emotion which is of
142
extreme and useful interest to the therapist since it is the first
thing with which he will have to deal in opening a case. We do not
mean here to start discussing therapy but to describe a necessary
part of emotion.
Great loss and other swift and severe suppressor action dams up
emotion in an engram. Loss itself can be a shock to reduce
analytical power. And an engram is received. If it is the loss of a
sympathetic person on whom an individual has depended, it seems to
the individual as if death itself stalks him. When such a
suppressor effect occurs, it is as if a strong steel spring had
been compressed within the engram. When it releases it comes with a
terrible rush of emotion (if this discharge is, indeed, emotion,
though we hardly know what other name to call it).
Life force apparently gets dammed up at these points in life. There
may be enormous quantities of that life force available but some of
it becomes suppressed into a loss engram. After that the person
does not seem to possess as much fluid vitality as before. This may
be not emotion but life force itself. The mind then has below it,
as in a cyst, a great quantity of sorrow or despair. The more of
these charges exist in such an encysted state, the less free are
the emotions of the individual. This may be on a basis of
suppression to a point from which there is no swift rising. Nothing
in the person's future seems to bring him up to any plane like
those he occupied before.
The glory and color of childhood vanishes as one progresses into
later years. But the strange part of it is that this glamor and
beauty and sensitivity to life are not gone. They are encysted. One
of the most remarkable experiences a clear has is to find, in the
process of therapy, that he is recovering appreciation of the
beauty in the world.
Persons, as they live forward from childhood, suffer loss after
loss, and each loss takes from them a little
143
more of this ;0 quantity which may be, indeed, life force itself.
Bound up within them, that force is denied them and indeed, reacts
against them.
Only this emotional encysting can, for instance, compartment the
mind of a person who is multi-valent or who cannot see or hear his
past. The analytical mind, worked upon by the reactive bank,
compartments and divides with loss after loss until there is no
free flow left. Then a man dies.
Thus we could say that emotion, or what has been called emotion, is
really in two sections: first, there is the endocrine system which,
handled either by the analytical mind in the upper two zones or the
reactive mind in the lower two zones, brings emotional responses of
fear, enthusiasm, apathy, etc.; second, there would be life force
itself becoming compartmented by engrams and being sealed up,
little by little, in the reactive bank.
It is possible that a therapy could be formulated which would
spring out these various life force charges only and create thereby
a full clear. Unfortunately, to date, this has not been possible.
The odd part of emotion is that it is so ordinarily based on the
word content of engrams. If an engram says, "I am afraid," then the
aberree is afraid. If an engram says, "I am calm," even if the rest
of the engram gives him chattering shakes, the aberree still has to
be "calm."
The problem of emotion as endocrine balance and life force has
another complication in that the physical pain in an engram is
often mistaken for a particular emotion named in the engram. For
instance, the engram can say with verbal content that the
individual is "sexually excited" and have as a pain content an ache
in the legs and have as an actual emotional content (the valence
that says "I'm sexually excited") anger. This, to the aberree
dramatizing it is a complex affair. When he is "sexually excited" -
he has an idea what that means as just language - he is also angry
and has an ache in the legs. This is actually very amusing in many
cases and has led to a
144
standard set of clinical jokes, all of which begin with, "You know,
I feel like everybody else."
Dianeticists, having discovered that people evaluate the emotions,
beliefs, intelligence and somatics of the world in terms of their
own engramic reactions, delight in discovering new concepts of
"emotion." "You know how people feel when they're happy. Their ears
burn." "I feel just like anybody else when I'm happy; my feet and
eyes ache." "Of course I know how people feel when they're happy;
just pin prickles going all over them." "I wonder how people can
stand to be passionate when it makes their noses hurt so." "Of
course I know how people feel when they're excited: they have to go
to the toilet."
Probably every person on earth has his own peculiar definition for
every emotional state in terms of engram command. The command plus
the somatics and perceptics make what they call an "emotional
state."
Actually the problem, then, should be defined in terms of the
clear, who can function without engramic orders from the reactive
mind. So defined it breaks down in terms of the endocrine system
and the varying level of life force free to resurge against the
suppressor.
Laughter, it should be added, is not, strictly speaking, an emotion
but a relief from emotion. The early Italians had a very definite
idea, as represented by their folk tales, that laughter was of
therapeutic value. Melancholy was the only mental illness these
tales consider and laughter was its only cure. In dianetics we have
a great deal to do with laughter. In therapy patients vary, in
their laughter reaction, from the slight chuckle to hilarious
mirth. Any engram which really releases may be expected to begin
somewhere between tears and boredom and end with laughter; the
nearer the engram's tone is to tears at the first contact, the more
certainly laughter will appear as it is relieved.
There is a stage of therapy often reached by the preclear when his
entire past life seems to be a subject of uncontrollable mirth.
This does not mean he is clear but
145
it means that a large proportion of the encysted charges have been
tapped. A pre-clear has laughed for two days almost without
ceasing. Hebephrenia is not the same thing as this laughter for the
relief of the pre-clear on realizing the shadowy aspect and
completely knowable character of his past fears and terrors is
hearty.
Laughter plays a definite role in therapy. It is quite amusing to
see a pre-clear, who has been haunted by an engram which contained
great emotional charge, suddenly relieve it, for the situation, no
matter how gruesome it was, when relieved, is in all its aspects a
subject of great mirth. The laughter fades away as he becomes
disinterested in it and he can be said to be "Tone 3" about it.
Laughter is definitely the relief of painful emotion.
[The complete Tone Scale, its use in predicting the behavior of
others as well as assisting in auditing, is given in the book
SCIENCE OF SURVIVAL by L. Ron Hubbard, 1951, 580 pages.]
146
CHAPTER VII
Prenatal Experience and Birth
Old women less than a hundred years ago talked wisely about
"prenatal influence" and how a woman marked her child. Many such
intuitive thoughts are based, actually, on observed data. It can be
observed that the child born out of wedlock is often a luckless
creature (in a society which frowns upon such bearings). These
tenets have been held in the market place for a great many
millenia. Just because they have been held is no reason they are
true, but they make an excellent beginning for a chapter on
prenatal experience and birth.
If dianetics had worked on obscure theories such as those of the
old women or those of the mystics who believe that "childish
delusions" are capable of aberrating a child, dianetics would not
be a science of mind. But it was no obscure theory which brought
about the discovery of the exact role prenatal experience and birth
play in aberration and psycho-somatic ills.
Many schools of mental healing from the Aesculapian to the modern
hypnotist were studied after the basic philosophy of dianetics had
been postulated. Much data was accumulated, many experiments were
made. The fundamentals about engrams had been formulated and
"unconsciousness" had been discovered as being a period of actual
recording when the theory began to predict new phenomena not
hitherto observed.
There has been, in recent years, a practice called
"narco-synthesis." This was actually a branch of "hypno-analysis"
and "deep analysis." It did not produce clears and it did not even
produce alleviation in the majority of
147
its cases. But it was discovered to be an aberrative factor in
itself. A thing which aberrates may well lead to something which
removes aberrations if it is studied scientifically.
Narco-synthesis was so studied. Several cases were examined on
which narco-synthesis had been employed. Some of these cases had
experienced relief from narcosynthesis. Others had become a great
deal worse.
Working with hypno-analysis it was discovered that the technique
could be varied until it would actually remove the aberrative
charge contained in locks. In treating schizophrenics with
narco-synthesis it was found that the locks (periods of mental
anguish not including physical pain or "unconsciousness") would
sometimes spring (clear) and sometimes not.
Narco-synthesis is a complicated name for a very ancient process
quite well known in Greece and India. It is drug hypnotism. And it
is generally employed either by those practitioners who do not know
hypnosis or on those patients who will not succumb to ordinary
hypnotism. A shot of sodium pentothal is given intravenously to the
patient and he is asked to count backwards. Shortly he stops
counting at which the injection is also stopped. The patient is now
in a state of "deep sleep." That this is not sleep seems to have
missed both narco-synthesists and hypnotists. It is actually a
depressant on the awareness of an individual so that those
attention units which remain behind the curtain of his reactive
bank can be reached directly. These attention units are up against
the standard banks. The by-pass circuits (demon circuits) which lie
between these banks and "I" have themselves been by-passed. In
other words, a section of the analytical mind has been exposed
which is not aberrated. It is not very powerful and it is not
highly intelligent, but it has the advantage of being hard up
against the standard banks. This is basic personality. The intent
and purpose and persistence of these few attention units have the
same quality and direction as the whole analytical mind
148
would have if it were clear. It is a very nice, co-operative group
of attention units and it is very useful; for basic personality has
all recalls - sonic, audio, tactile, smell, pain, etc. It can get
at anything that is in the banks - which is everything perceived or
thought in a lifetime, minute by minute. These qualities of basic
personality have been very poorly described in hypnotism, and it is
doubtful even if it was generally known that sonic was part of the
recall system disclosed by deep hypnotism or the drug hypnotism
called narco-synthesis.
A study of basic personality in a multi-valent subject who had poor
memory, no good recalls and scant imagination disclosed the
information that BP (the attention units called basic personality)
was more able to select out data than AP (aberrated personality as
represented by the awake subject). It was further discovered that
AP could ordinarily return better than BP so far as time-distance
went but that when AP arrived at the earliest place it was unable
to manage recall. But if AP had gone back and established a vague
contact with an incident, drug hypnotism or standard hypnotism used
on him when he was in present time (no longer returned would then
permit BP to return. Drug hypnotism has seldom been able to force
back very early into a patient's life. But by making the strength
of AP go back and then using BP for the recall, some very early
incidents could be reached. This trick was invented to overcome
some of the difficulties which had made drug hypnosis relatively
uncertain in results.
Then another factor was discovered. All those patients who had been
treated by narco-synthesis had become worse every time the people
doing the work had crossed over but left (because "everybody knew"
an "unconscious" person didn't record) a period of
"unconsciousness." When one of these "unconscious" periods was so
probed - by the drug hypnosis called narco-synthesis - the patient
usually became worse, not better. Doing a
149
little more probing than had been done by the usual practitioners,
dianetic research entered some of the late life "unconscious"
periods and, with much labor, laid them bare.
Now all drug hypnosis, whether it is called narco-synthesis or a
visit from the god Aesculapius, is still hypnosis. Whatever is said
to a hypnotized subject remains as a positive suggestion, and these
positive suggestions are simply engrams with a somewhat lighter
effect and a shorter duration. When a drug is present the hypnotism
is complicated by the fact that hypnotic drugs are, after all,
poisons; the body is then possessed of a permanent (at least until
dianetics was discovered) somatic to go along with the suggestion.
Drug hypnotism invariably creates an engram. Whatever a
practitioner says to a drugged subject becomes engramic in some
degree. In the course of dianetic research it first was supposed,
playing back the careless chatter of practitioners out of the minds
of patients they had placed under drug hypnosis, that this
carelessness in saying so many aberrative things was responsible
for some of the failure. But this was found to be true in a very
limited sense. Then it was discovered that when the "unconscious"
periods were reached by drug hypnosis they refused to lift even
when the patient recounted them scores of times. This was blamed on
the drug character of the hypnosis.
Straight hypnotism was then used to reach these late "unconscious"
periods and these periods still failed to lift. Therefore it was
adjudged safe to continue drug use on those patients who refused
hypnosis. And the AP-BP alternate trick began to be employed.
It was discovered by drug hypnosis where it was necessary and
straight hypnosis where that was possible that the "schizophrenic"
(the multi-valent aberree) could be made to reach very early
periods in every case. And it was further found that an early
period of "unconsciousness"
150
would often lift. Experimentation brought about a scientific axiom:
The earlier the period of "unconsciousness" the more likely it is
to lift. That is a fundamental axiom of dianetic therapy.
Manic-depressives who had sonic recall were worked upon, most of
them by straight hypnosis, and it was discovered that they also
followed this rule. But it was most dramatic in the multi-valent
aberree: for when the engram did not lift it impinged against his
analytical mind when he was awakened and created a variation in his
psychoses and brought with it psycho-somatic illnesses as well.
This brought about an understanding of why the multi-valent
aberree, under narco-synthesis, was made worse whenever some
practitioner had glided over (but not entered, of course) a
late-life period of "unconsciousness." Now came the problem of
applying the axiom. It was postulated that the primary engram must
in some way suppress later engrams. In view of other data and
postulates, this was an entirely reasonable assumption. The earlier
a person went in the life of a multi-valent aberree the less
likelihood there was of restimulating him artificially. Often an
engram at around two or three years of age would lift entirely and
give him a great deal of relief.
The problem of this research was very far from the same problem of
those who, not knowing about the reactive mind and
"unconsciousness," tried merely to find computing factors on a
rational level or incidents of everyday life as aberrative factors
in a patient.
When an engram is touched, it is very resistive, particularly above
the age of two years. Further, the whole reactive bank was buried
deeply under foggy layers of "unconsciousness" and was further
safeguarded by a mechanism of the analytical mind which tended to
prohibit it from touching pain or painful emotion. The
151
reactive bank was protecting itself all the way through the
research but it was obviously the answer. The problem was how to
achieve its relief, if it could be relieved.
Having made several multi-valent personalities intensely
uncomfortable, a new necessity level was reached whereby something
had to be done about the problem. But there was this shining hope,
the above axiom. A bridge between insanity and sanity had to be
built and there, in the axiom, one had at least a glimmer of a
plan. The earlier one had experienced this fog and pain, the
lighter these engrams seemed to be.
Then, one day, a multi-valent patient, under drugs, went back to
his birth. He suffered the pain - and it was very painful with this
crude technique, for dianetics had not yet smoothed down to a
well-oiled piece of machinery - and he floundered through the
"unconsciousness" of the period and he fought the doctor who had
tried to put drops in his eyes and he generally resented the entire
proceedings. AP had been sent down first, then later, under drugs,
BP had contacted the incident.
This seemed a remarkable day for dianetics. After twenty runs
through birth the patient experienced a recession of all somatics
and "unconsciousness" and aberrative content. He had had asthma. It
seemed that this asthma had been caused by the doctor's enthusiasm
in yanking him off the table just when he was fighting for his
first breath. He had had conjunctivitis. That came from the
eye-drops. He had had sinusitis. That had come from the nose swabs
used by the pretty nurse.
Rejoicing was held for he seemed to be a new man. A primary
psychosis about being "pushed around" had vanished. The subjective
reality of this incident was intense. Objective reality did not
matter but this patient had a mother near at hand and objective
reality was established simply by returning her in therapy to his
birth. They had not communicated about it in detail. The recording
of her sequence compared word for word
152
with his sequence, detail for detail, name for name. Possibility,
even if they had communicated, of such duplication, outside the
dianetic situation, was mathematically impossible. And she had been
"unconscious" during his birth and had always supposed that the
affair had been quite different and the return data collapsed her
awake description of it as being so much fable.
In order to make sure that this was no freak (for it is a very poor
research man who will base conclusions on a series of one) two
manic-depressives were returned to their births and both completed
the experience. But one of these two birth engrams would not lift!
The postulated axiom was called into play again. If one could find
the earliest engram, then the others would lift each in turn. That
was the hope.
The manic-depressive whose birth had not lifted was returned to a
period before birth in an effort to find an earlier engram.
Structural theories, as fondly held for ages, had thoroughly
collapsed already when "unconscious" fog and pain had been
penetrated to discover the engram as an aberrative unit. Tests had
held up the discovery that all data, awake, asleep and
"unconscious," from the moment of conception on was always recorded
somewhere in the mind or body. The little matter of myelin
sheathing, since it had already been disproven by laboratory
research which included the reaching of birth, was discarded. The
theory that no recordings can take place in the mind until the
nerves are sheathed depends upon a theoretical postulate, has never
been subjected to scientific research, and depends for its
existence upon Authority alone - and a "science" which depends on
Authority alone is a breath in the wind of truth and is therefore
no science at all. That babies cannot record until the myelin
sheathing is formed has about as much truth, on investigation, as
the fact that penis-envy is the cause of female homosexuality.
Neither theory, when applied, works. For
153
the baby, after all, is composed of cells and it is evidenced now
by much research that the cell, not an organ, records the engram.
Thus there was no inhibition about looking earlier than birth for
what dianetics had begun to call basic-basic (the first engram of
the first chain of engrams). And an earlier engram was reached.
It has since been discovered that a great deal of recording is done
by the child in the womb which is not engramic. For a time it was
thought that the child in the womb records on the proposition of
"extended hearing," where hearing tunes up in the presence of
danger and particularly during "unconsciousness." But the first
research discovered prenatal engrams to be most easily reached when
they contained a great deal of pain. Cells, not the individual, are
evidenced to record pain. And the reactive engram bank is composed
only of cells.
Recourse to nature rather than recourse to Authority is the very
building block of modern science. So long as Galen remained an
Authority on blood, none but "madmen" like Da Vinci, Shakespeare
and William Harvey even thought to experiment to find out what
truly was the action of blood! So long as Aristotle remained the
Authority for All, the Dark Ages reigned. Advance comes from asking
free-minded questions of nature, not from quoting the works and
thinking the thoughts of by-gone years. Recourse to precedent is an
assertion that yesterday's mentors were better informed than
today's: an assertion which fades before the truth that knowledge
is compounded of the experience of yesterdays, of which we have
more, most certainly, than the best-informed mentor of yesterday
itself.
In that dianetics was based on a philosophy that used the cell as
the basic building block, the fact that recording of engrams was
done by cells came with less surprise than it otherwise might have.
The engram is not a memory; it is a cellular trace of recordings
impinged deeply into the very structure of the body itself.
154
The experience of which cells themselves were capable had already
been tested. It had been found that a monocell divided not only its
substance but gave its total experience, as a master disc will make
duplicates, to its offspring. Now this is a peculiarity of
monocells: they survive as identities. Each is personally its
fore-bearer. Cell A divides to a first generation; this generation
is also Cell A; the second generation, the second division, creates
an entity which is still Cell A. Lacking the necessity of such
laborious processes as construction and birth and growth before
reproduction, the monocell simply splits. And everything it has
learned could be postulated to be contained in the new generation.
Cell A dies but through generations from it, the latest generation
is still Cell A. Man's belief that he is to live in his progeny
might possibly derive from this cellular identity of procreation.
Another interesting possibility lies in the fact that even neurons
exist in embryo in the zygote and neurons do not themselves divide
but are like organisms (and may have the virus as their basic
building block).
Dianetics, as a study of function and the science of mind, does not
need any postulate concerning structure, however. The only test is
whether or not a fact works. If it does work and can be used, it is
a scientific fact. And the prenatal engram is a scientific fact.
Tested and checked for objective reality, it still stands firm. And
as for subjective reality, the acceptance of the prenatal engram as
a working fact alone makes possible the clear.
At the end of a series of 270 clears and alleviations a short
series of five cases was taken to finally settle the argument.
These five cases were not permitted to admit anything before birth.
They were treated with everything dianetics, hypnotism and other
therapeutics could offer, and no clear was obtained. This ruled out
the "personality of the operator" or "suggestion" or "faith" as
factors in dianetics. These five cases had never been informed of
prenatal engrams. Each swerved in toward them but was restrained
without informing him that
155
engrams existed that early. The five were alleviated as to some
variety of psycho-somatic ills but the ills were only alleviated,
not completely cured. The aberrations remained but little changed.
They are extremely disappointed since each had heard something of
"the miracles dianetics could perform." Before then 270 cases had
been worked and 270 cases had reached prenatal engrams. And 270
cases had been cleared or alleviated as the dianeticist chose and
time permitted. All could have been cleared with an additional
average of 100 or so hours for each of the persons who were
alleviated. In short, on random cases - and selected cases so that
at least two of each classification of neurosis or psychosis was
included in the clearing - when prenatal engrams and birth were
taken into account and used in therapy, results were obtained. When
these factors were not taken into account, results were no more
favorable than those attained in the best successes of past schools
- which is not nearly good enough for a science of mind.
Dianetics had prenatal and birth engrams wished off on it as facts
existing in the nature of things. That past schools have been
passing over these engrams and into the prenatal area without
success does not mean that prenatals could not be found any more
than it means that these past schools found much value in prenatal
experience when they considered it at all. The problem is slightly
more complex: the difficulty lay in finding the reactive bank which
was occluded by "unconsciousness" which had never before been
penetrated wittingly as "unconsciousness." The discovery of this
reactive bank led to the discovery of prenatal engrams, which are
quite different from "prenatal memory."
After a few cases had been examined as to objective and subjective
reality dianetics was forced to accept, if it wished a clear, the
fact that the cells of the foetus record. A few more cases and a
little more experience discovered
156
that the embryo cells record. And suddenly it was discovered that
recording begins in the cells of the zygote - which is to say, with
conception. That the body recalls conception, which is a high level
survival activity, has little to do with engrams. Most patients to
date sooner or later startle themselves by finding themselves
swimming up a channel or waiting to be connected with. The
recording is there. And there's little use arguing with a pre-clear
that he cannot recall being a sperm, engramic or not as the case
may be. It must be remarked because any dianeticist will encounter
this.
Anyone postulating that "return to the womb" was an ambition should
have examined life in the womb a little more carefully. Even a poor
scientist would have at least tried to find out if anybody could
recall it before he made a statement that there was a memory of it.
But life in the womb does not seem to be the Paradise it has been
poetically, if not scientifically, represented. Actuality discloses
that three men and a horse in a telephone booth would have but
little less room than an unborn baby. The womb is wet,
uncomfortable and unprotected.
Mama sneezes, baby gets knocked "unconscious." Mama runs lightly
and blithely into a table and baby gets its head stoved in. Mama
has constipation and baby, in the anxious effort, gets squashed.
Papa becomes passionate and baby has the sensation of being put
into a running washing machine. Mama gets hysterical, baby gets an
engram. Papa hits Mama, baby gets an engram. Junior bounces on
Mama's lap, baby gets an engram. And so it goes.
People have scores of prenatal engrams when they are normal. They
can have more than two hundred. And each one is aberrative. Each
contains pain and "unconsciousness."
Engrams received as a zygote are potentially the most aberrative,
being wholly reactive. Those received as an
157
embryo are intensely aberrative. Those received as the foetus are
enough to send people to institutions all by themselves.
Zygote, embryo, foetus, infant, child, adult: these are all the
same person. Time has been considered the Great Healer. That can be
filed with the things "everybody knew." On a conscious level it may
be true. But on a reactive level Time is nothing. The engram,
whenever received, is strong in proportion to the degree it is
restimulated.
The mechanism of an engram has an interesting feature. It is not
"reasoned" or analyzed nor does it have any meaning until it has
been keyed-in. A baby before speech could have an engram in
restimulation but that engram must have been keyed-in by the
analytical data the baby has.
The reactive mind steals meaning from the analytical mind. An
engram is just so many wave-recordings until it is keyed-in, and
those recordings, by such restimulation, become effective upon the
analytical mind. It may be that the engram never has any reason or
meaning in itself but only thrusts its waves forward as unreasoned
things at the body and analyzer, and the body and analyzer, through
mechanisms, give them meaning. In other words, the engram is not a
sentient recording containing meanings. It is merely a series of
impressions such as a needle might make on wax. These impressions
are meaningless to the body until the engram keys-in, at which time
aberrations and psycho-somatics occur.
Thus it can be understood that the prenatal child has no remotest
idea of what is being said in terms of words, It does learn, being
an organism, that certain things may mean certain dangers. But this
is every bit as far as it goes with recording. The mind must become
more or less fully formed before the engram can impinge into the
analytical level.
The prenatal child can, of course, experience terror. When the
parents or the professional abortionist start
158
after it and thrust it full of holes, it knows fear and pain.
It has, however, this prenatal child, an advantage in its
situation. Being surrounded by amniotic fluid and dependent for
nutrition on its mother, being in a state of growth and easily
reformed physically, it can repair an enormous amount of damage and
does. The recovery qualities of the human body are never higher
than before birth. Damage which would maim an infant for life or
would kill a grown man can be taken in stride by the prenatal
child. Not that this damage does not make an engram - it certainly
does, complete with all data and speech and emotion - but that this
damage does not easily kill it is the point here.
Why people try to abort children is a problem which has its answer
only in aberration, for it is very difficult to abort a child. One
can say that in the attempt the mother herself is in more danger of
dying than the child, no matter what method is used.
A society which suppresses sex as evil and which is so aberrated
that any member of it will attempt an abortion is a society which
is dooming itself to ever-rising insanity. For it is a scientific
fact that abortion attempts are the most important factor in
aberration. The child on whom the abortion is attempted is
condemned to live with murderers whom he reactively knows to be
murderers through all his weak and helpless youth! He forms
unreasonable attachments to grandparents, has terrified reactions
to all punishments, grows ill easily and suffers long. And there is
no such thing as a guaranteed way to abort a child. Use
contraceptives, not a knitting needle or the douche bag, to hold
down population. Once the child is conceived, no matter how
"shameful" the circumstances, no matter the mores, no matter the
income, that man or woman who would attempt an abortion on an
unborn child is attempting a murder which will seldom succeed and
is laying the foundation of a childhood of illness and heartache.
Anyone attempting an abortion is committing an act against the
whole society and the
159
future; any judge or doctor recommending an abortion should be
instantly deprived of position and practice, whatever his "reason."
If a person knows he has committed this crime against a child who
has been born, he should do all possible to have that child
"cleared" as soon as possible after the age of eight and in the
meantime should treat that child with all the decency and courtesy
possible in order to keep the engram out of restimulation.
Otherwise he may send that child to an institution for the insane.
A large proportion of allegedly feeble-minded children are actually
attempted abortion cases, whose engrams place them in fear
paralysis or regressive palsy and which command them not to grow
but to be where they are forever.
However many billions America spends yearly on institutions for the
insane and jails for the criminals are spent primarily because of
attempted abortions done by some sex-blocked mother to whom
children are a curse, not a blessing of God.
Antipathy toward children means a blocked second dynamic.
Physiological examination of anyone with such blockage will
demonstrate a physical derangement of the genitalia or glands.
Dianetic therapy would demonstrate attempted abortion or an equally
foul prenatal existence and would clear the individual.
The case of the child who, as this is read, is not yet born but
upon whom abortion has been attempted, is not hopeless. If he is
treated with decency after he is born and if he is not restimulated
by witnessing quarrels, he will wax and grow fat until he is eight
and can be cleared, at which time he will probably be much startled
to learn the truth But that startlement and any antagonism included
in it will vanish with the finishing of the clear and his love of
his parents will be greater than before.
All these things are scientific facts, tested and rechecked and
tested again. And with them can be produced a clear on whom our
racial future depends.
160
CHAPTER VIII
Contagion of Aberration
Disease is contagious. Germs, traveling from one individual to
another, wander through an entire society, respecting none until
stopped by such things as sulfa or penicillin.
Aberrations are contagious. Like germs they respect none and carry
forward from individual to individual, from parents to child,
respecting none until they are stopped by dianetics.
The people of yesterday supposed that genetic insanity must exist,
for it could be observed that the children of aberrated parents
were often themselves aberrated. There is genetic insanity but it
is limited to the case of actually missing parts. A very small
percentage of insanity falls into such a category and its
manifestation is mental dullness or failure to coordinate and
beyond these has no aberrative quality whatever (such people
receive engrams which complicate their cases).
The contagion of aberration is too simple in principle to be much
labored here. In dianetics we learn that only moments of
"unconsciousness," short or long and of greater or lesser depth,
can contain engrams. When a person is rendered "unconscious,"
people in his vicinity react more or less at the dictates of their
engrams: in fact, the "unconsciousness" is quite ordinarily caused
by somebody's dramatization. A clear, then, could be rendered
unconscious by an aberree who is dramatizing and the aberree's
dramatization of his engram would enter as an engram into the
clear.
The mechanics are simple. People under stress, if aberrated,
dramatize engrams. Such dramatization may
161
involve the injury of another person and render him more or less
"unconscious." The "unconscious" person then receives as an engram
the dramatization.
This is not the only way contagion of aberration gets about. People
on operating tables, under anaesthetic, are subjected to the more
or less aberrated conversation of those present. This conversation
enters into the "unconscious" person as an engram. Similarly, at
the scene of accidents, the emergency nature of the experience may
excite people into dramatizations, and if a person is "unconscious"
because of the accident, an engram is received.
Aberrated parents are certain to infect their children with
engrams. The father and mother, in dramatizing their own engrams
around sick or injured children, pass them along just as certainly
as if those engrams were bacteria. This does not mean that the
total reactive bank of a child is composed solely of the parents'
engrams, for there are many exterior influences to the home which
can enter into the child when it is "unconscious." And it does not
mean that the child is going to react to the same engrams the way
either parent might react, for the child, after all, is an
individual with an inherent personality, a power of choice and a
different experience pattern. But it does mean that it is utterly
inevitable that aberrated parents will in some way aberrate their
children.
Misconceptions and poor data in a society's culture become engrams
because not all the conduct around an "unconscious" person is
dramatization. If some society believed that fish-eating brought on
leprosy, it is quite certain that this false datum would find its
way into engrams and sooner or later some one would develop a
leprosy-like disease after having eaten fish.
Primitive societies, being subject to much mauling by the elements,
have many more occasions for injury than civilized societies.
Further, such primitive societies are alive with false data.
Further, their practice of medicine
162
and mental healing is on a very aberrative level by itself. The
number of engrams in a Zulu would be astonishing. Moved out of his
restimulative area and taught English he would escape the penalty
of much of his reactive data; but in his native habitat the Zulu is
only outside the bars of a madhouse because there are no madhouses
provided by his tribe. It is a safe estimate and one based on
better experience than is generally available to those who base
conclusions on "modern man" by studying primitive races that
primitives are far more aberrated than civilized peoples. Their
savageness, their unprogressiveness, their incidence of illness all
stem from their reactive patterns, not from their inherent
personalities. Measuring one set of aberrees by another set of
aberrees is not likely to lead to much data. And the contagion of
aberration, being much greater in a primitive tribe, and the
falsity of the superstitious data in the engrams of such a tribe
both lead to a conclusion which, observed on the scene, is carried
out by actuality.
Contagion of aberration is very easily studied in the process of
clearing any aberree whose parents fought. Mother, for instance,
might be relatively unaberrated at the beginning of the marriage.
If she is beaten by her husband who is, after all, dramatizing, she
will begin to pick up his aberrations as part of her own reactive
pattern. This is particularly noticeable when one is clearing a
person who was conceived shortly after his parents' marriage or
before it. Papa may begin with a certain dramatization which
includes beating a wife. Whatever he says in such a dramatization
will sooner or later begin to affect the wife and she may - unless
extraordinarily well balanced - begin to dramatize these things on
her own. Eventually, when the child is born, she will begin to
dramatize on the child, thus putting him into a continual state of
restimulation.
Birth is one of the most remarkable engrams in terms of contagion.
Here the mother and child both receive the
163
same engram which differs only in the location of pain and the
depths of "unconsciousness." Whatever the doctors, nurses and other
people associated with the delivery say to the mother during labor
and birth and immediately afterwards before the child is taken away
is recorded in the reactive bank, making an identical engram in
both mother and child.
This engram is remarkably destructive in several ways. The mother's
voice can restimulate the birth engram in the child and the
presence of the child can restimulate the giving-birth engram in
the mother. Thus they are mutually restimulative. In view of the
fact that they have all the other restimulators also in common a
later life situation can cause them each to suffer simultaneously
from the engram. If birth included a slammed window, a slammed
window may trigger birth dramatization in both, simultaneously,
with resultant hostilities or apathies.
Should a doctor become angry or despairing, the emotional tone of
birth can be severe. And if the doctor talks at all, the
conversation takes on its full reactive literal meaning to both
mother and child.
Many cases were cleared where both mother and child were available.
One such case found the mother (as heard by the child in dianetic
clearing) moaning, "I'm so ashamed, I'm so ashamed," over and over.
The child had a neurosis about shame. When the mother was cleared,
it was found that her mother at birth was moaning, "I'm so ashamed,
I'm so ashamed." One can presume that this has been going along, by
contagion, since Cheops built his tomb.
In the larger sphere of society contagion of aberration is
extremely dangerous and cannot but be considered as a vital factor
in undermining the health of that society.
The social body behaves similarly to an organism in that there are
social aberrations which exist within the society. The society
grows and may fade like an organism
164
which has people, not cells, for its parts. Where pain is leveled
by the head of the society at any member in that society, a source
of aberration is begun which will be contagious. The reasons
against corporal punishment are not "humanitarian," they are
practical. A society which practices punishment of any kind against
any of its members is carrying on a contagion of aberration. The
society has a social engram, society size, which says punishment is
necessary. Punishment is meted. The jails and institutions fill.
And then one day some portion of the society, depressed into Zone 1
by a government's freedom with government engrams, jumps up and
wipes the government out. And a new set of aberrations is formed
from the violence attending the destruction. Violent revolutions
never win because they begin this cycle of aberration.
A society filled with aberrees may feel it necessary to punish.
There has been no remedy other than punishment. The provision of a
remedy for unsocial conduct by members of the group is of more than
passing interest to a government for a continuance of its own
corporal practices; adding these to the continuing aberrations of
the past seriously depresses the survival potential of that
government and will some day cause that government to fall. After
many governments so fall, its people too perish from this earth.
Contagion of aberration is never more apparent than in that social
insanity called war. Wars never solve the need of wars. Fight to
save the world for democracy or save it from Confucianism and the
fight is inevitably lost by all. War has become associated in the
past with competition, and it has been believed, therefore, by
shifty logic, that wars were necessary. A society which advances
into a war as a solution of its problems cannot but depress its own
survival potential. No government was ever permitted to enter a war
without costing its people some of their liberties. The end product
is the apathy of a
165
ruling priesthood, where mystery and superstition alone can band
the insane remnants of a people together. This is too easily
observed in past histories to need much amplification. A democracy
engaging in war has always lost some of its democratic rights. As
it engages in more and more wars, it eventually comes under the
command of a dictator (rule by a single engram). The dictator,
forcing his rule, increases the aberrations by his activity against
minorities. Revolt begins to follow revolt. Priesthoods flourish.
Apathy awaits. And after apathy comes death. So went Greece, so
went Rome. So goes England. So goes Russia. And so goes the United
States and with it goes Mankind.
Rule by force is a violation of the law of affinity for force
begets force. Rule by force reduces the self-determinism of the
individuals in a society and therefore the self-determinism of the
society itself. Contagion of aberration sweeps along like a forest
fire. Engrams beget engrams. And unless the dwindling spiral is
interrupted by new lands and mongrel races which escape their
aberrative environments, or by the arrival of a means to break the
contagion of aberration by clearing individuals, a race will reach
downward to the end of the cycle - Zone 0.
A race is as great as its individual members are self-determined.
In the smaller sphere of the family, as in the national scenes,
contagion of aberration produces an interruption of optimum
survival.
Self-determinism is the only possible way a computer can be built
to give rational answers. Holding down seven in an adding machine
causes it to give wrong answers. Entering fixed and
not-to-be-rationalized answers into any human being will cause him
to compute wrong answers. Survival depends on right answers.
Engrams enter from the exterior world into the hidden recesses
below rational thinking and prevent rational answers being reached.
This is exterior-determinism. Any interference
166
with self-determinism cannot but lead to wrong computations.
In that a clear is cooperative, a society of clears would
cooperate. This may be an idyllic, Utopian dream and it may not be.
In a family of clears there is observable harmony and cooperation.
A clear can recognize a superior computation when he sees one. He
does not have to be slugged and held down and made to obey to make
him put a shoulder to the wheel. If he is made to obey, independent
of his thinking, his self-determinism is interrupted to a point
where he cannot get right answers; the society which holds him has
penalized itself his ability to think and act rationally. The only
way a clear could so be forced would be to give him engrams or turn
a neuro-surgeon loose upon his brain. But a clear does not need to
be forced for if the job is important enough to do in terms of
general need, he will most certainly do it according to his
intelligence and do it as well as possible. One never observes the
forced individual doing a job well, just as one never observes a
forced society winning against an equally prosperous free society.
A family which runs on the godhead plan, where somebody must be
obeyed without question, is never a happy family. Its prosperity
may be present in some material aspects but its apparent survival
as a unit is superficial.
Forced groups are invariably less efficient than free groups
working for the common good. But any group which contains aberrated
members is likely to become entirely aberrated as a group through
contagion. The effort to restrain aberrated members of a group
inevitably restrains the group as a whole and leads to further and
further restraint.
Clearing one member of a family of aberrees is seldom enough to
resolve the problems of that family. If the husband has been
aberrated, he will have aberrated or restimulated his wife and
children in one way or another, even when he used no physical
violence upon them. The
167
parents implant their mutual aberrations in the children and the
children, being potentially self-determined units, revolt back to
stir up the aberrations of the parents. In that so many of these
aberrations, by contagion, have become mutual and held in common
with the whole family, the happiness of the family is severely
undermined.
The corporal punishment of children is just another facet of the
problem of the forced group. If any one cares to argue over the
necessity of punishing children, let him examine the source of the
misbehavior of the children.
The child who is aberrated may not have his engrams entirely
keyed-in. He may have to wait until he himself is married and has
children or a pregnant wife to have restimulators enough to cause
him to become, suddenly, one of these things they call a "mature
adult" blind to the beauty of the world and burdened by all its
griefs. But the child is nevertheless aberrated and has many
dramatizations. The child is in a very unlucky situation in that he
has with him his two most powerful restimulators - his mother and
father. These assume the power of physical punishment over him. And
they are giants to him. He is a pygmy. And he has to depend upon
them for food, clothing and shelter. One can speak very grandly
about the "delusions of childhood" until he knows the engram
background of most children.
The child is on the unkind receiving end of all the dramatizations
of his parents. A cleared child is a most remarkable thing to
observe: he is human! Affinity alone can pull him through. The
spoiled child is the child whose decisions have been interrupted
continuously and who is robbed of his independence. Affection could
no more spoil a child than the sun could be put out by a bucket of
gasoline.
The beginning and end of "child psychology" is that a child is a
human being, that he is entitled to his dignity and
self-determinism. The child of aberrated parents is a
168
problem because of the contagion of aberration and because he is
denied any right to dramatize or counter. The wonder is not that
children are a problem but that they are sane in any action for, by
contagion, punishment, and denial of self-determinism the children
of today have been denied all the things required to make a
rational life. And these are the future family and the future race.
This is not a dissertation on children or politics, however, but a
chapter on contagion of aberration. Dianetics covers human thought,
and human thought is wide ground. When one gazes at the
potentialities inherent in the mechanism of contagion, respect for
the inherent stability of Man cannot but arise. No "wild animal"
reacting with inherent "asocial tendencies" could have built
Nineveh or Boulder Dam. Carrying the contagion mechanism like some
Old Man of the Sea, we have yet come far. Now that we know it,
perhaps we shall truly reach the stars.
169
CHAPTER IX
Keying-in the Engram
The single source of inorganic mental illness and organic
psycho-somatic illness is the reactive engram bank. The reactive
mind impinges these engrams upon the analytical mind and the
organism whenever they are restimulated after being keyed-in.
There are many known incidents in a lifetime which apparently have
a profound influence upon the happiness and mental condition of the
individual. The individual remembers these and to them attributes
his troubles. In a measure he is right: he is at least looking back
at incidents which are held in place by engrams. He does not see
the engrams. In fact, unless he is acquainted with dianetics, he
does not know the engrams are there. And even then he will not know
their contents until he has undergone therapy.
It can be demonstrated with ease that any moment of "conscious
level" unhappiness which contained great stress or emotion was not
guilty of the charge of causing aberration and psycho-somatic
illness. These moments, of course, played a role in the matter:
they were the key-ins.
The process of keying-in an engram is not very complex. Engram 105,
let us say, was a moment of "unconsciousness" when the prenatal
child was struck via Mother, by Father. The father, aware or not of
the child, uttered the words, "God damn you, you filthy whore:
you're no good!" This engram lay where it was impressed, in the
reactive bank. Now it could lie there for seventy years and never
become keyed-in. It contains a headache and a
170
falling body and the grating of teeth and the intestinal sounds of
the mother. And any of these sounds, post-birth, may be present in
large quantities without keying-in this engram.
One day, however, the father becomes exasperated at the child. The
child is tired and feverish, which is to say that his analytical
mind may not be at its highest level of activity. And the father
has a certain set of engrams which he dramatizes and one of these
engrams is the above incident. And the father reaches out and slaps
the child and says, "God damn you: you're no good!" The child
cries. That night he has a headache and is much worse physically.
And he feels both an intense hatred and a fear of his father. The
engram has keyed-in. Now the sound of a falling body or grating
teeth or any trace of anger of any kind in the father's voice will
make the child nervous. His physical health will suffer. He will
begin to have headaches.
If we take this child who has now become an adult and rake back
over his past, we shall discover (though it may be occluded) a lock
like the above key-in. And now not only the key-in; we may discover
half a hundred, half a thousand, such locks just on this one
subject. One would say, unless he knew dianetics, that this child
was ruined post-natally by being beaten by the father, and one
might attempt to bring the patient's mind back into better
condition by removing these locks.
There are literally thousands, tens of thousands of locks in the
average life. To take all of these locks away would be a task for
Hercules. Every engram a person has, if it has been keyed-in, may
have its hundreds of locks.
If conditioning existed as a mechanism of pain and stress, Mankind
would be in very bad condition. Fortunately conditioning does not
so exist. It appears to exist but the appearance is not the fact.
One would think that if a child were daily thrust around and
reviled he would
171
eventually becomed conditioned into a belief that this was the way
life was and that he had better turn against it.
Conditioning does not, however, exist. Pavlov may have been able to
drive dogs mad by repeated experiments: this was simply bad
observation on the part of the observer. The dogs might be trained
to do this or that. But it was not conditioning. The dogs went mad
because they were given engrams if and when they did go mad. A
series of such experiments, properly conducted and observed, proves
this contention.
The boy who was daily told he was no good and who apparently went
into a decline solely because of that declined only because of the
engram. This is a happy fact. The engram may take a while to locate
- a few hours - but when it is alleviated or refiled in the
standard memory banks, everything which had locked on to it also
refiles.
People trying to help others with their aberrations who did not
know about engrams were, of course, operating with 2.9 strikes
against any success. In the first place, the locks themselves may
vanish down into the reactive bank. Thus we get a patient who says,
"Oh, my father wasn't so bad. He was a pretty good guy." And we
discovered, and the patient discovers, when an engram is sprung,
that father was customarily to be found dramatizing. What the
patient knows about his past before engrams are sprung is not worth
cataloguing. In another case we may find a patient saying, "Oh, I
had a terrible childhood, a terrible childhood. I was beaten
seriously." And we discover, when we get the engrams refiled, that
the parents of this patient never laid a hand on him in punishment
or wrath in his entire life.
An engram may coast along without being keyed-in for decades. One
of the most remarkable types of case is one which spent an entire
youth without displaying any aberration. Then suddenly, at the age
of twenty-six, we discover him to be so aberrated, so suddenly,
that it appears
172
he must have been hexed. Perhaps most of his engrams were concerned
with the action of getting married and having children. He has
never been married before. The first time he is weary or ill and
realizes he has a wife on his hands, the first engram keys-in. Then
the dwindling spiral begins to go to work. This one shuts down the
analyzer enough so that others can be keyed-in. And finally we may
discover him in an institution.
The young girl who has been happy and carefree to the age of
thirteen and then suddenly goes into a decline has not, that
moment, received an engram. She has had an engram key-in which let
another key-in. Fission reaction. This key-in may have required
nothing more than the discovery that she was bleeding from the
vagina. She has an emotional engram about this; she becomes
frantic. The other engrams, as the days follow, may swing into
position to impinge upon her. And so she becomes ill.
The first sexual experience may be one which keys-in an engram.
This is so standard that sex has gotten a rather bad name for
itself here and there as being an aberrative factor all by itself.
Sex is not and never has been aberrative. Physical pain and emotion
which incidentally contain sex as a subject are the aberrative
factors.
It may be that a patient is urgent in her insistence that her
father raped her when she was nine and that this is the cause of
all her misery. Large numbers of insane patients claim this. And it
is perfectly true. Father did rape her, but it happened she was
only nine days beyond conception at the time. The pressure and
upset of coitus is very uncomfortable to the child and normally can
be expected to give the child an engram which will have as its
content the sexual act and everything that was said.
Drug hypnosis is dangerous when one is trying to treat psychotics
as has been mentioned. And there are other reasons it is dangerous.
Any operation under anaesthetic or any drugging of a patient may
bring about the keying-in of engrams. Here is the analyzer shut
down, there is the reactive bank open to be stirred by any comment
173
made by the people around the drugged subject. Hypnotism itself is
a condition in which engrams may be keyed-in which have never
before been restimulated: the glassy-eyed stare of the person who
has been "too often hypnotized," the lack of will seen in people
too often hypnotized, the dependence of the subject upon the
hypnotic operator, all these things stem from the keying-in of
engrams. Any time the body is rendered "unconscious" without
physical pain, no matter how light the degree of "unoonsciousness"
is, even if it is only the lightness of weariness, an engram may be
keyed-in. And when "unconsciousness" is complicated by new physical
pain, a new engram is formed which may gather up with it an entire
bundle of old engrams not hitherto keyed-in. Such a late engram
would be a "cross-engram" in that it crosses chains of engrams. And
if such an engram resulted in a loss of sanity, it would be called
a "break-engram."
There are some aspects to various drug "unconsciousnesses" which
have been very perplexing in the past. Psychotic women often
maintain, after they are awakened from a drugged sleep (and
sometimes a hypnotic sleep), that they have been raped. Men
occasionally maintain that the operator has tried to perform a
homosexual act upon them while they were drugged. Although it
occasionally occurs that people are raped after being drugged, the
largest number of such assertions are merely an aspect of the
key-in mechanism. Almost any child has been put through the
prenatal discomfort of coitus. Often there was violent emotion
other than passion present. Such an engram may stay out of circuit
for years until drugged "unconsciousness" or some such thing keys
it in. The patient goes to sleep without a keyed-in engram; he
wakes up with one. He tries to justify the strange sensations he
has (and engrams are timeless things unless they are arranged
properly on the time track) and comes out with the "solution" that
he must have been raped.
174
Childhood rapes are very seldom the responsible cause in sexual
aberration. They are the key-in.
One looks at the conscious-level locks and sees sadness, mental
anguish and misfortune. Some of the experience there seems to be so
terrible that it must certainly cause aberration. But it does not.
Man is a tough, resilient creature. These conscious-level
experiences are at best only guide-posts leading toward the actual
seat of trouble, and that is not known in any detailed way to the
individual.
The engram is never "computed." An example of this, on a lightly
aberrative level, can be found in a child's punishment. If one
examines a childhood where punishment has been corporal and
frequent, he begins to understand the utter futility of the
pain-drive theory. Punishment actually and literally and
emphatically does no good of any kind whatsoever but accomplishes
quite the reverse, since it occasions a reactive revolt against the
punishment source and is likely to cause not only a disintegration
of a mind but also a continual bedevilment of the punishment
source. Man reacts to fight sources of pain. When he stops fighting
them he is mentally broken and of little use to anyone, much less
himself.
We take a case of a boy who was beaten with a hair-brush every time
he was "bad." In researching this case the most searching inquiry
fails to reveal any vivid recall of why he was punished but only
that he was punished. The progress of the event would go something
like this: activity more or less rational, fright at threatened
punishment, punishment, sorrow over punishment, renewed activity.
The mechanics of the case showed the person to have been engaged on
some activity which, whether others would consider it so or not,
was nevertheless survival activity to him, giving him either
pleasure or actual gains or even the assertion that he could and
would survive; the moment punishment is threatened old punishments
go into restimulation as minor engrams, resting
175
usually on major engrams: this shuts down the analytical power to
some extent and the recording is now being done on a reactive
level; the punishment takes place, submerging analytical awareness
so that the punishment records in the engram bank only; the sorrow
following is still in the period of analytical shut-down; the
analyzer gradually turns on; full awareness returns, and then
activity on an analytical plane can be resumed. All corporal
punishment runs this gamut and all other punishments are, at best,
locks, following this same pattern with only the complete shut-down
resulting from pain missing.
If the analyzer wants this data for computation, it is not
available. There is a reaction in the reactive mind when the matter
is approached. But there are five courses the reactive mind can
take with this data! And there is no guarantee and no method
between land and sky of knowing what course the reactive mind will
take with the data except knowing the full engram bank - and if
that is known, the person could be cleared with a few more hours
work and would need no punishment.
These five ways of handling data make corporal punishment an
unstable and unreliable thing. A ratio exists which can be tested
and proven in any man's experience: A man is evil in the direct
ratio that destructiveness has been leveled against him. An
individual (including those individuals society is liable to forget
as individuals: children) reacts against the punishment source
whether that source be parents or government. Anything which sets
itself forward against an individual as a punishment source will be
considered in greater or lesser degree (as it is in proportion to
benefits) as a target for the reactions of the individual.
The little accidental milk glass upsets of children, that noise
which just accidentally occurs on the porch where the children are
playing, that little accidental ruination
176
of Papa's hat or Mama's rug, these are often cold, calculated
reactive mind actions against pain sources. The analytical mind may
temporize about love and affection and the need of three square
meals. The reactive mind runs off the lessons it has learned and
devil take the meals.
If one turned an idiot loose on an adding machine to let him audit
the company books and let him prevent the auditor from touching
equipment and data which has to be his if any answers will be
right, one would get very little in the way of correct answers. And
if one kept feeding the idiot and made him fat and powerful, the
firm would sooner or later go to ruin. The reactive mind is the
idiot, the auditor is "I" and the firm is the organism. Punishment
feeds the idiot.
The helpless amazement of police about the "confirmed criminal"
(and the police belief in the "criminal type" and the "criminal
mind") comes about through this cycle. Police, for some reason or
other, like governments, have become identified with society. Take
any one of these "criminals" and clear him and the society regains
a rational being of which it can use all it can get. Keep up the
punishment cycle and the prisons will get more numerous and more
full.
The problem of the child lashing back at his parents by "negation"
and the problem of Jimmie the Cob blowing a bank guard apart in an
armed robbery stem both from the same mechanism. The child,
examined on the "conscious-level," is not aware of his causes but
will put forth various justifications for his conduct. Jimmie the
Cob, waiting for this oh so very sentient society to tie him down
with straps in an electric chair and give him an electric shock
therapy which will cause him to cease and desist forever, examined
for his causes, will pour forth justifications to explain his life
and conduct. The human mind is a pretty wonderful computing
machine. The
177
reasons it can evolve for unreasonable acts have staggered one and
all and particularly social workers. Without knowing the cause and
the mechanism, the chances of drawing a correct conclusion by
comparing all conducts available are as remote as winning at fantan
from a Chinese. Hence, the punishments have continued as the
muddled answer to a very muddled society.
There are five ways in which a human being reacts toward a source
of danger. These are also the five courses he can take on any given
problem. And it might be said that this is five-valued action.
The parable of the black panther* is appropriate here. Let us
suppose that a particularly black-tempered black panther is sitting
on the stairs and that a man named Gus is sitting in the living
room. Gus wants to go to bed. But there is the black panther. The
problem is to get upstairs. There are five things that Gus can do
about this panther: (1) he can go attack the black panther; (2) he
can run out of the house and flee the black panther; (3) he can use
the back stairs and avoid the black panther; (4) he can neglect the
black panther; and (5) he can succumb to the black panther.
These are the five mechanisms: attack, flee, avoid, neglect or
succumb.
All actions can be seen to fall within these courses. And all
actions are visible in life. In the case of a punishment course,
the reactive mind can succumb, neglect, avoid, flee or attack it.
The action is dictated by a complexity of engrams and depends upon
which one comes into restimulation. This maelstrom of reaction
generally resolves itself, however, in one of the five courses.
* In dianetics considerable slang has been developed by patients
and dianeticists and they call the "black panther mechanism" a
neglect of the problem. One supposes this stems from the
ridiculousness of biting black panthers.
178
If a child is punished and thereafter obeys, he can be considered
to have succumbed. And the value of a child who will succumb to
punishment is so slight that the Spartans would long since have
drowned him, for it means he has sunk into an apathy unless it so
happens that he himself has computed the idea, by-passing all
reaction, that the thing for which he was punished was not bright
(he can't be assisted in this computation if punishment is entered
into the reactive mind by the source trying to assist him). He can
flee the punishment source, which at least is not apathy but merely
cowardice by popular judgment. He can neglect the matter entirely
and ignore the punishment source - and would have been called a
Stoic by the ancients, but might be called merely dull-witted by
his friends. He can avoid the punishment source, which might give
him the doubtful compliment of being sly or cunning or pandering.
Or he can attack the punishment source either by direct action or
by upsetting or fouling the person or the possessions of the source
- in which instance he would be called, on direct action, a valiant
fool, taking parental size into account, or in a less direct
fashion he could be called "covertly hostile" or could be said to
be "negating"; as long as a human being will attack as a response
to a valid threat, he can be said to be in fair mental condition -
"normal" - and a child is said to be "just acting like any normal
child."
Enter punishment into the computation and it no longer computes. It
is entirely different in the case of "experience." Life has plenty
of painful experience waiting for any human being without other
human beings complicating the score. A person who is still
unblocked in his dynamics or who has been unblocked by dianetics
can absorb the most amazing amount of hammering in the business of
living. Here, even when the reactive receives engrams as a result
of some of this experience,
179
the analytical mind can continue to cope with the situation without
becoming aberrated in any way. Man is a tough, resilient, competent
character. But when the law of affinity begins to be broken and
such a breaking of affinity gets into the reactive bank, human
beings, as antagonistic sources of non-survival, become a
punishment source. If no contra-survival engrams involving human
beings are in the earlier (before 5 years) content of the engram
bank, pro-survival engrams are taken as a matter of course and are
not severely aberrative. In other words, it is the breaking of
affinity with his fellows on an engramic level which most solidly
blocks the dynamics. Man's affinity with Man is far more a
scientific fact than it is a poetic and idyllic idea.
The cycle, then, of life which will be "normal" (current average
state) or psychotic is an easy thing to draw. It begins with a
large number of engrams before birth, it gathers more in the
dependent and rather helpless condition post-birth. Punishment of
various kinds entering now as locks key-in the engrams. New engrams
which will involve the earlier ones enter. New locks accumulate.
Illness and aberrated action set in most certainly by the age of
forty or fifty. And death ensues sometimes afterwards.
Short of the optimum solution of clearing the engrams, there are
several things which can be done about aberration and
psycho-somatic ills. That these methods are uncertain and of only
limited value does not mean that they will not occasionally meet
with some astonishingly beneficial responses.
Such methods can be classified under the headings of environmental
change, education and physical treatment. Taking factors out of the
environment of an aberree or taking the aberree out of the
environment in which he is unhappy or ineffective can bring about
some astonishingly swift recoveries: this is valid therapy; it
removes
180
the restimulators from the individual or takes the individual away
from the restimulators. It is ordinarily quite hit-or-miss and more
miss than hit, and it will not remove all the restimulators by
nine-tenths since the individual himself carries the bulk of these
around with him or is compelled to contact them. One is reminded of
a case which had severe asthma. He had received it in a very severe
birth engram; his frantic parents carried him to every mountain
asthma resort suggested and spent tens of thousands of dollars in
these jauntings. When this patient was cleared and the engram
refiled, it was discovered that the restimulator for his asthma was
clean, cold air! The only certainty in the environment approach is
that a sickly child will recover when removed from restimulative
parents and taken where he is loved and feels safe - for his
sickness is the inevitable result of restimulation of prenatal
engrams by one or the other or both his parents. Somewhere along
the line there is probably a husband or a wife who has descended
chronically into the first two zones after marriage after having
married pseudo-mother or pseudo-father or pseudo-abortionist.
In the educational field, new data or enthusiasms may very well
key-out engrams by overbalancing the reactive mind in the light of
a new analytical surge. If a man can simply be convinced he has
been fighting shadows or if he can be persuaded to hang his fears
on some indicated cause, whether that cause is true or not, he can
be benefited. Sometimes he can be "educated" into a strong faith in
some deity or cult which will cause him to feel so invulnerable
that he rises above his engrams. Raising his survival potential in
any way will raise his general tone to a point where it is no
longer on a par with the reactive bank. Giving him an education in
engineering or music, where he can receive a higher level of
respect, will often defend him from his restimulators. A rise to a
position of
181
esteem is actually a change of environment, but it is also
educational since he is now taught he is valuable. If a man can be
made busy at a hobby or work by personal or exterior education that
it is good for him, another mechanism comes into being - the
analytical mind becomes so engrossed that it takes to itself more
and more energy for its activity and begins to align with a new
purpose.
Physical treatment resulting in improved physical condition will
bring about hope or change a man's reactions by shifting him on his
time track. It may key-out engrams.
These methods are valid therapy: they are also, in reverse, the
things which cause aberrations to manifest themselves. There are
wrong ways to act and wrong things to do and wrong ways to treat
men which, in the light of what we know now, are criminal.
Thrusting a man into an environment which restimulates him and
making him stay there is a slice of murder. Making him keep an
associate who is restimulative is bad: making a man or a woman stay
with a marriage partner who is restimulative is unworkable mores
unless dianetic therapy is used; making a child stay in a home
where he is restimulated is most certainly inhibitive, not only of
his happiness but of his mental and physical development - a child
should have many more rights about such things, more places to go.
On the physical therapy level anything as violent as surgery or
exodontistry in the psycho-somatic plane is utter barbarism in the
light of dianetics. "Toothache" is normally psycho-somatic. Organic
illnesses enough to fill several catalogues are psycho-somatic. No
recourse to surgery of any kind should be had until it is certain
that the ailment is not psycho-somatic or that the illness will not
diminish by itself if the potency of the reactive mind is reduced.
Mental-physical therapy is too ridiculous, with the source of
aberration now a science, to be seriously mentioned. For no
thinking doctor or psychiatrist
182
possessed of this information would touch another electrode for
electric shock therapy or even glance at a scalpel or ice-pick to
perform an operation on the pre-frontal lobes of the brain unless
that doctor or psychiatrist is himself so thoroughly aberrated that
the act springs, not from any desire to heal but from the most
utter and craven sadism to which engrams can bring a man.*
* Many persons investigating the treatment of the mentally ill by
psychiatrists and others in charge of mental institutions are
prompted, when they discover just what the pre-frontal lobotomy,
the trans-orbital leukotomy and electric shock actually do to
patients, to revile the psychiatrist as unworthy of trust and
accuse him of using it to conduct vivisection experiments on human
beings. That any possible hope of recovery via dianetics may be
gone for these unfortunate patients in the majority of cases should
not be blamed upon the psychiatrist and neuro-surgeon. These people
have only followed their teachings in various universities and have
practiced such actions merely because they believed the problem of
the mind could not be solved by anyone. A witch-burning attitude
toward these people is very far from the one adopted by dianetics.
Pointing to the fact that they have murdered minds which would
otherwise have recovered, labeling them "mind snatchers" and making
a horror story out of their actions is far from rational conduct.
On the whole these people have been entirely sincere in their
efforts to help the insane. By contagion of aberration such people
have been subjected to enormous stresses in this work, having had
their own engrams in continual restimulation. They can be cleared
and their experience is valuable. Legislation against them such as
that recently mentioned by a senator who was familiar with
dianetics, horror stories about them in newspapers and a general
public antipathy as well as the medical doctor's traditional
distrust of them cannot but bring about a disorderly condition.
Dianetics is a newly discovered science and is nonpartisan.
183
CHAPTER X
Preventive Dianetics
There are many branches in dianetics. It is actually a family of
sciences covered by a single set of axioms. There is, for instance,
Educational Dianetics, which contains the body of organized
knowledge necessary to train minds to their optimum efficiency and
to an optimum of skill and knowledge in the various branches of the
works of Man. And there is Political Dianetics, which embraces the
field of group activity and organization to establish the optimum
conditions and processes of leadership and inter-group relations.
And again there is Medical Dianetics. And there is Social
Dianetics. There are many such subdivisions which are sciences
within themselves guided by their own axioms.
We are dealing in this volume, actually, with basic dianetics and
dianetic therapy as applied to the individual. This is the most
immediately important and the most valuable to the individual.
But no book on dianetic therapy would be complete without a mention
of a branch of dianetics which, some say, is even more important to
the race than the therapy. This is Preventive Dianetics.
If one knows the cause of something, he can usually prevent the
cause from going into effect. The discovery and proof of Ronald
Ross that the malaria germ was carried by the mosquito makes it
possible to prevent the disease from committing the ravages it once
enjoyed at the expense of Mankind. Similarly, when one knows the
cause of aberration and psycho-somatic illness, he can do a great
deal toward preventing them.
184
While Preventive Dianetics is a large subject, infiltrating the
fields of industry and agriculture and other specialized activities
of Man, its basic principle is the scientific fact that engrams can
be held to minimal content or prevented entirely with large gains
in favor of mental health and physical well-being as well as social
adjustment.
The engram is actually a very simple thing: it is a moment when the
analytical mind is shut down by physical pain, drugs or other
means, and the reactive bank is open to the receipt of a recording.
When that recording has verbal content, it becomes most severely
aberrative. When it contains antagonism on an emotional level, it
becomes very destructive. When it is intensely pro-survival in
content it is most certainly capable of thoroughly deranging a
life.
The engram, amongst other things, determines fate. The engram says
that a man has to fail to survive and so he contrives numerous ways
to fail. The engram commands that he can only experience pleasure
amongst the members of another race and so he goes amongst them and
abandons his own. It commands that he must kill to live and so he
kills. And far more subtly, the engram weaves its way from incident
to incident to cause the catastrophe which it dictates.
A recent case was plotted out to have actually gone to enormous
lengths to break his arm, for with a broken arm he received the
sympathy without which the engram said he could not live. The plot
covered three years and half a hundred apparently innocent
incidents which, when netted together, told the story.
The accident prone person is a case where the reactive mind
commands accidents. He is a serious menace in any society for his
accidents are reactively intentional and they include the
destruction of other people who are innocent.
185
Drivers with several accidents on their records are generally
accident prone. They have engrams which command them to have
accidents. When you have run a case, just one, you will see how
thoroughly and maliciously disposed this moronic thing, the
reactive mind, can be about such things. Cleared drivers could have
accidents only through two sources: (a) mechanical failure and,
more important, (b) because of accident prone people. The terrible
and awesome death toll taken by our automotive transport is almost
all attributable to reactive mind driving rather than learned
response driving. The apathy of this society is measured by the
fact that it does not act severely to prevent all automotive
accidents; just one broken windshield is one too many: now that an
answer is to hand action can take place.
The aberree in thousands of ways complicates the lives of others.
Preventive Dianetics makes it possible to sort out the aberree who
is accident prone and bar him from activities which will menace
others. This is one general aspect of Preventive Dianetics. That
the aberrees so isolated can be cleared is another type of problem.
The other general aspect of Preventive Dianetics, and the more
important, is the prevention of engrams and modification of content
both on the social and the individual scale. On the social scale
one would delete from the society the causes of aberration in that
society as if he were deleting engrams from the individual. In the
same way, one can prevent the social causes from occurring in the
first place.
In the individual, the prevention of engrams is a very easy matter.
Once the source of aberration and illness is known, one can prevent
the source from entering a life. If the source has been known to
enter, one can prevent the next step, in key-in. Of course, the
final answer in all this is therapy to a clearing, but there is one
aspect of the source which is not so answered.
The child cannot be safely cleared until he is at least five years
of age and current practice is to place this
186
figure at about eight years. Improved address to the problem may
reduce this figure, but it cannot be reduced below the age of
speech unless some one in the future invents a catalyst which
simply clears out the reactive mind without further treatment (not
as wild as it may sound). But just now and probably for a long time
to come the child will remain a problem to dianetics.
Childhood illness is chiefly derived from engrams. It is most
likely to be severe before the age of speech and the number of
deaths within the first year of life, while medicine may reduce
them, is yet a serious thing.
Preventive Dianetics addresses this problem in two phases: first
the prevention of engrams, and second, the prevention of the
key-in.
Taking the key-in first, there are two things which can be done to
prevent it. The child can be given a calm and harmonious atmosphere
which is not restimulative or, if the child appears to be
restimulated despite kindly treatment, he can be removed to another
environment which will be minus the two most certain sources: his
father and mother, and which will contain a source of affection.
The test of whether or not a child is restimulated, pre-speech or
post-speech, is very simple. Is he susceptible to illness? Does he
eat well? Is he nervous? There can be actual physical things wrong
with the child, of course, but these are quickly established by a
doctor and they lie in the category of physical derangement.
Quarrels within the hearing of a child, loud noises, frantic
conduct, drooling sympathy when he is sick or hurt, these things
are some of the key-in catalogue. These make a child ill physically
and aberrated mentally by keying-in his engrams. And nobody can say
how many he has!
The primary source of prevention lies in the field, oddly enough,
of the regard in which another person is held - his mother.
It is not "biological love" which makes mother play such an
enormous role in the life of a human being. It is
187
the simple mechanical truth that Mother is a common denominator to
all the child's prenatals. The prenatal engram is far more serious
than the post-natal. Any such engram a person has contains his
mother or his mother and another person, but always his mother.
Therefore her voice, the things she says, the things she does, have
an enormous and vast effect upon the unborn child.
It is not true that emotion gets into a child through the umbilical
cord as people always suppose the moment they hear of prenatals.
Emotion comes on another (more electrical than physical) type of
wave - what type is a problem for structure. Therefore, anyone who
is emotional around a pregnant woman is communicating that emotion
straight into the child. And mother's emotion is, in the same
manner, so conducted to his reactive mind.
Whether or not the unborn child is "unanalytical" has no bearing on
his susceptibility to engrams. The prenatal engram is just another
engram. Only when the child is actually struck or hurt by
high-blood pressure or orgasms or other sources of injury does he
become "unconscious." When he becomes "unconscious" he receives all
the percepts and words in the area of the mother as engrams.
Analytical power has nothing to do with engrams. If the child is
"unanalytical," this does not predispose him to engrams. If the
child is "unconscious" or hurt it does. The presence or absence of
"analytical power" has nothing to do with whether or not engrams
are received.
Morning sickness, coughing, all monologuing (mother talking to
herself), street noises, household noises, etc., are all
communicated to the "unconscious" child when he is injured. And the
child is very easily injured. He is not protected by formed bones
and he has no mobility. He is there: when something strikes him or
presses him, his cells and organs are injured. A simple experiment
to demonstrate how mobility influences this is to lie down in bed
and place one's head on a pillow. Then have somebody lean a hand on
one's forehead. As there is no
188
mobility, the pressure of the hand is far stronger than it would be
if a hand were laid on the forehead when one was standing. The
tissue and the water around the child form very slight buffers. In
an injury amniotic fluid, as an incompressible medium, presses him,
for it cannot compress itself. The child's situation is far from
armored. Mother's act of tying her shoes, in the later stages of
pregnancy, even may be severe on the child. Mother's strain when
lifting heavy objects is particularly injurious. And mother's
collision with objects like a table edge might well crush a baby's
head. The repair facilities of the unborn child, as mentioned
elsewhere, are far above anything ever before discovered. The child
may have its head crushed but the blueprint is still there and the
building materials and repair can be made. So it is not a case of
the child being "all right" just because it can live through almost
anything. It is a case of whether or not these injuries are going
to have high aberrative value as engrams.
Attempted abortion is very common. And remarkably lacking in
success. The mother, every time she injures the child in such a
fiendish fashion, is actually penalizing herself. Morning sickness
is entirely engramic, so far as can be discovered, since clears
have not so far experienced it during their own pregnancies. And
the act of vomiting because of pregnancy is via contagion of
aberration. Actual illness generally results only when mother has
been interfering with the child either by douches or knitting
needles or some such thing. Such interference causes the mother to
become ill and, from an actual physical standpoint, is much harder
on the mother than on the child. Morning sickness evidently gets
into a society because of these interferences such as attempted
abortion and, of course, injury.
The cells know when pregnancy occurs. The reactive mind is
acquainted with the fact before the analyzer by process of organic
sensation, since the endocrine system is altered. Hence, the
mother's discovery of pregnancy
189
has little to do with whether or not she was sick before the
discovery.
This entire field has been a subject of considerable research in
dianetics. Much more research must be done. These conclusions are
tentative. But the conclusion that the engram is received and that
it is as violent as its content, rather than its actual pain, is a
scientific fact and not in any way a theory. It is as real a
discovery as gravity.
Preventing these engrams is the first consideration. Preventing
them from having any content is the second. Women who lead peasant
lives, doing heavy labor, are subject to all manner of accident.
Perhaps such accidents cannot be prevented because of the purpose
these women serve in the society. But when it is known that any
injury to the mother can create an engram in the unborn child, it
should be the concern of all those present during such an injury,
including the mother, to maintain a complete and utter silence. Any
remark is aberrative in an engram. Even such a statement as "You
can remember this when in dianetic therapy," made toward an unborn
child, installs an engram so that every word in this statement
means a physical pain just where he received it at the time, and in
the future "dianetic therapy" will be restimulative to him.
The doctor, punching around to find out if mother is pregnant, may
say, "Well, it's hard to tell this early." The patient in dianetic
therapy years later will return into the vicinity of this incident
only to draw a blank until the dianeticist suddenly guesses the
content from how the patient describes his reactions. If the doctor
is very tough and says, "You had better take good care of yourself,
Mrs. Jones. If you don't, you'll be mighty sick!" the child,
"unconscious" from the examination no matter how mild it is, will
get a mild hypochondria when the engram keys-in and be very
concerned over his health.
If the husband uses language during coitus, every word of it is
going to be engramic. If the mother is beaten
190
by him, that beating and everything he says and that she says will
become part of the engram.
If she does not want the child and he does, the child will later
react toward him as an ally and perhaps have a nervous breakdown
when the father dies. If she wants the child and he doesn't, the
ally computation is reversed. This is true when abortion is
threatened or attempted providing the threat is contained in an
engram.
Should the mother be injured and the father be highly solicitous,
the engram has this for content and the child has a sympathy
engram. The way to survive, then, is to be pathetic when injured,
and even see to it that one is injured.
A woman who is pregnant should be given every consideration by a
society which has any feeling for its future generations. If she
falls, she should be helped - but silently. She must not be
expected to carry heavy things. And she should not have coitus
forced upon her. For every coital experience is an engram in the
child during pregnancy.
An astonishing number of pregnancies must take place which are
never realized. The violence of coitus, the use of douches and
jellies (used because the woman is still contracepting and does not
know she is already pregnant), straining bowel movements, falls and
accidents must account for a large number of miscarriages which
come about sometime around the first period after conception. For
the zygote and embryo forms of the child have a rather frail grip
on existence and are very severely injured by things the mother
would consider nothing. Once past the first missed period, the
chances of miscarriage rapidly grow less and only when the child is
a genetic monstrosity or when abortion attempts are made can a
miscarriage be expected to take place. The monstrosities are so
small a percentage that they are negligible as a possibility.
The amniotic sac can be pierced many times and repeatedly and
emptied of all water after the first missed
191
period and the child can still survive. Twenty or thirty abortion
attempts are not uncommon in the aberree and in every attempt the
child could have been pierced through the body or brain.
The child before birth does not depend upon the standard senses for
its perceptions. Engrams are not memories but cellular level
recordings. Therefore, the child needs no eardrums to record an
engram. Cases are on hand where whatever hearing mechanism the
unborn child had must have been temporarily destroyed by an
abortion attempt. And the engram was still recorded. The cells
rebuilt the apparatus which was to be the source of sound in the
standard banks and stored their own data in the reactive bank.
Release of such engrams means a restoration of rationality to the
individual far above the current norm and a stability and
well-being greater than Man ever thought Man possessed. These
engrams have been confirmed by taking the data from a child, from
the mother and the father, and all data checked. So we are dealing
here with scientific facts which, no matter how startling, are
nevertheless true.
The mother, then, should be extremely gentle on herself during
pregnancy and those around her should be entirely informed of the
necessity for silence after any jar or injury. And in view of the
fact that it is not possible to tell when a woman has become
pregnant and in view also of the high potentiality of aberration in
the zygote and embryo engrams, it is obvious that society must
better its ways toward women if the future health of the child is
to be preserved.
The woman has to some degree become considered less valuable in
this society than in other societies and times. She is expected to
be in competition with men. Such a thing is nonsense. A woman has
as high a plane of activity as man. He cannot compete with her any
more than she can compete with him in the fields of structure and
vigorous activity. Much of the social maelstrom now
192
in existence has as its hub the failure to recognize the important
role of the woman as a woman and the separation of the fields of
women and men.
The changes which will come about in the next twenty years need no
urging here. But with the recent discoveries in photosynthesis
which should secure enough food to feed Man better and at less
cost, the importance of birth control dwindles. The morality
standards have already changed, no matter what moralists do to try
to block the change. And woman, therefore, can be freed of many of
her undesirable chains.
In the custody of Man is the current world and its activity and
structure. In the charge of woman is the care of the person of the
human being and his children. Almost sole custodian of tomorrow's
generation, she is entitled to much more respect than her
chattel-period of the past gave her.
It is not, then, any wild Utopian thought that woman can be placed
above the level hitherto occupied. And so she must be placed if the
childhood of tomorrow's generation is to reach any high standard,
if homes are to be peaceful and unharassed and if society is to
advance.
Preventive Dianetics, in the sphere of the home, must place
emphasis on the woman in order to safeguard the child.
As any first step, a mother should be cleared, for any mother who
attempts an abortion is blocked across the second dynamic and any
block menaces her health as well as her happiness. An antipathy for
children has been found to accompany sexual aberration.
Preventive Dianetics, then, on the level of the individual, asks
for cleared parents and then precaution against the aberrating of
the child, and further precaution against the keying-in of any
aberration the child might have received.
To do this is very easy. Maintain silence in the presence of
injury. Do what has to be done for the injure ill and do it in
silence. Maintain silence in the presence of
193
birth to save both the sanity of the mother and the child and
safeguard the home to which they will go. And the maintaining of
silence does not mean a volley of "Sh's," for those make
stammerers.
In a wider field, the maintenance of silence around any
"unconscious" or injured person is second in importance only to
preventing the "unconsciousness" in the first place.
Say nothing and make no sound around an "unconscious" or injured
person. To speak, no matter what is said, is to threaten his
sanity. Say nothing while a person is being operated upon. Say
nothing when there is a street accident. Don't talk!
Say nothing around a sick child or an injured child. Smile, appear
calm, but say nothing. Actions do not speak louder than words but
actions are all that can be done around the sick and injured unless
one has an active desire to drive them into neurosis or insanity
or, at best, to give them a future illness.
And above all, say nothing around a woman who has been struck or
jarred in any way. Help her. If she speaks, don't answer. Just help
her. You have no idea of whether she is pregnant or not.
And it is a remarkable fact, a scientific fact, that the healthiest
children come from the happiest mothers. Birth, for one thing, in a
cleared mother, is a very mild affair. Only birth engrams in the
mother made it hard. A cleared mother needs no anaesthetic. And
that is well because the anaesthetic makes a dazed child and the
engram, when it reacts, makes him appear a dull child. A happy
woman has very little trouble. And even a few engrams, which arrive
despite all precautions, are nothing if the general tone of the
mother is happy.
Woman, you have a right and a reason to demand good treatment.
194
Book Three
THERAPY
CHAPTER I
The Mind's Protection
The mind is a self-protecting mechanism. Short of the use of drugs
as in narco-synthesis, shock, hypnotism or surgery, no mistake can
be made by an auditor* which cannot be remedied either by himself
or by another auditor. Those things which are stressed, then, in
this book, are ways to accomplish therapy as swiftly as possible
with minimal errors; for errors take time. Auditors are going to
make errors, that is inevitable. If they make the same error
repeatedly, they had better get some one to guide them through
therapy.
There are probably thousands of ways to get into trouble with
mental healing, but all these ways can be classed in these groups:
(1) use of shock or surgery on the brain; (2) use of strong drugs;
(3) use of hypnosis as such; and (4) trying to cross-breed
dianetics with older forms of therapy.
The mind will not permit itself to be seriously overloaded so long
as it can retain partial awareness of itself; it can only be
overloaded when its awareness is reduced to a point where it cannot
evaluate anything: it can then be thoroughly upset. Dianetic
reverie leaves a patient fully aware of everything which is taking
place and with full recall of everything which has happened. Types
of therapy which do not do this are possible and useful but they
must be approached with the full knowledge that they are not
foolproof. Dianetics, then, uses the reverie
* The term auditor is used in dianetics to designate anyone skilled
in the practice of dianetic therapy. To audit is both to listen and
to compute.
197
for the majority of its work and using the reverie an auditor
cannot possibly get himself into any trouble from which he cannot
extricate himself and the patient. He is working with an almost
foolproof mechanism as long as the mind retains some awareness: a
radio or a clock or an electric motor are far more susceptible to
injury in the hands of a workman than the human mind. The mind was
built to be as tough as possible. It will be found that it is
difficult to get it into situations which make it uncomfortable and
impossible, with the reverie, to embroil it enough to cause
neurosis or insanity.
In the U.S. infantry manual there is a line about decision: "Any
plan, no matter how poorly conceived, if boldly executed is better
than inaction."
In dianetics, any case, no matter how serious, no matter how
unskilled the auditor, is better opened than left closed. It is
better to start therapy if it is to be interrupted after two hours
of work than not to start therapy at all. It is better to contact
an engram than to leave an engram uncontacted even if the result is
physical discomfort for the patient - for that engram will not
thereafter possess as much power and the discomfort will gradually
abate.
This is scientific fact. The mechanism dianetics uses is an ability
of the brain which Man as a whole did not know he had. It is a
process of thought which everyone possesses inherently and which
was evidently meant to be used in the overall process of thinking
but which, by some strange oversight, Man has never before
discovered. Once a person has learned that he possesses just this
one new faculty, he is better able to think than he was before, and
he can learn this faculty in ten minutes. Further, when one
approaches an engram with this faculty (which, when intensified, is
the reverie) some of that engram's sub-level connections are broken
and the aberrative factors no longer have as much force either in
the physical or mental spheres. Further, the knowledge that there
is a solution to mental ills is a stabilizing factor.
198
Approaching an engram with the reverie is very far from the same as
restimulating the engram exteriorly as is done in life. The engram
is a powerful and vicious character only so long as it is untapped.
In place and active it can be restimulated to cause innumerable
mental and physical ills. But approaching it with reverie is
approaching it on a new circuit, one that disarms it. The power of
the engram is partly the fear of the unknown - knowing brings
stability by itself.
Do not think that you will not make patients uncomfortable. That is
not true. The auditor's work, when it taps engrams which cannot be
lifted, may cause the patient to have headaches, various aches and
pains and even mild physical illness, even when the work is
carefully done. But life has been doing this to the patient on a
much grander scale for years and no matter how badly the case is
mauled around, no matter how many aberrations spring into view to
plague the patient for a day or two, none are as serious as those
which can be occasioned by the environment acting upon the untapped
engram.
The auditor can do everything backwards, upside down and utterly
wrong and the patient will still be better, provided only that he
does not try to use drugs before he has worked a few cases, that he
does not use hypnotism as hypnotism and he does not try to cross
dianetics with some older therapy. He can use drugs in dianetics if
he knows his dianetics and if he has medical concurrence. He can
use all the techniques of hypnotism so long as he is thoroughly
experienced with dianetics. And once he has used dianetics, he will
not fall back to mystic efforts to heal minds. In short, the point
which is offered here is that so long as the auditor takes a
relatively simple case at first to see how the mechanisms of the
mind work and uses only the reverie he cannot get into trouble.
There will be those, certainly, who believe they are so vastly
experienced in tom-tom beating or gourd rattling that they won't
give dianetics a chance to work as dianetics but will sail in and
begin to plague the patient
199
about "penis-envy" or make him repent his sins, but the patient who
starts to get this will be smart to simply change positions from
the couch to the auditor's chair and clear up some of the
aberrations of the auditor before work proceeds.
Anybody who has read this book once through and procured a patient
with sonic recall for a trial effort will know more about the mind,
in those actions, than he has ever known before, and he will be
more skilled and able to treat the mind than anyone attempting to
do so, regardless of reputation, a very short while ago. This does
not mean that men who have had experience with mental patients will
not, knowing dianetics (knowing dianetics) have an edge on those
who do not realize some of the foibles of which Man in an aberrated
state is capable. And on the other hand it does not mean that some
engineer or lawyer or cook with a few dianetic cases under his
belt, will not be more skilled than all other practitioners of
whatever background or kind. In this case, the sky is no limit.
One could not say, offhand, that an able hypnotist or an able
psychologist, ready and willing to jettison and unlearn yesterday's
mistakes, is not better prepared to practice dianetics. In the
field of psycho-somatic medicine the medical doctor, with a vast
fund of experience in healing, might very well be far and above
other auditors in dianetic work. But it is not necessarily the
case, for in research it has been proven that men and women with
most unlikely professional backgrounds have suddenly become
auditors superior in skill to those in fields you might suspect
were more closely allied. Engineers particularly are excellent
material and make excellent auditors. Again, dianetics is not being
released to a profession, for no profession could encompass it. It
is insufficiently complicated to warrant years of study in some
university. It belongs to Man and it is doubtful if anyone could
manage to gain a corner on it for it does not fall within any
legislation of any kind in any place and if
200
dianetics were legislated into a licensed profession, then it is to
be feared that listening to stories and jokes and personal
experience would also have to be legislated into a profession. Such
laws would put all men of good will who lend a sympathetic ear to a
friend's troubles inside the barbed wire. Dianetics is not
psychiatry. It is not psycho-analysis. It is not psychology. It is
not personal relations. It is not hypnotism. It is a science of
mind and needs about as much licensing and regulation as the
application of the science of physics. Those things which are
legislated against are a matter of law because they may in some way
injure individuals or society. Legislation exists about
psycho-analysis in some three states in the Union, legislation
against or about psychiatry exists everywhere. If an auditor wishes
to constitute himself a psychiatrist with the power of vivisecting
human brains, if he wants to constitute himself a doctor and
administer drugs and medicines, if he wants to practice hypnotism
and pour suggestions into a patient, then he must square it with
psychiatry, medicine and the local laws about hypnotism, for he has
entered other fields than dianetics. In dianetics hypnotism is not
used, no brains are operated upon and no drugs are given unless the
local medico is part of the staff. Dianetics is not in any way
covered by legislation anywhere for no law can prevent one man
sitting down and telling another man his troubles, and if anyone
wants a monopoly on dianetics, be assured that he wants it for
reasons which have to do not with dianetics but with prof it. There
are not enough psychiatrists in the country to begin to staff the
mental institutions. Surely this generation, particularly with all
the iatrogenic* work which has been done, will continue to need
those institutions and will need psychiatrists: their
* Iatrogenic means illness generated by doctors. An operation
during which the doctor's knife slipped, and accidently harmed the
patient might cause an iatrogenic illness or injury since the fault
would have been with the surgeons.
201
field is the treatment of the insane by definition and that has
nothing to do with thee and me. In psychology, dianetics drops into
line without disturbing anything concerned with staffs or research
or teaching posts, for psychology is simply the study of the psyche
and now that there exists a science of the psyche it can go ahead
with a will. Thus dianetics is the enemy of none and dianetics
falls utterly outside all existing legislation, none of which
anticipated or made any provision for a science of mind.
202
CHAPTER II
Release or Clear
The object of dianetic therapy is to bring about a release or a
clear.
A release (noun) is an individual from whom major stress and
anxiety have been removed by dianetic therapy.
A clear (noun) is an individual who, as a result of dianetic
therapy, has neither active nor potential psycho-somatic illness or
aberration.
To clear (verb) is to release all the physical pain and painful
emotion from the life of an individual or, as in Political
Dianetics - a society. The result of this will bring about
persistence in the four dynamics, optimum analytical ability for
the individual and, with that, all recall. The experience of his
entire life is available to the clear and he has all his inherent
mental ability and imagination free to use it. His physical
vitality and health are markedly improved and all psycho-somatic
illnesses have vanished and will not return. He has greater
resistance to actual disease. And he is adaptable to and able to
change his environment. He is not "adjusted"; he is dynamic. His
ethical and moral standards are high, his ability to seek and
experience pleasure is great. His personality is heightened and he
is creative and constructive. It is not yet known how much
longevity is added to a life in the process of clearing, but in
view of the automatic rebalancing of the endocrine system, the
lowered incidence of accident and the improvement of general
physical tone, it is most certainly raised.
203
A release is an individual from whom have been released the current
or chronic mental and physical difficulties and painful emotion.
The value of a release, when compared to a clear, may not at first
thought be considered great, but when one understands that a
release is usually in excess of the contemporary norm in mental
stability, it can be seen that the condition is not without great
value.
As a standard of comparison, a clear is to the contemporary norm as
the contemporary norm is to a contemporary institutional case. The
margin is wide and it would be difficult to exaggerate it. A clear,
for instance, has complete recall of everything which has ever
happened to him or anything he has ever studied. He does mental
computations, such as those of chess, for example, which a normal
would do in a half an hour, in ten or fifteen seconds. He does not
think "vocally" but spontaneously. There are no demon circuits in
his mind except those which it might amuse him to set up - and
break down again - to care for various approaches to living. He is
entirely self-determined. And his creative imagination is high. He
can do a swift study of anything within his intellectual capacity,
which is inherent, and the study would be the equivalent to him of
a year or two of training when he was "normal." His vigor,
persistence and tenacity to life are very much higher than anyone
has thought possible.
The objection that it is dangerous to create too many clears in a
society is a thoughtless one. The clear is rational. The acts which
damage a society are irrational. That a handful of clears could
probably handle any number of "normals" is within reason, but that
the clear would handle them to their detriment is unreasonable. The
more clears a society possessed the more chance that society would
have to prosper. That a clear is unambitious is not proven out by
scientific observation, for the
204
curve of dwindling ambition follows the curve of reducing
rationality; and those who have been cleared have proven the matter
by reactivating all their skills toward goals they had once desired
but had begun to consider unattainable when "norms."* That a clear
is in some degree separated from the "norm" is attributable to the
gulf between their respective mental abilities, for he has achieved
solutions and conclusions before the "norm" has begun to form an
idea of what to conclude; this does not make a clear intolerable to
the "norm," for the clear has none of that superiority attitude
which is actually a product of engrams. This is a quick glance at
the state of being clear, but the state cannot be described; it has
to be experienced to be appreciated.
A release is a somewhat variable quantity. Anyone well advanced on
the road to clear is a release. There is no comparison between a
clear and anything Man has before believed obtainable and there is
no comparison between clearing and any therapy hitherto practiced.
In the case of the release only is there a basis of comparison
between dianetics and past therapies such as "psycho-analysis" and
any other. A release can be effected in a few weeks. The resulting
condition will be at least equivalent to that following two years
of "psycho-analysis" with the difference that the release has a
guarantee of permanent results and no guarantee of success has ever
been made by "psycho-analysis." A release does not relapse into any
pattern which has been relieved.
These are the two goals of the dianetic auditor: clear and release.
It is not known at this writing how long is
* "Norm" is a term in psychology denoting the normal individual,
which is to say, an average person. The I.Q. and behavior of a
"norm" would be an averaging out of the current population. There
is nothing desirable about being a "norm," for he is badly
aberrated.
205
the average time to raise the institutionally insane into the
neurotic level: it has been done in two hours, it has been done in
ten and in some cases it has required two hundred.*
The dianetic auditor should determine beforehand in any case
whether he wishes to attempt a release or a clear. He can achieve
either with anyone not organically insane (missing or seared
portions of the brain bringing about insanity, mainly genetic or
iatrogenic and relatively rare except in institutions). But he
should make an estimate of the amount of time he can invest in any
one person and regulate his intention accordingly and announce it
to his patient. The two goals are slightly different. In a release
one does not attempt entrance into phases of the case which will or
may bring about a necessity of long work and gives his attention to
the location and release of emotional charge. In clearing the
auditor gives his attention to the location of the basic-basic
engram, the discharge of emotion and the entire engram bank.
There is a third goal which could be considered a sub-head of a
release. This is an assist: it is done after injury, or illness
following the injury, or illness just sustained, in order to
promote more rapid recovery: to assist the body in its
rehabilitation after injury or illness. This is specialized therapy
which will probably be practiced commonly enough but is of primary
benefit to the medical doctor
* The dianetic auditor who practices with the institutionally
insane exclusively should provide himself with the text now in
preparation on that subject: the techniques are similar to those
described here but incline more toward heroic measures: this
present volume is addressed to treatment of the normal person or
the neurotic patient not sufficiently violent to be
institutionalized. However, with intelligence and imagination these
same techniques can be applied with success to any mental state or
physical illness. Institutional Dianetics is primarily the
reduction of an insanity to a neurosis.
206
who, with it, can save lives and speed healing by releasing the
engram of that particular illness or injury, thus removing the
various engram conceptions which the furtherance of the injury
restimulates. Any dianetic auditor can practice this. The assist
has about the same level of usefulness as a faith healing miracle
which would work every time.
Estimations of the amount of time the case will require are
difficult to attain with any accuracy greater than 50% and it
should be understood by the patient that the time in therapy is
variable. It depends in a measure upon the skill of the auditor,
the number of unsuspected engrams never hitherto reactivated, and
the amount of restimulation to which the patient is subject during
therapy. Therefore the auditor should not be optimistic in
estimating time but should make his patient understand that greater
or lesser time may be consumed in the therapy.
Any person who is intelligent and possessed of average persistency
and who is willing to read this book thoroughly should be able to
become a dianetic auditor. When he has cleared two or three cases
he will have learned far more and understood far more than is
contained in this book, for there is nothing which develops an
understanding of a machine like handling it in action. This is the
instruction book, the machine in question is ready to hand wherever
there are men. Contrary to superstition about the mind, it is
almost impossible to permanently injure the mechanism. It can be
done with an electric shock or a scalpel or an ice-pick, but it is
almost impossible to do it with dianetic therapy.
207
CHAPTER III
The Auditor's Role
The purpose of therapy and its sole target is the removal of the
content of the reactive engram bank. In a release, the majority of
emotional stress is deleted from this bank. In a clear, the entire
content is removed.*
The application of a science is an art. That is true of any
science. The efficacy of its application depends upon the
understanding, skill and ability of whomever applies it. The
chemist has a science of chemistry and yet the profession of being
a chemist is an art. The engineer may have behind him the precision
of all the physical sciences and yet the practice of engineering is
an art.
Certain rules of procedure can be laid down after the basic axioms
of a science are understood. Beyond those rules of procedure is the
understanding, skill and ability necessary to application.
Dianetics is extremely simple. This does not mean that cases cannot
be extremely complicated. To cover one case for each kind of case
in this book would necessitate two billion cases and that would
only encompass the current population. For each man is a great deal
different from every other man. His inherent personality is
different. His composite of experience is different. And his
dynamics are of different strengths. The only constant is the
mechanism of the reactive engram bank and
* The content of the engram bank is actually shifted rather than
removed. for it refiles under the heading of experience in the
standard banks. The material however, appears to vanish in therapy
because the therapy is addressed to the engram bank, not the
standard banks.
208
that alone does not vary. The content of that bank is different
from man to man both in quantity and intensity but the mechanism of
operation of the bank and therefore the basic mechanisms of
dianetics are constant from man to man, and were in every age and
will be in every future age until Man evolves into another
organism.
The target is the engram. It is also the target of the patient's
analytical mind and the patient's dynamics as he tries to live his
life: it is the target of the auditor's analytical mind and the
auditor's dynamics. So bracketed and salvoed it gives up its store
of engrams.
This should be extremely plain to any auditor: the amount he
relaxes from the position of auditor and forgets the target, he
garners trouble which will consume his time. The moment he makes
the error of thinking that the person, the analytical mind or the
dynamics of the patient are resisting, trying to stop therapy, or
giving up, the auditor has made the fundamental and primary error
in the practice of dianetics. Almost anything that goes wrong can
be traced back to this error. It cannot be too emphatically stated
that the analytical mind and the dynamics of the patient never,
never, never resist the auditor. The auditor is not there to be
resisted. He has no concern with resistance from anything except
the patient's (and sometimes his own) engrams.
The auditor is not there as the patient's driver or adviser. He is
not there to be intimidated by the patient's engrams or be
frightened by their aspects. He is there to audit and only to
audit. If he feels that he is called upon to be lordly to the
patient, then the auditor had better change chair for couch because
he has a case of authoritarianism coming into view. The word
auditor is used, not "operator" or "therapist," because it is a
cooperative effort between the auditor and the patient, and the law
of affinity is at work.
209
The patient cannot see his own aberrations. That is one of the
reasons why the auditor is there. The patient needs to be bolstered
to face the unknowns of his life. That is another reason the
auditor is there. The patient would not dare address the world
which has gotten inside him and turn his back upon the world that
is outside him unless he has a sentry. That is another reason the
auditor is there.
The auditor's job is to safeguard the person of the patient during
therapy, to compute the reasons why the patient's mind cannot reach
into the engram bank, to strengthen the patient's nerve and to get
those engrams.
There is a three-way case of affinity at work this moment. I am in
affinity with the auditor: I am telling him all that has been
discovered and is in practice in dianetics and I want him to
succeed. The auditor is in affinity with the patient: he wants the
patient to attack engrams. The patient is in affinity with the
auditor because, with minimal work, that patient is going to get
better and with persistence lent him by the auditor, plus his own,
will become a release or a clear. There are even more affinities at
work, a vast network of them. This is a cooperative endeavor.
The engram bank is the target, not the patient. If the patient
swears and moans and weeps and pleads, those are engrams talking.
After a while the engrams that make him swear and moan and weep and
plead will be discharged and refiled. The patient, in whatever
state, knows full well that the action taken is necessary. If the
auditor is short of rationality that he mistakes this swearing or
moaning as something directed at him personally, that auditor had
better change places with the patient and undergo therapy.
The only thing which resists is the engram! When it is being
restimulated it impinges against the patient's analyzer, tends to
reduce analytical power, and the patient exhibits a modified
dramatization. Any auditor with two
210
brain cells to click together will never be in any slightest danger
of his person at the hands of the pre-release or pre-clear. * If
the auditor wants to use hypnotism and try to run late physically
painful engrams such as operations when early ones are available,
he may find himself targeted. But then he has done something very
wrong. If the auditor suddenly gets supermoral and lectures the
patient, he may get involved, but again he has done something very
wrong. If the auditor snarls and snaps at the patient, he may get
targeted, but once more a fundamental error has been made.
The target is the engram bank. It is the auditor's job to attack
the pre-clear's engram bank. It is the pre-clear's job to attack
that bank. To attack the pre-clear is to permit his engram bank to
attack the pre-clear.
We know that there are five methods of handling an engram. Four of
them are wrong. To succumb to an engram is apathy, to neglect one
is carelessness, but to avoid or flee from one is cowardice. Attack
and only attack resolves the problem. It is the duty of the auditor
to make very sure that the pre-clear keeps attacking engrams, not
the auditor or the exterior world. If the auditor attacks the
pre-clear, that's bad gunnery and very poor logic.
The engram bank is best attacked primarily by discharging its
emotional charge anywhere it can be contacted. After that it is
best attacked by finding out what the pre-clear, in reverie, thinks
would happen to him if he got well, got better, found out, etc. And
then it is most and always most important, in any way possible, to
contact the primary moment of pain or unconsciousness in
* The terms pre-release and pre-clear are used to designate an
individual entered into and undergoing dianetic therapy. The term
pre-clear is used most commonly. The word patient is less
descriptive because it implies illness, but it is used
interchangeably.
211
the patient's life. This is basic-basic. Once an auditor has
basic-basic, the case will swiftly resolve. If the preclear's
reactive mind is suppressing basic-basic, then the auditor should
discharge more reactive emotion, discover the computation now in
force, and try again. He will eventually get basic-basic. That's
important. And that is all that is important in a pre-clear.
In the pre-release (patient working toward release only) the task
is to discharge emotion and as many early engrams as will present
themselves easily. The reduction of locks may be included in
pre-release; but only when they lead to basic-basic should locks be
touched in a preclear.
There are three levels of healing. The first is getting the job
done efficiently. Below that is making the patient comfortable.
Below that is sympathy. In short, if you can do nothing for a man
with a broken back, you can make him comfortable. If you can't even
make him comfortable, you can sympathize with him.
The second and third echelons above are entirely unwarranted in
dianetics. The job can be done efficiently. Making the patient
comfortable is a waste of time. Giving him sympathy may snarl up
the entire case, for his worst engrams will be sympathy engrams and
sympathy may restimulate them out of place. The auditor who
indulges in "hand-patting," no matter how much it seems to be
indicated, is wasting time and slowing down the case. Undue
roughness is not indicated. A friendly, cheerful, optimistic
attitude will take care of everything. A pre-clear sometimes needs
a grin. But he has already had more "hand-patting" than the
analyzer has been able to compute. His chronic psycho-somatic
illness contains sympathy in its engram.
The next thing the auditor should know and live is the AUDITOR'S
CODE.* This may sound like something from
* It is interesting that the Auditor's Code outlines, save for its
last clause, the conduct survival pattern of Man. The clear
212
"When Knighthood Was in Flower" or the "Thirteen Rituals for
Heavenly Bliss and Nirvana," but unless it is employed by the
auditor on his patients, the auditor will have some heavy slogging.
This code is not for the comfort of the pre-clear; it is
exclusively for the protection of the auditor.
The AUDITOR'S CODE should never be violated. Practice in dianetics
has demonstrated that violation of the AUDITOR'S CODE alone can
interrupt cases.
The auditor should be courteous in his treatment of all pre-clears.
The auditor should be kind, not giving way to any indulgence of
cruelty toward pre-clears, nor surrendering to any desire to
punish.
The auditor should be quiet during therapy, not given to talk
beyond the absolute essentials of dianetics during an actual
session.
The auditor should be trustworthy, keeping his word when given,
keeping his appointments in schedules and his commitments to work
and never giving forth any commitment of any kind which he has any
slightest reason to believe he cannot keep.
The auditor should be courageous, never giving ground or violating
the fundamentals of therapy because a pre-clear thinks he should.
The auditor should be patient in his working, never becoming
restless or annoyed by the pre-clear, no matter what the pre-clear
is doing or saying.
The auditor should be thorough, never permitting his plan of work
to be swayed or a charge to be avoided.
The auditor should be persistent, never giving up until he has
achieved results.
The auditor should be uncommunicative, never giving the patient any
information whatsoever about his case,
operates more or less automatically on this code. Dianetics is a
parallel to thought, since it follows the natural laws of thought.
What works in dianetics works as well in life.
213
including evaluations of data or further estimates of time in
therapy.
Various conditions ensue when any of the above are violated. All
violations slow therapy and cause the auditor more work. All
violations come back to the detriment of the auditor.
For instance, in the last, it is not part of the auditor's work to
inform the pre-clear of anything. As soon as he starts doing so,
the pre-clear promptly hooks the auditor into the circuit as the
source of information and so avoids engrams.
The auditor will see in progress the most violent and disturbing
human emotions. He may be moved to sympathy, but if he is, he has
overlooked something and hindered therapy: whenever an emotion
shows, it is an emotion which will shortly be history. Whatever
gyrations the pre-clear may go through, however much he may move or
wrestle around, the auditor must keep firmly in mind that every
moan or gyration is one step closer to the goal. For why be
frightened or waste sympathy about something which, when it has
been recounted a few times will leave a pre-clear happier?
If the auditor becomes frightened and pulls that error of all
errors when a pre-clear begins to shake, "Come up to present time!"
he can be sure that the pre-clear will have a couple of bad days
and that the next time the auditor wants to enter that engram it
will be blocked.
If an auditor assumes the state of mind that he can sit and whistle
while Rome burns before him and be prepared to grin about it, then
he will do an optimum job. The things at which he gazes, no matter
how they look, no matter how they sound, are solid gains. It's the
quiet, orderly patient who is making few gains. This does not mean
that the auditor is trying for nothing but violence, but it does
mean that when he gets it he can be cheerful and content that one
more engram has lost its charge.
214
The task of auditing is rather much a shepherd's task, herding the
little sheep, the engrams, into the pen for slaughter. The
pre-clear isn't under the auditor's orders but the pre-clear, if
the case runs well, will do whatever the auditor wants with these
engrams because the analytical mind and the dynamics of the
pre-clear want that job done. The mind knows how the mind operates.
215
CHAPTER IV
Diagnosis
One of the most important contributions of dianetics is the
resolution of the problem of diagnosis in the field of aberration.
Hitherto there have been almost unlimited classifications; further
there has been no optimum standard.* As one researches in the field
of psychiatric texts, he finds wide disagreement in classification
and continual complaint that classification is very complex and
lacking in usefulness. Without an optimum goal of conduct or mental
state and without knowledge of the cause of aberration, catalogues
of descriptions alone were possible and these were so involved and
contradictory that it was nearly impossible to sharply assign to a
psychotic or neurotic any classification which will lead to an
understanding of his case.** The main disability in this
classification system was that the classification did not lead to a
cure, for there was no standard treatment and there was no optimum
state to indicate when treatment was at end; and as there was no
cure for aberration or psycho-somatic illness, there could be no
classification which
* Psychology has ... "no mental standards to set up" ... "The
psychologist does not occupy himself with the establishment of
norms." The Psychology of Abnormal People by John J. B. Morgan,
Longmans, Green & Co., New York, 1928.
** "The work of the psychiatrist was taken up mainly with
describing and classifying symptoms. This procedure has been
strongly criticized by some students on the ground that it leads
nowhere and encourages a false pretense of understanding where
there is none. Giving a name to something does not increase our
understanding of it." Ibid., Intro.
216
would indicate the direction which was to be taken or what could
uniformly be expected of a case.
This is no criticism of past efforts surely, but it is a source of
relief to know that the classification of aberration is unnecessary
along such complicated lines as have been used and that the
cataloguing of psycho-somatic ills, while necessary to the
physician, is unimportant to the auditor. In the evolution of the
science of dianetics there were several stages of classification
until it finally became clear that the label on a pathological
condition should only be whatever the auditor had to overcome to
achieve cure. This system, as now evolved through practice, makes
it possible for the auditor to "diagnose" without any more
knowledge than is contained in this chapter and his own future
experience.
The number of aberrations possible is the number of combinations of
words possible in a language as contained in engrams. In other
words, if a psychotic thinks he is God, he has an engram which says
he is God. If he is worried about poison in his hash, he has an
engram which tells him he may get poison in his hash. If he is
certain he may be "fired" from his job any moment even though he is
competent and well-liked, he has an engram which tells him he is
about to be "fired." If he thinks he is ugly, he has an engram
about being ugly. If he is afraid of snakes or cats, he has engrams
which tell him to fear snakes and cats. If he is sure he has to buy
everything he sees, despite his income, he has an engram which
tells him to buy everything he sees. And in view of the fact that
anyone not released or cleared has upwards of two or three hundred
engrams and as these engrams contain a most remarkable assortment
of language and as he may choose one of five ways of handling any
one of these engrams, the problem of aberration is of no importance
to the auditor except where it slows therapy.
Most aberrated people talk in a large measure out of their engrams.
Whatever the chronic patter of the individual may be, his rage
patter, his apathy patter, his
217
general attitude toward life, this patter is contained in engrams
wherever it departs even in the slightest degree from complete
rationality. The man who "cannot be sure," who "does not know" and
who is skeptical of everything, is talking out of engrams. The man
who is certain "it cannot be true" that "it isn't possible," that
"Authority must be contacted" is talking out of engrams. The woman
who is so certain she needs a divorce or that her husband is going
to murder her some night is talking out of either her own or his
engrams. The man who comes in and says he has a bad pain in his
stomach that feels "just like a #12 gauge copper wire going
straight through me" has quite possibly had a #12 gauge copper wire
through him in an attempted abortion or talk of such a thing while
he was in pain. The man who says it "has to be cut out" is talking
straight out of an engram either from some operation of his own or
his mother's or from an attempted abortion. The man who "has to get
rid of it" is again possibly talking out of an attempted abortion
engram. The man who "can't get rid of it" may be talking from the
same source but from another valence. People, in short, especially
when talking about dianetics and engrams, give forth with engram
talk in steady streams. They have no awareness, ordinarily, that
the things they are saying are minor dramatizations of their
engrams and suppose that they have concluded these things
themselves or think these things: the supposition and explanation
is only justified thought - the analyzer performing its duty in
guaranteeing that the organism is right no matter how foolishly it
is acting.
The auditor can be assured, particularly when he is talking about
dianetics, that he is going to hear in return a lot of engram
content; for discussion of the reactive mind generally takes place
in language which it itself holds.
Recall that the reactive mind can think only on this
218
equation - A = A = A, when the three A's may be respectively a
horse, a swear-word and the verb "to spit." Spitting is the same as
horses is the same as God. The reactive mind is a very zealous
Simple Simon, carefully stepping in each pie. Thus when a man is
told he has to delete the content of the reactive bank, he may say
that if he did, he is sure he would lose all his ambition. Be
assured - and how easily this proves up on therapy and how
red-eared some pre-clears become - that he has an engram which may
run something like this:
(Blow or bump, prenatal)
FATHER: Damn it, Agnes, you've got to get rid of that God-Damned
baby. If you don't, we'll starve to death. I can't afford it.
MOTHER: Oh, no, no, no, I can't get rid of it, I can't, I can't, I
can't! Honest I will take care of it. I'll work and slave and
support it. Please don't make me get rid of it. If I did I'd just
die. I'd lose my mind! I wouldn't have anything to hope for. I'd
lose all my interest in life. I'd lose my ambition. Please let me
keep it!
What a common one that engram is: and how sincerely and
"rationally" and earnestly an aberree can be in supporting his
conclusion that he has just "thought up" the "computation" that if
he "gets rid of it," he'll lose his mind and ambition, maybe even
die!
As this work is written, most of the engrams that will be found in
adults come from the first quarter of the 20th century. This was
the period of "Aha, Jack Dalton, at last I have you in my
possession!" It was the period of "Blood and Sand" and Theda Bara.
It was the period of bootleg whiskey and woman suffrage. It covered
the days of "flaming youth" and the "The Yanks are Coming," and
bits of such color will be demanding action in the engram
219
banks. Dianetic auditors have picked up whole passages of the Great
Play "The Drunkard" out of prenatal engrams, not as a piece of
funny "corn" but as Mama's sincere and passionate effort to reform
Papa. Super-drama, Mellerdrammer. And not only that but also
tragedy. The hangover of the Gay Nineties, when the "business girl"
had just begun to be "free" and Carrie Nation was saving the world
at the expense of bartenders will be common fare in engrams found
in today's adults. Yesterday's cliches and absurdities become,
tragically enough, today's engramic commands. One very, very morose
young man, for instance, was found to have as the central motif of
his reactive mind Hamlet's historic vacillations about whether "to
be or not to be, that is the question." Mama (who was what these
colloquially-minded auditors call a "loop") had gotten it by
contagion from an actor-father whose failure to be a Barrymore had
driven him to drink and wife beating; and our young man would sit
for hours in a morose apathy wondering about life. To classify his
psychosis required nothing more than "apathetic young fellow."
Most of engram content is merely cliches and commonplaces and
emotional crash drives by Mama or Papa. But the auditor will have
his moments. And when he suddenly learns about them, the pre-clear
will have his laughs.
In other words, aberration can be any combination of words
contained in an engram. Thus, to classity by aberration is not only
utterly impossible but completely unnecessary. After an auditor has
run one case, he will be far more able to appreciate this.
As for psycho-somatic ills, as classified in an earlier chapter,
these depend also upon accidental or intentional word combinations
and all the variety of injury and unbalanced fluid and growth
possible. It is very well to call an obscure pain "tendonitis" but
more probably and
220
more accurately, it is a fall or injury before birth. Asthma comes
fairly constantly from birth, as do conjunctivitis and sinusitis,
but when these can occur in birth, there is generally prenatal
background. Thus it can be said that wherever a man or woman aches
is of minor importance to the auditor beyond using the patient's
chronic illness to locate the chain of sympathy engrams, and all
the auditor needs to know of that illness is that some area of the
body hurts the patient. That, for the auditor, is enough for
psycho-somatic diagnosis.
It happens that the extent of aberration and the extent of
psycho-somatic illness are not the regulating factors which
establish how long a case may take. A patient may be a screaming
lunatic and yet require only a hundred hours to clear. Another may
be a "well-balanced" and moderately successful person and yet take
five hundred hours to clear. Therefore, in the light of the fact
that the extent of aberration and illness has only a minor
influence on what the auditor is interested in - therapy -
classification by these is so much wasted time.
Oh, there are such things as a man being too sick from heart
trouble to be worked very hard and such things as a patient
worrying so continuously as a manifestation of his usual life that
the auditor finds his work difficult, but these are rarities and
again have little bearing on the classification of a case.
The rule in diagnosis is that whatever the individual offers the
auditor as a detrimental reaction to therapy is engramic and will
prove so in the process. Whatever impedes the auditor in his work
is identical to whatever is impeding the patient in his thinking
and living. Think of it this way: the auditor is an analytical mind
(his own) confronted with a reactive mind (the pre-clear's).
Therapy is a process of thinking. Whatever troubles the patient
will also trouble the auditor; whatever troubles the auditor has
also troubled the patient's analytical mind.
221
The patient is not a whole analytical mind: the auditor will find
himself occasionally with a patient who does nothing but swear at
him and yet when the appointment time arrives, there that patient
is, anxious to continue therapy; or the auditor may find a patient
who tells him how useless the entire procedure is and how she hates
to be worked upon and yet if he were to tell her, "All right, we'll
stop work," she would go into a prompt decline. The analytical mind
of the patient wants to do the same thing the auditor is trying to
do, fight down into the reactive bank; therefore, the auditor, when
he encounters opposition, adverse theory about dianetics, personal
criticism, etc., is not listening to analytical data but reactive
engrams and he should calmly proceed, secure in that knowledge, for
the patient's dynamics, all that can be brought to bear, will help
him so long as the auditor is an ally against the pre-clear's
reactive mind, rather than a critic or attacker of the pre-clear's
analytical mind.
This is an example:
(In reverie - pre-natal basic area)
PRE-CLEAR: (Believing he means dianetics) I don't know. I don't
know. I just can't remember. It won't work. I know it won't work.
AUDITOR: (repeater technique, described later) Go over that. Say,
"It won't work."
PRE-CLEAR: "It won't work. It won't work. It won't work... etc.
etc." Ouch, my stomach hurts! "It won't work. It won't work. It
won't work ..." (Laughter of relief.) That's my mother. Talking
to herself.
AUDITOR: All right, let's pick up the entire engram. Begin at the
beginning.
PRE-CLEAR: (Quoting recall with somatics [pains]) "I don't know
how to do it. I just can't
222
remember what Becky told me. I just can't remember it. Oh, I am
so discouraged. It won't work this way. It just won't work. I
wish I knew what Becky told me but I can't remember. Oh I
wish..." Hey, what's she got in here? Why, God damn her, that's
beginning to burn! It's a douche. Say! Let me out of here! Bring
me up to present time! That really burns!
AUDITOR: Go back to the beginning and go over it again. Pick up
whatever additional data you can contact.
PRE-CLEAR: Repeats engram, finding all the old phrases and some
new ones plus some sounds. Recounts four more times,
"re-experiencing" everything. Begins to yawn, almost falls asleep
("unconsciousness" coming off), revives and repeats engram twice
more. Then begins to chuckle over it. Somatic is gone. Suddenly
engram is "gone" (refiled and he cannot discover it again. He is
much pleased.)
AUDITOR: Go to the next earliest moment of pain or discomfort.
PRE-CLEAR: Uh. Mmmmm. I can't get in there. Say, I can't get in
there! I mean it. I wonder where...
AUDITOR: Go over the line, "Can't get in there."
PRE-CLEAR: "Can't get in there. Can't..." My legs feel funny.
There's a sharp pain. Say, what the hell is she doing? Why damn
her! Boy, I'd like to get my hands on her just once. Just once!
AUDITOR: Begin at the beginning and recount it.
PRE-CLEAR: (Recounts engram several times, yawns off
"unconsciousness," chuckles
223
when he can't find the engram any more. Feels better.) Oh, well,
I guess she had her troubles.
AUDITOR: (Carefully refraining from agreeing that Mama had her
troubles, since that would make him an ally of Mama) Go to the
next moment of pain or discomfort.
PRE-CLEAR: (Uncomfortable) I can't. I'm not moving on the time
track. I'm stuck. Oh, all right. "I'm stuck, I'm stuck." No.
"It's stuck. It's stuck that time." No. "I stuck it that time."
Why damn her! That's my coronary trouble! That's it! That's the
sharp pain I get!
AUDITOR: Begin at the beginning of the engram and recount, etc.
Each time, it can be seen in this example, that the patient in
reverie encountered analytically the engram in near proximity, the
engram command impinged itself upon the patient himself, who gave
it forth as an analytical opinion to the auditor. A pre-clear in
reverie is close up against the source material of his aberrations.
An aberree wide awake may be giving forth highly complex opinions
which he will battle to the death to defend as his own but which
are, in reality, only his aberrations impinging against his
analytical mind. Patients will go right on declaring that they know
the auditor is dangerous, that he shouldn't ever have started them
in therapy, etc., and still keep working well and efficiently.
That's one of the reasons why the auditor's code is so important:
the patient is just as eager to relieve himself of his engrams as
could be wished, but the engrams give the appearance of being a
long way from anxious to be relieved.
It will also be seen in the above example that the auditor is not
making any positive suggestion. If the phrase is not engramic, the
patient will very rapidly tell him so in no uncertain terms and
although it still may be, the
224
auditor has no great influence over the pre-clear in reverie beyond
helping him to attack engrams. If the pre-clear contradicted any of
the above, it means that the engram containing the words suggested
is not ready to be relieved and another paraphrase is in order.
Diagnosis, then, is something which takes care of itself on the
aberration and psycho-somatic plane. The auditor could have guessed
- and kept it to himself - that a series of attempted abortions
were coming up in the above example before he entered the area. He
might have guessed that the indecisiveness of the patient was from
his mother. The auditor, however, does not communicate his guesses.
This would be suggestion and might be seized upon by the patient.
It is up to the pre-clear to find out. The auditor, for instance,
could not have known where on the time track the pre-clear's
"coronary pain" was nor the nature of the injury. Chasing up and
down looking for a specific pain would be just so much wasted time.
All such things will surrender in the course of therapy. The only
interest in them is whether or not the aberrations and illnesses go
to return no more. At the end of therapy they will be gone. At the
beginning they are only complication.
Diagnosis of aberration and psycho-somatic illness, then, is not an
essential part of dianetic diagnosis.
What we are interested in is the mechanical operation of the mind.
That is the sphere of diagnosis. What are the working mechanics of
the analytical mind?
1. Perception. Sight, hearing, tactile and pain, etc.
2. Recall. Visio-color, tone-sonic*, tactile, etc.
3. Imagination. Visio-color, tone-sonic, tactile, etc.
These are the mechanical processes. Diagnosis deals
* "Visio" means sight recall in dianetics. Sonic means sound
recall. Somatic means pain recall. A patient who can see. hear and
feel pain stores them. "I," remembering, recalls them as visio,
sonic and somatic.
225
primarily with these factors and with these factors can establish
the length of time a case should take, how difficult the case will
be, etc. And we need only a few of these.
This further simplifies into a code:
1. Perception, over or under optimum.
(a) Sight
(b) Sound
2. Recall: Under
(a) Sonic
(b) Visio
3. Imagination: Over
(a) Sonic
(b) Visio
In other words, when we examine a patient before we make him a
pre-clear (by starting him into therapy) we are interested in three
things only: too much or too little perception, too little recall,
too much imagination.
In Perception we mean how well or how poorly he can hear, see and
feel.
In Recall, we want to know if he can recall by sonic (hearing),
visio (seeing) and somatic (feeling).
In Imagination we want to know if he (recalls) sonics, visions or
somatics too much.
Let us make this extremely clear: it is very simple, it is not
complex, and it requires no great examination. But it is important
and establishes the length of time in therapy.
There is nothing wrong with an active imagination so long as the
person knows he is imagining. The kind of imagination we are
interested in is that used for unknowing "dub-in" and in that kind
only. An active imagination which the patient knows to be
imagination is an extremely valuable asset to him. An imagination
which substitutes itself for recall is very trying in therapy.
"Hysterical" blindness and deafness or extended sight or hearing
are useful in diagnosis. The first, "hysterical" blindness, means
the patient is afraid to see; "hysterical"
226
deafness means he is afraid to hear. These will require
considerable therapy. Likewise, extended sight and extended
hearing, while not as bad as blindness and deafness, are an index
of how frightened the patient really is and is often a straight
index of the prenatal content in terms of violence.
If the patient is afraid to see with his eyes or hear with his ears
in present time, be assured there is much in his background to make
him afraid, for these actual perceptions do not "turn-off" easily.
If the patient jumps at sounds and is startled by sights or is very
disturbed by these things, his perceptions can be said to be
extended, which means the reactive bank has a great deal in it
labeled "death."
The recalls in which we are interested in diagnosis are those which
are less than optimum only. When they are "over optimum" they are
actually imagination "dubbed in" for recall. Recall (under) and
imagination (over) are actually, then, one group, but for
simplicity and clarity we keep them apart.
If the patient cannot "hear" sounds or voices in past incidents he
does not have sonic. If he does not "see" scenes of past
experiences in motion color pictures, he does not have visio.
If the patient hears voices which have not existed or sees scenes
which have not existed and yet supposes that these voices really
spoke and these scenes were real, we have "over imagination." In
dianetics imaginary sound recall would be hyper-sonic, sight recall
- hyper-visio (hyper= over).
Let us take specific examples of each one of these three classes
and demonstrate how they become fundamental in therapy and how
their presence or absence can make a case difficult.
A patient with a mild case of "hysterical" deafness is one who has
difficulty in hearing. The deafness can be organic but if organic
it will not vary from time to time.
227
This patient has something he is afraid to hear. He plays the radio
very loudly, makes people repeat continually and misses pieces of
the conversation. Do not go to an institution to find this degree
of "hysterical" deafness. Men and women are "hysterically" deaf
without any conscious knowledge of it. Their "hearing just isn't so
good." In dianetics this is being called hypo-hearing (hypo =
under).
The patient who is always losing something when it lies in fair
view before him, who misses signposts, theater bills and people who
are in plain sight is "hysterically" blind to some degree. He is
afraid he will see something. In dianetics this is being called,
since the word "hysterical" is a very inadequate and overly
dramatic one, hypo-sight.
Then there is the case of over-perception. This is not necessarily
imagination, but it can go to the length of seeing and hearing
things which are not there at all, which happens to be a common
insanity. We are interested in a less dramatic grade in standard
operation.
A girl, for instance, who sees something or thinks she sees
something but knows she doesn't and is very startled, who jumps in
fright when anyone silently comes into a room and can be so
startled rather habitually, is suffering from extended sight. She
is afraid she will encounter something, but instead of being blind
to it she is too alive to it. This is hyper-sight.
A person who is much alarmed by noises, by sounds in general, by
certain voices, who gets a headache or gets angry when the people
around are "noisy" or the door slams or the dishes rattle, is a
victim of extended hearing. She hears sounds far louder than they
actually are. This is hyper-hearing.
The actual quality of the seeing and hearing does not need to be
good. The actual organs of sight and sound can be in poor
condition. The only fact of importance is the "nervousness" about
reception.
228
This disposes of the two perceptions in which we are interested in
dianetics. As the auditor talks to people around him and gets their
reactions to sights and sounds, he will find wide variety in
quality of response.
Recall is the most directly important to therapy, for it is not a
symptom, it is an actual tool of work. There are many ways to use
recall. The clear has vivid and accurate recall for every one of
the senses. Few aberrees have. The auditor is not interested in
other senses than sight and sound because the others will be cared
for in the usual course of therapy. But if he has a patient who has
no sonic, watch out. And if he has a patient with neither sonic nor
visio, beware! This is the multi-valent personality, the
schizophrenic, the paranoid of psychiatry with symptoms not acute
enough to be so classified in normal life. This does not mean,
emphatically does not mean, that people without sight and sound
recall are insane, but it does mean an above average case and it
means a case which will take some time. It does not mean the case
is "incurable" for nothing can be further from the truth: but such
cases sometimes take five hundred hours. It simply means that such
a case isn't any stroll through the park: there is drammer back
there in that reactive mind, drammer which says, "Don't see! Don't
hear!" Some of the engrams in this case demand reduced or no
recall. The organs of sight and sound may be highly extended in
their reception. This does not mean that anything need be wrong
with the way this person perceives sound or light waves and records
them. But it does mean that after he has recorded them, he cannot
easily get them back out of the standard bank because the reactive
engram bank has set up circuits (occlusion demon circuits) to keep
him from finding out about his past. There are, of course, greater
or lesser degrees of recall.
The test is simple. Tell the patient wide awake to go back to the
time he was entering the room. Ask him what
229
was being said. If he can "hear" it wide awake, he has sonic
recall. The auditor knows very well what was said, for if he means
to use this test, he utters a certain set of words and notes the
actual sounds present. Therefore, if the patient falls into the
following category, the "dub-in," the auditor will be apprised of
that.
The sight recall test is equally simple. Show the patient a book
with an illustration. After a time interval, ask him to "go back"
while he is wide awake and look at that book "in his mind" and see
if he can see it. If he can't, this is hypo-visio.
More tests similar to this will clearly establish whether or not
our patient is recall blind and deaf or whether he falls into the
next group:
The over-active imagination which enthusiastically "dubs-in" sight
and sound for the patient without knowledge is something which is
definitely a hindrance to fast therapy. There are many demon
circuits which snarl up thinking, but these particular "dub-in"
demons mean that the operator is going to get a most awful cargo of
what the auditors colloquially call "garbage."* There is, as they
further use some of the doubtlessly disgraceful terminology which,
despite anything one can do, keeps rising up in this field,
something at work in the brain which is a "lie factory."**
The patient asked to recount the conversation as he entered the
door by "hearing it" again may confidently start in to give forth
all manner of speech which was entirely paraphrase or utterly
fictitious. Asked to tell about the picture and page he is shown,
he will "see" vividly a lot more than was there or something
entirely different. If he is doubtful about it, that is a healthy
sign.
* Garbage was technically called delusion in the philosophic work
of dianetics, but the term is too harsh and critical, for who has
not some misconception of a past incident?
** Lie factory is, technically, a phrase contained in an engram
demanding prevarication - it was originally called a fabricator.
230
If he is certain, beware, for it is a demon circuit "dubbing in"
without his analytical knowledge and the auditor will have to
listen to more incidents which never happened than he could begin
to catalogue and will have to sort out and pick his way through
this "garbage" continually to get his pre-clear to a point where
the data is reliable. (And it isn't a matter of grading "garbage"
by its improbability - truth is always stranger than fiction; it is
a matter of trying to reduce engrams which are not present or
by-pass engrams which are present and so on in a tangled hash.)
The optimum pre-clear would be one who had average response to
noises and sights, who had accurate sonic and visio and who could
imagine and know that he was imagining, in color-visio and
tone-sonic. This person, understand clearly, may have aberrations
which make him climb every chimney in town, drink every drop in
every bar every night (or try it anyway), beat his wife, drown his
children and suppose himself to be a jub-jub bird. In the
psycho-somatic line he may have arthritis, gall-bladder trouble,
dermatitis, migraine headaches and flat feet. Or he may have that
much more horrible aberration - pride in being average and
"adjusted." He is still a relatively easy case to clear.
In the case which has sonic and visio shut-off without "dub-in" we
are dealing with engrams which have shut down some of the primary
working mechanisms of the mind. The auditor will have to slog
through hours and hours and hours of trying to contact engrams when
the patient cannot hear them or see them. A case which merely has a
shut-down sonic recall still means that the auditor is going to do
a lot more work than on an average case. This case is very, very
far from impossible to resolve. That is not the idea here, to
frighten off any attempt on such a case. But this case will only be
resolved after a great deal of persistent effort. Such a person may
be apparently very successful. He may be enormously intelligent. He
may have few or no psycho-somatic ills. Yet he will prove to have a
crammed engram bank, any part of
231
which may come into restimulation at any time and swamp him.
Usually, however, this type of case is quite worried and anxious
about many things, and such worry and anxiety may put a little more
time on the worksheet.
In the case of the "dub-in" who doesn't know it, where circuits are
giving him back altered recall, we have a case which may very
likely prove to be very long and require artful treatment. For
there is a "lie factory" somewhere in that engram bank. This case
may be the soul of truthfulness in his everyday life. But when he
starts tackling his engrams, they have content which makes him give
out material which is not there.
Sharply and clearly, then, without further reservation or
condition, this is dianetic diagnosis: The aberration is the engram
content; the psycho-somatic illness is the former injury. The
perceptions of sight and sound, under-optimum recall, over-optimum
imagination regulate the length of the case.
If the auditor wants to be fancy, he can list the general tone
scale position of the individual mentally and physically. The woman
who is dull and apathetic is, of course, around Tone 0.5, in the
Zone Zero part of the dynamic scale earlier in the book. If the man
is angry or hostile, the auditor can mark him down as a 1.5 or
somewhere generally in the Zone One range of the survival scale.
These markings would apply to the probable average tone of the
aggregate engrams in the reactive mind. This is interesting because
it means that a Zone Zero person is far more likely to be ill and
is a slightly harder case than a Zone One person: And, as therapy
raises tone to Zone Four, the 1.5 is closer to the goal.
It is difficult to estimate time in therapy. As mentioned before,
it has several variables such as auditor skill, restimulative
elements in the patient's environment and sheer volume of engrams.
The auditor is advised, in his first case, to seek out some member
of the family or a friend who is as close as possible to the
optimum pre-clear, which is to say, a person with
232
visio and sonic recall and average perceptions. In clearing this
one case he will learn at first hand much of what can be expected
in the engram banks of any mind; and he will see clearly how
engrams behave. If the auditor himself falls into one of the harder
brackets and if he means to work with somebody in one of these
brackets, that poses no great difficulty, either case can be
released in a hundredth the time of any former mental healing
technique and they can be cleared, if any skill at all is used, in
five hundred hours of work per case. But if two cases are
particularly difficult, before they work on each other each would
be wise to find and clear a nearly optimum pre-clear. That way each
will be a competent operator when the rougher cases are approached.
Thus, diagnosis. The other perceptions, recalls and imaginations
are interesting but not vital in measuring case time. I.Q., unless
it falls down into the feeble-minded level, is no great factor. And
even then the I.Q. of any patient goes up like a skyrocket with
clearing and rises all the while during the work.
There are organic insanities. Iatrogenic psychoses (caused by
doctors) are equivocal in dianetics, for a part of the machinery
may have been wrecked. Nevertheless, with many organic psychoses a
case can be improved by dianetics even if an optimum cannot be
reached. And so all an auditor can do is try. Insanities caused by
missing parts of the nervous system have not been extensively
investigated by auditors at this time: the reviving of corpses is
not the end of dianetics: the bringing about an optimum mind in the
normal or merely neurotic person has had the main emphasis.
Dianetics can be otherwise used, is being and will be. But with so
many potentially valuable people who can be made highly valuable to
themselves and society, emphasis has been placed on inorganic
aberrations and organic psycho-somatic illnesses. Cases which have
been subjected to pre-frontal lobotomy (which saws a section out of
the analytical mind), the topectomy (which removes pieces of brain
somewhat as an apple corer cores apples),
233
the trans-orbital leukotomy which, while the patient is being
electrically shocked, thrusts an ordinary dime store ice-pick into
each eye and reaches up to rip the analyzer apart), and electric
shock "therapy" which sears the brain with 110 volts, as well as
insulin shock and other treatments, are considered by dianetics to
be equivocal. There are ordinary organic insanities such as
paresis, but most of these, even so, can be benefited by dianetics.
234
CHAPTER V
Returning, the File Clerk,
and the Time Track
There is a method of "thinking" which Man did not know he had.
If you would like an illustration of this, ask a small child if she
would like to go sleigh riding in memory. She will try to remember
the last time she rode her sleigh. She will frown and pucker her
brows perhaps. Now tell her to go back to the last time she was
sleigh riding. Coaxed she will suddenly come forth with a complete
experience and, unless she is badly aberrated, will be able to tell
you about the snow getting down her collar and so forth. She is
right back there sleigh riding, swimming or whatever you choose.
Man, when and if he thought about this at all, must have mistaken
it for imagination. But it is not imagination. Anyone, unless he is
very severely aberrated indeed, can be "sent back" wide awake to an
experience of the past. In initial tests one should use experiences
not long gone and experiences which are pleasant.
This is not memory in the way one "remembers something." It is
returning. Remembering is a far more complicated process than
returning. Just why people go around seeking to remember some
specific or complex datum when they can return is something of a
mystery when one considers lost articles, things read,
conversations had and so forth. Remembering, of course, has a very
definite role and is an automatic process which provides "I" with
conclusions and data in a never-ending stream. But when one wishes
a very precise, specific bit of
235
information or when one seeks a past pleasure to contemplate it,
returning is more to the point.
The hypnotist, with much mumbo-jumbo and hand passes et al., has
something which he calls "regression." This is a very complicated
business which requires being hypnotized. True enough, regression
has research value since, by hypnosis, it by-passes occlusions
which are not otherwise easy to get around. And regression served
dianetics well when the author was checking his data on memory
banks. But it evidently had occurred to none that regression is an
artificial use of a natural process.
Undoubtedly some people use returning for some of their mental
work, and these people probably think that "everybody else" does
likewise, which is far from true. But even those people who return
naturally seldom understand that this is a distinct process, much
different from remembering.
People also relive without being hypnotized or drugged; this is a
rarer thing. If a person sits in contemplation ot some past glory
for a while he will begin to relive instead of simply return.
In dianetics we have had much to do with "spectrums." The spectrum
of gradations is a much better mechanism for philosophy than
Aristotle's pendulum which swung from one extreme to the other. We
have the spectrum of the dynamics. We call them four dynamics,
through which the command: SURVIVE! is expressed, and the four are
actually a great number of gradations from the cells of "I" through
"I," through family and children, through club and city and state,
through nation and race and hemisphere and finally all Mankind.
That is a spectrum: gradations of something which are really the
same thing but which have wider and wider scope or range.
In much the same way as the spectrum of SURVIVE! we have a spectrum
of memory at work. First there is memory in its most precise,
present time sense. Then there is memory of the past. Then there is
more memory of
236
the past. And so we move into a part of the spectrum which has been
overlooked: part of the "I" returns into the past, then a greater
part of "I" returns into the past (at which point we have return)
and finally, at the extreme all of "I" is back in the past. First
there is remembering. This is the furthest from exact data (except
in a clear). Then there is returning in which part of the "I" is
actually in the past and records appear to be perceptions he is
actually experiencing. Then there is reliving where a man is so
thoroughly in the past for the moment that, while he was recalling
an infant experience, if startled he would react just as he would
have when a baby.
There is a lot of aberrated notion in this present society about
the evils of living in the past. These stem partially from an
unwillingness of aberrated people to face and understand yesterday.
One of the prime sources of "bad memory" is Mother. Often enough
Mother has been sufficiently panic-stricken at the thought of
Junior's recalling just what she did to Junior that a Mankind-wide
aberration seems to have sprung up. The standard attempted abortion
case nearly always has an infanthood and childhood full of Mama
assuring him that he cannot remember anything when he was a baby.
She doesn't want him to recall how handy she was, if unsuccessful,
in her efforts with various instruments. Possibly prenatal memory
itself would be just ordinary memory and in full recall to the
whole race if this guilty conscience in Mother had not been rolling
along lo! these millennia. In the normal course of work the auditor
will have his hands full of Mama screaming objections about her
grown son's or daughter's entering into therapy because of what
they might find out: Mama has been known, by auditors, to go into a
complete nervous collapse at the thought of her child's recalling
prenatal incidents. Not all of this, by the way, is based on
attempted abortion. Mama often has had a couple of more men than
Papa that Papa never knew about; and Mama would very often
237
rather condemn her child to illness or insanity or merely
unhappiness than let a child pursue the course of the pre-clear
even though Mother avowedly has no recollection whatever of
anything bad ever happening to the child. Under therapy herself,
she usually volunteers the truth. Here is the source of why good
memory is discouraged in a society and infant and prenatal memory
overlooked, to say nothing of the ability to return and relive.
The index system of the standard bank is a wonderful thing to
behold. Everything is there, filed by subject, filed by time and
filed by conclusions. All perceptions are present.
With the time file system we have what is called in dianetics a
time track. Going back along this track with part of "I" is
returning. It is definitely present for both conscious and
"unconscious" data. The time track is of vast and interesting
concern to the auditor.
The mind is a well-built computer and it has various services.
Auditors, backing off from Latin and complexity, call the source of
one of these services, the file clerk*. This is not a very
dignified name and it is certainly anthropomorphic. There is no
small man or woman in there with a green eye-shade. But the action
which takes place is a close approximation to what would happen if
such an entity did dwell within the mind.
The file clerk is the bank monitor. "He" monitors for both the
reactive engram bank and the standard banks. When he is asked for a
datum by the auditor or "I," he will hand out a datum to the
auditor via "I." He is a trifle moronic when he handles the
reactive engram bank, a contagion from the reactive mind, and he
will at times hand out puns and crazy dreams when he should be
delivering serious data.
* Technically, the name of the file clerk might be "bank monitor
units" but the phrase is too unwieldy.
238
The file clerk, if the auditor asks the pre-clear for the last time
he saw a movie, will hand out the movie, the date it was seen, the
age and physical being of the person, all perceptics, the plot of
the movie, the weather - in short, he hands out everything that was
present and connected with the movie.
In ordinary living the file clerk feeds memory to "I" at a rapid
rate. A good memory gets its data in split seconds. If the file
clerk has to shove the memory around various reactive occlusions,
it may take minutes or days for the data to arrive.
If we had a big computing machine of the most modern design, it
would have a "memory bank" of punched cards or some such thing and
it would have to have a selector and feeder device to thrust out
the data the machine wants. The brain has one of these - it could
not operate without it. This is the bank monitor - the file clerk.
Keep in mind these two parts of the mind: the time track and the
file clerk and keep in memory this mechanism of returning. These
are the three things we use, with the reactive and standard banks,
in the dianetic reverie.
The file clerk is a very obliging fellow. If he has been having
trouble getting to the "I" around the reactive occlusions and
circuits in general, he is particularly obliging. He cooperates
with the auditor.
The monitor system could be considered on the basis of attention
units where a man could be supposed to have a thousand. Thus a
thousand possible attention units would be available to a clear's
"I." In the aberree, probably fifty are available to "I," five or
six hundred absorbed in the reactive engrams, and the remainder
variously used besides composing this mechanism we call the bank
monitor, the file clerk.
It seems as if the file clerk in an aberree would rather work with
the auditor than with the aberree. That may appear an astonishing
fact, but it is a scientific fact. The
239
file clerk works best, then, when he is selecting data out of a
pre-clear's banks to present to the auditor. This is an aspect of
the law affinity. "I's" file clerk and the auditor are a team: and
they work very often in close harmony without enough consent from
the pre-clear's analyzer to notice.
The return is most easily effected, in the aberree, by the
auditor's addressing the file clerk, not the patient. This can
actually be done with the patient wide awake. The auditor asks him
for information, tells him to go back to it. "I" is suddenly in
possession of the whole file. Something inside the mind, then,
works in close harmony with the auditor and works better for the
auditor than it does for the person in whose mind it is. That is
the file clerk.
The object of the auditor is to take what the file clerk hands
forth and to keep the file clerk from getting swamped by reactive
data. Once the data has been given out by the file clerk, it is the
business of the auditor to see that the pre-clear goes over it
enough times to take the charge out of it. The mechanism of doing
this is extremely simple. In order to help matters and keep the
pre-clear from being distracted, the auditor goes through a routine
with every session which disposes the patient to let the file clerk
work.
The patient sits in a comfortable chair, with arms, or lies on a
couch in a quite room where perceptic distractions are minimal. The
auditor tells him to look at the ceiling. The auditor says: "When I
count from one to seven your eyes will close." The auditor then
counts from one to seven and keeps counting quietly and pleasantly
until the patient closes his eyes. A tremble of the lashes will be
noticed in optimum reverie.
This is the entire routine. Consider it more a signal that
proceedings are to begin and a means of concentrating the patient
on his own concerns and the auditor than anything else. This is not
hypnotism. It is vastly different. In the first place the patient
knows everything which is going on around him. He is not "asleep,"
and can bring himself out
240
of it any time he likes. He is free to move about, but, because it
distracts the patient, the auditor does not usually permit him to
smoke.
The auditor makes very sure that the patient is not hypnotized by
telling him, before he begins to count, "You will know everything
which goes on. You will be able to remember everything that
happens. You can exercise your own control. If you do not like what
is happening, you can instantly pull out of it. Now, one, two,
three, four," etc.
To make doubly sure, for we want no hypnotism, even by accident,
the auditor installs a canceller. This is an extremely important
step and should not be omitted even when you may be entirely
certain that he is in no way influenced by your words. The auditor
may inadvertently use restimulative language which will key-in an
engram: he may, when he is especially new in dianetics, use such a
thing as a holder or a denyer, telling the pre-clear to "stay
there" when he is returned on the track or telling him, worst of
all things, to "forget it," one of a class of phrases of the
forgetter mechanism which is most severe in its aberrative effect,
denying the data entirely to the analyzer. To prevent such things
from happening, the canceller is vital. It is a contract with the
patient that whatever the auditor says will not become literally
interpreted by the patient or used by him in any way. It is
installed immediately after the condition of reverie is
established. A canceller is worded more or less as follows: "In the
future, when I utter the word Cancelled, everything which I have
said to you while you are in a therapy session will be cancelled
and will have no force with you. Any suggestion I have made to you
will be without force when I say the word Cancelled. Do you
understand?"
The word cancelled is then said to the patient immediately before
he is permitted to open his eyes at the end of the session. It is
not further amplified. The single word is used.
The canceller is vital. It prevents accidental positive suggestion.
The patient may be suggestible or even in a
241
permanent light hypnotic trance (many people go through life in
such a trance). An engram is actually a hypnotic suggestion. It
could be said that the purpose of therapy is to awaken a person in
every period of his life when he has been forced into
"unconsciousness." Dianetics wakes people up. It is not hypnotism,
which puts people to sleep. Dianetic therapy wakes them up.
Hypnotism puts them to sleep. Can you ask for a wider difference in
polarity? Dianetic therapy removes engrams. Hypnotism installs
engrams. Further, dianetics is a science, an organized body of
knowledge - hypnotism is a tool and an art and is such a wild
variable that Man has suspected it as a dangerous thing for
centuries and centuries, use it though he did.*
The auditor will inevitably get cases into his hands which will
drop into a hypnotic sleep for all he can do to prevent it. Such
cases have engrams which make them do this, just as others have
engrams which make them stay awake. The auditor then mentions
neither "sleep" nor "wake." He takes his cases wherever they drop
into their own inversion level and works them from there. Patients
will plead to be drugged or put into a trance. Let them plead! The
reverie has a clear at its end - drugs and hypnotism have
dependency on the auditor and many other undesirable aspects. A
case takes longer in amnesia trance than in reverie. The gains in
reverie are certain. The patient gets more and more well. When
amnesia trance or hypnotism are used instead of reverie, no matter
how easily the data seems to come up, the usual run of cases so
treated experience little relief until the case is nearly
completed, when the patient so long uncomfortable gets suddenly
well. Hypnotism carries with it transference, enormous operator
responsibility, and other
* An additional difference is that a patient can be returned with
no counting whatever.
242
impedimenta with which dianetics, in long practice, has done
without. Hypnotism was used for research, then abandoned.
Hence, install the canceller every time. Never neglect to install
it in every session. The patient may be trancing, which is
something we don't want, but something which we cannot always
avoid, and which we cannot always detect. Just install the
canceller at the beginning of the session, then before you bring
the patient to present time, use the canceller word.
This is a rehearsal, then, of the entire routine:
Auditor: Look at the ceiling. When I count from one to seven your
eyes will close. You will remain aware of everything which goes on.
You will be able to remember everything that happens here. You can
pull yourself out of anything which you get into if you don't like
it. All right (slowly, soothingly): One, two, three, four, five,
six, seven*. One, two, three, four, five, six, seven. One, two,
three (patient's eyes close and eyelids flicker), four, five, six,
seven. (Auditor pauses; installs canceller.) All right, let us go
back to your fifth birthday... (work continues until the auditor
has worked the patient enough for the period)... Come to present
time. Are you in present time? (Yes.) (Use canceller word.) When I
count from five to one and snap my fingers you will feel alert.
Five, four, three, two, one. (Snap.)
As it can be seen in this example, when work for the day is
concluded, the pre-clear, who may have been returned into his past
for two hours, must be brought back to present time and startled
with a finger snap to restore his awareness of his age and
condition. Sometimes he is unable easily to come back to present,
for
* If the patient objects to numbers, use letters of the alphabet He
may have been counted down in some past surgical operation so that
numbers make him nervous.
243
which there is quick remedy, which we will cover later, so the
auditor must always assure himself that the patient feels he
actually is in present time.
This is the reverie. This is all one needs to know about its actual
mechanics. Experience will show him a great deal. But these are the
basic processes:
1. Assure patient he will know everything that happens.
2. Count until he closes his eyes.
3. Install canceller.
4. Return him to a period in the past.
5. Work with file clerk to get data.
6. Reduce all engrams contacted so that no charge remains.
7. Bring patient to present time.
8. Be sure he is in present time.
9. Give him canceller word.
10. Restore full awareness of his surroundings.
The patient's time track, in the lowest level of attention units,
is always in excellent condition. It can be depended upon to reach
any date and hour of his life and all the data in it. In the higher
levels of awareness, this time track may appear to be in very foul
condition. The reactive mind engram circuits stand between these
lower levels - right up against the banks - and the higher levels
which contain "I." The lower levels contain only a shadow of the
force of "I" and appear to be another "I" in a case of multi-valent
personality.
You can draw this on a piece of scratch paper and it would be
helpful if you would do so. Draw a tall rectangle (the standard
banks) to the left of the page. Draw half a dozen circles up
against the right side of this rectangle for a representation of
the file clerk - the bank monitor units. Now draw, about the center
of the sheet, a large rectangle. Black it in. This is the area of
the reactive engram circuits. It is not the reactive bank. It is
the circuit pattern from the reactive engram bank, which
244
borrows from the analyzer to make demons, vocal thinking, etc. Now,
to the right of the page, draw a white rectangle. This is the
portion of the analyzer which is "consciousness" and "I."
The whole task of therapy is to get that black rectangle, the
reactive engram bank circuits, deleted so that from the standard
bank to the left of the sheet to the analyzer portion to the right
of the sheet is all analyzer. It can't be done with a knife as some
people have supposed, evaluating the situation from their own
engrams, for that black area you have drawn is all analyzer
rendered useless by engrams and when therapy is done, it will all
be available for thinking. This increases I.Q. to an enormous
extent.
Now suppose that the bottom of your picture is conception and the
top is present time. The vertical route up and down, then, is the
time track. In this graph it can be supposed that present time just
keeps adding up higher and higher, further and further from
conception in the form of new construction (an analogy). For "I" to
get data from the standard banks to the left, "I" would have to
work through this black rectangle, the reactive mind circuits. To a
large extent "I" manages to get data from around this black area.
But to a much larger extent it doesn't.
Now suppose that we draw a vertical line at the right of the
picture. This line is "awareness." Consider that it can be moved,
still vertical, to the left. As the line passes toward the left, we
get deeper and deeper "trance." As the line moves into the reactive
mind area, it becomes hypnotic trance. Now as it moves even further
left and into the circles we are calling "file clerk," it becomes
the amnesia trance of hypnotism. Thus, anywhere we place this line
we establish a "depth of trance." We want to work over to the right
of the reactive bank, nearest the awake level, so that we can keep
"I" in contact with his surroundings and keep unwanted data from
coming
245
through which will make the patient chronically uncomfortable. If
the patient instantly slides from the right all the way to the left
so that the attention units, the circles, of the file clerk itself
are present, and does so the instant you count from one to seven,
he is a hypnotic subject. He may not be aware, when he wakens, of
what has taken place, for "I" was out of contact. Work him there,
for he will have full sonic, etc., but be very, very careful to
work very early in his prenatal area. He might not be able to
recall what has taken place and a late engram which, if tapped,
will not reduce, may have its full force opened up on "I" when the
patient regains possession of himself. Further, you might give him
positive suggestion by accident. Work by preference with trance
depth well to the right of the reactive bank.
The characteristics of the units we label "file clerk" are similar
in desires to those of the basic individual when he is cleared.
Thus, in any patient, the basic personality can be reached for here
is a sample of it. But the auditor should be content to know it is
there; as the clearing goes forward, he will see more and more of
it. The individual is himself, his personality does not alter, it
simply becomes what he wanted it to be all the time at his optimum
moments.
The units up against the standard banks can be considered the file
clerk. But the file clerk has more than just the standard bank
which he can tap. He also has the entire engram bank from which he
can pull forth data.
The time track may have several aspects to the preclear. There is
actually no track there except time and time is invisible: but the
awareness, the "I," can return along it. The track is always there,
stretched out. But ideas of it continually occur and recur in the
same patient. It may get all bunched up. It may be very long. It
may be that he cannot get on it at all (here's the schizophrenic -
he is off his time track). But it is there. It is the filing system
by time and "I" can be returned back
246
along time by the simple request that he do so. If he does not, he
is stuck in the present or an engram, which is easy to resolve. And
so forth.
Now let us consider the engram bank. It was drawn as a black
rectangle in the above sketch. Let us alter that a trifle and draw
all this again, with the rectangles represented as triangles with
all their points downwards and together but all else as before -
the standard banks, the analyzer (consciousness), and "I." This is
a working model now, an analogy, of what the auditor is trying to
contact. It is as if the engram bank itself existed in that black
triangle. Actually it doesn't, only its circuits, but all we need
to visualize is that it does. Therefore, there is a thin point at
the bottom. "I" and the file clerk can get together here. This is
the bottom of the time track. This is immediately after conception.
A little higher up, let's say two-and-one-half months after
conception, it is a little harder for "I" and the file clerk to
achieve contact. There is more reactive circuit between them. At
seven months after conception it is more difficult. And at twenty
years of age it has approached impossibility in most cases without
dianetic technique.
Hence, the auditor will find it expedient to work in the prenatal
area and as early in that as possible. If he can clear the time
from conception to birth, including birth, his task is nine-tenths
complete. To clear the entire reactive bank is his goal.
The reactive bank is like a pyramid which is fairly well armored
everywhere but just under the point, and which becomes unarmored
when the point is contacted. This is taking the reactive bank in an
exposed sector. The effort is to get into the basic area, contact
early engrams, erase the basic-basic engram by recountings and then
progress upwards, erasing engrams. These engrams apparently vanish.
Actually it takes a hard search to discove once they are really
gone. They exist as memory in the standard bank, but that memory is
so unimportant,
247
having been integrated now as experience, that it cannot aberrate.
Nothing in the standard bank can aberrate. Only the contents of the
reactive bank can aberrate - moments of "unconsciousness" and what
was recorded within them - and locks. The auditor, in his work,
considers an engram erased when it vanishes, when the pre-clear can
no longer contact any part of it, but only after the pre-clear has
thoroughly re-experienced it, complete with somatics.*
This inverted pyramid, in its upper reaches, is affect. In the
lower reaches, it is the primary cause of aberration. The cement
that holds this inverted pyramid together is physical pain and
painful emotion. All the physical pain ever recorded by the
organism and all the painful emotion are parts of this inverted
pyramid.
The auditor first discharges the painful emotion from later life as
it was displayed in "conscious moments." He runs these periods as
true engrams until the pre-clear is no longer affected by them.
Then he tries to contact basic-basic, that first engram. He reduces
all engrams he contacts en route to that primary goal. In every
session he tries to reach basic-basic until he is certain he has
it.
Basic-basic is the bottom point. Once it has been gained, an
erasure is begun during which engram after engram is
"re-experienced" with all somatics until it is gone. Before
basic-basic had been reached, the auditor may have had to run
engrams twenty times before they
* You can contact the file clerk by drugs or hypnotism and gather
and reduce engrams. But this is an over-simplified solution. What
we are doing in dianetic therapy is more than this - we are trying
to get "I" in contact with the file clerk, not just work the file
clerk along. Hypno-analysis and narco-synthesis failed because they
knew nothing of the engram bank and because they tried, without
knowing what it was, to work only the file clerk. The desire of the
patient to be worked in amnesia trance or any drugged state is an
effort to spare "I" and throw the burden on the file clerk.
248
reduced. Later he may have found they reduced in five runs. Then he
contacts and erases basic-basic. If the patient has sonic by this
time - or if he has had it all along - the engrams start erasing
with one or two recountings.
The file clerk is smart. The auditor who does not credit the
ability of these attention units will involve the case beyond
necessity and will lengthen it. The file clerk may hand things out
by phrases, by somatics, by time. Whatever he hands out ordinarily
will reduce on recountings. By working with, not trying to command,
the file clerk, the auditor will find his case steadily improving
until it is released or fully cleared. The only time the auditor
disregards this is when he uses the repeater system, which will be
described.
We have "I" in a reverie; we return him to a period in his life
along his time track; the file clerk gives incidents forth which
the pre-clear re-experiences; the auditor makes the pre-clear
recount the engram until it is relieved or has "vanished"* (all
engrams will eventually "vanish" after basic-basic is erased);
anything new the file clerk offers, even during the recounting, is
addressed by the auditor to make the pre-clear re-experience it.
That is the total sum of activity in dianetics. There are, as
accessories, the repeater technique and a few short-cuts. This is
therapy. Amplification is needed, of course, and will be found in
the ensuing pages to give the auditor all the data he needs. But
this is the entire outline of dianetic therapy.
* The words "vanished" or "erased," when applied to an engram which
has been treated mean that the engram has disappeared from the
engram bank. It cannot be found afterwards except by search of the
standard memory.
249
CHAPTER VI
The Laws of Returning
The engram has the aspect of - and is not - a live entity which
protects itself in various ways. Any and all phrases in it can be
considered commands. These commands react on the analytical mind in
such a way as to cause the analytical mind to behave erratically.
Dianetic therapy is parallel to the methods of thought and thinking
itself. Anything which reacts against dianetics and the auditor can
uniformly and without exception be found to react in just that way
on the patient's analytical mind. Conversely, the patient's
problems of thinking in his usual activities are the auditor's
problems in therapy.
The bulk of these "commands" the engrams contain are not computable
in any way, since they are contradictory or demand unreasonable
acts. It is the impossibility of computing them and reconciling
them to thought and existence which makes the patient aberrated.
Let us take an engram which comes from one of Mother's bowel
movements. She is straining, which causes compression, which brings
about "unconsciousness" in the unborn child. Then, if she
habitually talks to herself (a monologist) as an enormous number of
aberrated women do, she may say, "Oh, this is hell. I am all jammed
up inside. I feel so stuffy I can't think. This is too terrible to
be borne."
This may be in the basic area. The dream mechanism of the mind
(which thinks in puns mostly, symbologists to the contrary) may
bring forth a dream about hell-fire as the engram is approached.
The pre-clear may be sure that he is going to descend into fire if
he goes on his time
250
track toward this engram. Further, he may think his time track is
all jammed up. This will mean, perhaps, that the incidents are all
in one place on it. So much for "This is hell," and "all jammed up
inside." Now let us take a look at what happens with "I'm so
stuffy, I can't think." The pre-clear sniffles because he thinks
this means a cold in his nose. And as for "This is too terrible to
be borne," he is filled with an emotion of terror at the thought of
touching the engram, for this command says it is too painful to
bear. Additionally, engrams being literal in their action, he may
think that he was too terrible to be born.
The emotional reaction to hell, from some other place on the track
- as contained in some other engram - may say that "going to hell"
is loud sobbing. Hence he does not "want" to recount this engram.
Further, he is terrified of it because it is "too terrible to be
borne." That Mother was only discussing with her ambivalent self
the necessity of laxatives is never entered into the computation.
For the reactive mind does not reason, it thinks in identities,
seeking to command the analytical mind.
There is only as much data as is in the engram and the analytical
reaction to this unthinking thing is utterly literal.
Let us look at another. This is a coitus experience. It has, as its
somatic, varying pressure. It is not painful and, by the way, no
matter how painful these engrams may be in present time when
restimulated, no matter how forceful, when they are actually
contacted, their reexperienced pain is very mild, no matter what it
was when received. So this is a shaking up of the unborn child,
that is all. But it says, "Oh, darling, I'm afraid you'll come in
me. I'll just die if you come in me. Oh please don't come in me!"
What does the analytical mind do with this? Does it think about
coitus? Does it worry about pregnancy? No, emphatically not. The
engram that would make one think about coitus would say, "Think
about coitus!" and
251
the engram that contained a worry about pregnancy would say, "I am
worried about pregnancy." The pain is not severe in this coitus
experience but it specifically states that the engram is not to be
entered. "Do not come in me!" He would die if he did, wouldn't he?
It says so right there. And the patient finds himself wandering
around the track until the auditor uses repeater technique (as will
be covered).
How about another type of engram? Let us suppose that our poor
patient has been unlucky enough to get a Junior tagged on him. Let
us suppose his name is Ralph and his father's name is Ralph. (Be
careful of these Junior cases, they are unusually complex
sometimes.) Mother (see the Kinsey report, if you've any doubts) is
having a quiet affair on the side with Jim. This coitus somatic is
no more painful than being gently sat upon, but the patient has a
terrible time with it. Mother: "Oh, honey, you are so wonderful. I
wish Ralph were more like you but he isn't. He just doesn't seem to
be able to excite a girl at all." Lover: "Oh, Ralph isn't so bad. I
like him." Mother: "You don't know his pride. If Ralph found out
about this, it would kill him. He would just die, I know." Lover:
"Don't worry, Ralph'll never hear."
This little gem of an engram is more common than one would suppose
before he begins to get an embryo-eye view of Mother. This won't
compute in the analyzer as data. Therefore it is a worry. (A worry
is contradictory engram commands which cannot be computed.) Ralph,
Junior, finds that he is very shy sexually. That is the aberrative
pattern. Approaching it in therapy we find we have a sympathy
computation with the lover. After all, he said Ralph wasn't so bad,
that he liked Ralph. Well, the only Ralph is, of course, to the
reactive mind, Junior. This keeps our patient from approaching this
engram because he thinks he will lose a friend if he touches it.
Further, on the aberrative side, Junior has always worried about
people's pride. As we contact this in therapy, he shies violently
from it. After all, if he found out about
252
it it would "kill him dead right where he lies." And there is
another thing here, a sonic shut-off. It says right there that
Ralph will never hear. This is survival stuff. That is what the
cells believe. Therefore Ralph never hears in recall. There will be
more sonic shut-offs; Mother is promiscuous and that generally
means blockage on the second dynamic. Blockage on the second
dynamic often means she dislikes children. In short, this would be
an attempted abortion case which stabbed Junior full of enough
holes to supply a cheese factory for some time. Junior, now a man,
may have extended hearing because he is frightened in general of
"life." But his sonic recall is zero. This engram, then, would have
to be sorted out through the demon circuits as "impressions" which
come to the mind. The auditor, taking what the patient says about
this, may very soon guess its content and explode it by repeater
technique.
Now take the case of the mother who, a soul of propriety if a
little on the whiny side, discovers she is pregnant and goes to the
doctor. Mother: "I think I'm pregnant. I'm afraid I am." Doctor
punches her around for a while, knocking the unborn child, who is
our pre-clear thirty years later, into an "unconscious" state.
Doctor: "I don't think so." Mother: "I'm really afraid I am. I'm
sure I'm caught. I just know it." Doctor (more punching): "Well,
it's hard to tell this early."
It says right there that this man patient of ours is pregnant. If
we look, we'll see he has a paunch. That's good survival, that is.
And in therapy we find he is afraid he exists: I am afraid I am.
And suddenly he isn't moving on the time track. Why? He's caught.
That doesn't mean he's pregnant, that means he is caught. Further,
he won't be able to recount it. Why? Because it is hard to tell
this early. Consequently he doesn't speak about it. We free him on
the track with repeater technique.
Oh, this language of ours which says everything it doesn't mean!
Put into the hands of the moronic reactive mind, what havoc it
wreaks! Literal interpretation of
253
everything! Part of the aberrative pattern of the person who had
the above engram was great cautiousness about advancing any
opinion. After all, it was hard to tell, this early.
Now let us take an engram from a girl patient whose father was
badly aberrated. He strikes Mother because he is afraid Mother is
pregnant and Father is blocked on Dynamics One, Two, Three and
Four. Father: "Get out! Get out! I know you haven't been true to
me! You were no virgin when I married you. I should have killed you
long ago! Now you're pregnant. Get out!"
The girl, some five weeks after conception, is knocked
"unconscious" by the blow to Mother's abdomen. She has a severe
engram here because it has painful emotional value which she will
never be able to dramatize satisfactorily. The aberrative pattern
here demonstrates itself in hysterics whenever a man might accuse
her of not being true. She was a virgin when she was married
twenty-one years after this engram was received, but she was sure
she was not. She has had a "childhood delusion" that her father was
likely to kill her. And she is always afraid of being pregnant
because it says now she is pregnant, which means always, since time
is a march of "nows." In therapy we try to get near this engram. We
return the patient to basic area and suddenly find her talking
about something which happened when she was five years of age. We
return her again and now she is talking about something which
happened when she was ten years of age. The auditor, observing any
such reaction as this, knows he is handling a bouncer. It says,
"Get out!" and the patient gets out. The auditor recognizes what is
wrong, uses repeater technique, and reduces or erases the engram.
Always and invariably, the analytical mind reacts to these engrams
as though commanded. It performs on the track as these engrams
state. And it computes about the
254
case or about life as these engrams dictate. Healthy things to have
around, engrams! Real, good survival! Survival good enough to lay
any man in his grave.
The auditor is not much worried by the phrases which assist
therapy. An engram received from Father beating Mother which says:
"Take that! Take it, I tell you. You've got to take it!" means that
our patient has possibly had tendencies as a kleptomaniac. (Such
things are the whole source of the impulses of a thief, the test
being that when an auditor erases all such engrams in a patient,
the patient no longer steals.) The auditor will find it eagerly
recounted because its content offers it to the analytical mind.
The whole species of engrams which say, "Come back here! Now stay
here!" as Fathers are so fond of saying, account for a snap back to
an engram when therapy is entered. The patient goes straight back
to it the moment it is exposed. When recounted the command is no
longer effective. But while that engram existed, unentered, it was
fully capable of sending people to an institution to lie in a
foetal position. Anyone left in institutions who has not been given
shocks or pre-frontal lobotomy and who suffers from this type of
insanity can be released from such an engram and restored to
present time simply by use of repeater technique. It sometimes
takes only half an hour.
Traveling on the track, then, and wandering through the
computations the analyzer is compelled by these engrams to attempt
is something like playing a child's game which has a number of
squares and along which one is supposed to move a "man." A game
could actually be composed on the basis of this time track and
engram commands. It would be similar to parchesi. Move so many
squares, land on one which says, "Get out!" which means one would
go back to present time or toward it. Move so many squares and then
lose a move because this
255
square on which we now land says, "Stay here!" and the "man" would
stay until the auditor let him out by technique (but because this
is struck by therapy, it would have no power to hold long). Then
move so many squares to one which said, "Go to sleep," at which the
"man" would have to go to sleep. Move so many squares until one was
hit which said, "Nobody must find out," and so there would be no
square. Move so many until one was reached which said, "I'm
afraid," at which the "man" would be afraid. Move again to a square
which said, "I must go away," so the "man" would go away. Move once
more to a square which says, "I'm not here," and the square would
be missing. And so forth and so forth.
The classes of commands which particularly trouble the auditor are
only a few. Because the mind actually does some part of its
thinking, especially when remembering, by return, even when the
individual is not returning, all these commands also impede the
thought processes of the mind. In therapy they are particularly
irksome and are the constant target of attention of the auditor.
First is the patient-ejector species of command. These are
colloquially called "bouncers." They include such things as "Get
out!" "Don't ever come back," "I've got to stay away," etc. etc.,
including any combination of words which literally mean ejection.
Second is the patient-holder species of command. These include such
things as "Stay here," "Sit right there and think about it," "Come
back and sit down," "I can't go," "I mustn't leave," etc.
Third is the engram-denyer species of command which, literally
translated, means that the engram doesn't exist: "I'm not here,"
"This is getting nowhere," "I must not talk about it," "I can't
remember," etc.
Fourth is the engram-grouper species of command which, literally
translated, means that all incidents are in
256
one place on the time track: "I'm jammed up," "Everything happens
at once," "Everything comes in on me at once," "I'll get even with
you," etc.
Fifth is the patient-misdirector which sends the pre-clear in the
wrong direction, makes him go earlier when he should be going
later, go later when he should go earlier, etc. "You can't go back
at this point," "You're turned around," etc.
The bouncer sends the pre-clear soaring back toward present time.
The holder keeps him right where he is. The denyer makes him feel
that there is no incident present. The fourth, the grouper,
foreshortens his time track so that there is no time track. The
misdirector reverses the necessary direction of travel.
Contacting any engram causes the pre-clear to react "analytically."
Just as in the case of an engram being restimulated, the commands
are impinged upon his analyzer, and although the analyzer may
firmly believe it has just computed the reaction all of its own
accord, it is actually speaking straight out of the content of an
engram or engrams.
This is the method of repeater technique.
As he goes back along the track contacting engrams, the pre-clear
runs into areas of "unconsciousness" which are occluded by
"unconsciousness" or emotion. In most early engrams the pre-clear
can be expected to yawn and yawn. It is not the command "to sleep"
which is responsible for this: the "unconsciousness" is releasing
(boiling off, the auditors call it). A pre-clear may, for a space
of two hours, fumble around, drop off into "unconsciousness,"
appear doped, start to go to sleep, without any such command being
present.
Part of the engram bundle of data is the analyzer shut-off. When he
is returned and an engram is contacted, the pre-clear then
experiences an analyzer attenuation, which means he is much less
able to think in the area.
257
Boiling-off "unconsciousness" is a process very necessary to
therapy, for this "unconsciousness" could be restimulated in the
everyday life of the individual and, when restimulated, make his
wits shut off just a little or a very great deal, slowing down his
thought processes.
The aspect of "unconsciousness," then, reduces the pre-clear's
awareness whenever it is contacted. He has dreams, he mumbles
foolish things, he flounders. His analyzer is penetrating the veil
which kept him from the engram. But it is also highly susceptible,
when in this state, to an engram command.
When urged by the auditor to go through the engram and recount it
(although the auditor knows it may take minutes for this
"unconsciousness" to boil off enough to let the patient through)
the pre-clear may complain that "I can't go back at this point."
The auditor promptly takes note of this. It is an engram command
coming through. He does not apprise the patient of this knowledge;
the patient usually doesn't know what he's saying. If the patient
then continues to have trouble, the auditor tells him, "Say, 'I
can't go back at this point.'" The patient then repeats this, the
auditor making him go over it and over it. Suddenly the somatic
turns on and the engram is contacted.
In interviewing a patient, the auditor notes carefully without
appearing to do so, what phrases the patient chooses and repeats
about his ills or about dianetics. After he has placed the patient
in reverie, if he discovers the patient, for instance, insists he
"can't go any place," the auditor makes him repeat the phrase.
Repetition of such a phrase, over and over, sucks the patient back
down the track and into contact with an engram which contains it.
It may happen that this engram will not release - having too many
before it - but it will not release only in case it has that same
phrase in an earlier engram. So the repeater technique is continued
with the auditor making the patient go earlier and earlier
258
fur it. If all goes on schedule the patient will very often let out
a chuckle or a laugh of relief. The phrase has been sprung. The
engram has not been erased, but that much of it will not thereafter
influence therapy.
Anything the patient does about engrams and any words he uses to
describe the action are contained, usually, in those engrams.
Repeater technique takes the charge off the phrases so that the
engrams can be approached.
This technique, of course, can very occasionally land the patient
in trouble, but the kind of trouble into which one can get in
dianetics is not very severe. The engram, restimulated in everyday
life, can be and is violent. Murders, rapes and arsons, attempted
abortions, backwardness in school, - any aberrated aspect of life -
stems from these engrams. But the act of approaching them in
dianetic therapy goes on another channel, a channel closer to the
source of the engram. Ordinarily, acting on an unsuspecting
individual, the engram has enormous motor and speech power, ties up
great numbers of circuits in the mind which should be used for
rationality, and generally effects havoc: its contacts are
"soldered-in" and cannot be thrown out by the analyzer. In therapy
the patient is headed toward the engram: that act alone begins to
disconnect some of its "permanent leads." A patient can be gotten
into an engram which, unless approached on the therapy route, might
have made him curl up like a foetus and get shipped off to the
nearest institution. On the therapy route, which is a return down
the time track, the most powerful holder has its force limited: a
patient can get into a holder which in normal life might be a
psychosis: his only manifestation, perhaps, is that when he is told
to "Come up to present time," he simply opens his eyes without
actually traversing the interval up the track to present time. He
does not suspect he is in a holder until the auditor, watchful for
such a manifestation, feeds him repeater technique.
259
AUDITOR: Are you in present time?
PRE-CLEAR: Sure.
AUDITOR: How do you feel?
PRE-CLEAR: Oh, I've got a slight headache.
AUDITOR: Close your eyes. Now say: "Stay here."
PRE-CLEAR: All right. Stay here. Stay here. Stay here. (Several
times)
AUDITOR: Are you moving?
PRE-CLEAR: No.
AUDITOR: Say "I'm caught. I'm caught."
PRE-CLEAR: I'm caught. (Several times)
AUDITOR: Are you moving on the track?
PRE-CLEAR: Nope.
AUDITOR: Say, "I'm trapped."
PRE-CLEAR: I'm trapped. I - Ouch, my head!
AUDITOR: Keep going over it.
PRE-CLEAR: I'm trapped. I'm trapped. I'm trapped, Ouch! That's
worse! (His somatic is getting stronger as he approaches the
engram holding him on the other side of the
"unconsciousness" veil)
AUDITOR: Keep going over it.
PRE-CLEAR: I'm trapped - "Oh, God, I'm trapped. I'll never get out
of this place. I'll never get out. I'm trapped!"
AUDITOR: Contact it closely. Make sure there is nothing more in
it. (A trick to keep the pre-clear from replaying what he
himself has just said and keep running the engram)
PRE-CLEAR: My head hurts! Let me come up to present time!
AUDITOR: Go through it again. (If the pre-clear comes up with this
much charge, he'll be unhappy and the incident may be hard to
enter next time)
PRE-CLEAR: "Oh, God, I'm trapped. I'm
260
afraid I'm trapped (new word showed up). I'll never get out of
this place as long as I live. I'm trapped. I'll
never get out. I'm trapped." (aside) She's crying. "Oh, why did
I ever have to marry such a man!"
AUDITOR: How's your head?
PRE-CLEAR: Hurts less. Say, that's a dirty trick. She's pounding
herself on the stomach. That's mean! Why, confound her!
AUDITOR: Re-experience it. again. Let's make sure there isn't more
in it. (Same mechanism to keep the pre-clear from
replaying what he said before rather than what he now gets from
the engram. If he replays rather than re-experiences, the engram
won't lift)
PRE-CLEAR: (Does so, getting some new words and several sounds
including the thud of the blows on her abdomen and an auto horn
(bulb type) in the street outside) Don't tell me I have to run
this thing again.
AUDITOR: Recount it, please.
PRE-CLEAR: Well, so this dame tries to bust my head in and get rid
of me. And so I jumped out and beat hell out of her.
AUDITOR: Please re-experience the engram.
PRE-CLEAR: (Starts to do so, suddenly finds out that like a piece
of string with a loop in it, this engram has straightened out
and contains more data where the loops were). "I've got to think
of something to tell Harry. He'll jump all over me." (This was
the source of his joking - "jumped out, etc.")
AUDITOR: Please go over it again. There may be more in it.
PRE-CLEAR: (Does so, old parts of it reduce, two new sounds appear,
her footsteps and running water. Then he is happy
laughs at it. This engram is released because it may not have
entirely vanished. Such an engram is in this shape only when it
is contacted prior to basic-basic.)
This is both repeater technique and an engram talked into
recession. This engram may appear again with a very faint
additional charge after basic-basic is contacted, but it has lost
all power to aberrate or give out a psycho-somatic headache or
other illness. Yet this engram, not contacted by therapy, was quite
enough to make this patient, when a boy, scream with terror every
time he found he could not get out of some closed space
(claustrophobia).
The repeater technique is the one particular phase of dianetics
which requires cleverness from the auditor. Given persistency and
patience, any auditor can succeed in the other phases of the
science with minimal intelligence. In the repeater technique he
must learn how to think - for therapy purposes - like an engram.
And he will have to observe how the subject is conducting himself
along the time track. And he will have to observe the type of
reaction the subject has and draw from this the conclusion as to
what sort of command is troubling the subject when the subject
himself either does not cooperate or does not know.
This is not to say that the repeater technique is hard: it is not.
But the ability of the auditor to use it is the principal reason
why a case takes longer with one auditor than another. It is a
definite ability. It is playing the game mentioned earlier with
cleverness. Where is the pre-clear stuck and with what command? Why
has the pre-clear suddenly stopped cooperating? Where is the
emotional charge which is holding up the case? With the repeater
technique the auditor can resolve all these problems and a clever
auditor resolves them much faster than an unclever one.
How does one think like an engram? Ronald Ross,
262
discovering that insects carried germs, considered it necessary to
think like a mosquito. Here is a similar menace, the engram. One
has to learn to think, for therapy purposes, like an engram.
The auditor could not and does not have to be able to look into a
patient's eyes and guess why the patient won't eat anything but
cauliflower on Wednesdays. That is an aberration and the auditor
does not have to guess at either aberrations or psycho-somatic
illness sources; they all come out in time and he will learn much
about them as he goes. But the auditor must be able to keep his
patient straightened out on the track, moving earlier into the
basic area, moving upwards from there for a reduction. The current
answer to this is the repeater technique. Understand that a whole
new art of practice, or many arts of practice, could be evolved for
dianetics: one would be unhappy with his fellow man if such
evolution and betterment did not take place. Just now the best that
has come forward - and the criterion of best is that it works
uniformly in all cases - is the repeater technique. The auditor
must be able to use it if he expects anything like results from a
case at this time. When the auditor - or some auditor - has run a
few cases and knows the nature of this beast, the engram, he may -
and better had - come forward with improved techniques of his own.
The real drawback which repeater technique has is that it requires
the auditor to be clever.
Being clever does not mean talking a lot. In dianetics, when one is
auditing, that is being very unclever. Indeed auditors, when they
begin to work cases, almost invariably so love the sound of their
own voices and the feel of their skill that the poor pre-clear
hardly gets a chance to get a word in reactive-wise - and it is the
pre-clear who is to be cleared, who has the only accurate
information, who can make the only evaluations.
Being clever in the sense of the repeater technique is being able
to pick out, from the subject's conversation or action, just what
the engrams contain which will prevent
263
his reaching them, progressing through them and so forth. The
repeater technique is addressed only to action, not to aberration.
Here is a case, for instance, which was so "sealed-in" that thirty
hours of almost continual repeater technique were necessary to
break the walls between the analytical mind and the engrams. It is
important to know that an engram would not be an engram if the
pre-clear could contact it easily. Any engram which can be easily
contacted and has no emotional charge is about as aberrative as a
glass of soda water.
A young girl, with sonic recall, but with extended hearing and such
a complete imbalance of the endocrine system that she had become an
old woman at twenty-two, was worked for seventy-five hours before
she contacted anything in the basic area. This is almost incredible
but it happened. In a patient with sonic shut-off and off his time
track, seventy-five hours of work would just about get the wheels
greased. But this girl, having sonic recall, should have been well
on the road to being clear and she had yet to touch basic-basic.
By repeater technique and repeater alone the case was finally
resolved. It contained practically no holders or bouncers. It
simply appeared that the whole prenatal area was a blank.
Now it happens that an engram, being not a memory with reason in
it, is just a set of waves or some other type of recording which
impinges itself on the analytical mind and the somatic mind and
runs the voice and muscles and other parts of the body. The
analytical mind, to justify what it finds going forward, and cut
down by the engram in dramatization, may be interjecting data to
make this action seem reasonable - to justity it. But this does not
make an engram sentient. When an engram is first approached in
therapy it appears to be absent entirely. It may be that three
sessions will be required to "develop" this engram. As many are
worked, this does not mean three blank sessions, but it means that
the "I,"
264
in returning, must pass over an engram a few times for the engram
to "develop." This is important to know. Just as you ask the mind
for a datum one week and don't find it (in an aberree) and ask it
again the next week and find it, so with engrams. A cardinal
principle in therapy is that if you keep asking for it, you will
eventually get the engram. Returning over and over the prenatal
area will, of itself alone, eventually develop the engrams in it so
that the analytical mind can attack them and reduce them. This is
slow freight. The repeater technique - although the engram is still
in need of development by several sessions - speeds the process
immensely.
In the case of this young girl it probably would have taken another
fifty or sixty hours of work to contact the engrams unless a
technique like repeater had been used. Repeater technique resolved
it when the auditor noted that she kept saying, "I'm sure there's a
good reason why I feel bad up in my childhood. After all, my
brother raped me when I was five. I'm sure it's up in my childhood,
much later. My mother was terribly jealous of me. I'm sure it's
later."
This young lady, as might be imagined, had studied some school of
mental healing in college which thought sex or eating vitamins
caused aberrations of the mind and she had often held forth on the
fact that while she was not averse to what she called "analysis"
she did think it dull to expect a foetus to hear anything. She
would go into the area before birth and declare she was quite
comfortable. But birth was not in sight. That is important. The
basic engram or engrams in the basic area - around the embryo
period - cannot vanish and will not vanish short of therapy, and
when birth cannot even be contacted by so much as one somatic, it
is certain that something lies before it. If birth were the first
engram, everybody could be cleared in five hours. Birth can even be
in sight and there may still remain half a hundred severe prenatal
experiences. In her case, nothing was in sight. Her educational
pattern had slowed the
265
case: she was always trying to sit in present time and "remember"
with a memory so full of occlusions that she couldn't have recalled
her mother's right name. (She had acquired this from being in the
hands of mental practitioners for ten years who had asked her to do
nothing but "remember.") As has been said, she was quite
comfortable before birth, sensed the amniotic fluid and was certain
that life in the womb was a joyous life for all. The incongruity
that she could experience the sensations of this amniotic fluid and
floating comfort and warmth and a continued belief that there was
no prenatal memory escaped her utterly. The auditor made no
slightest effort to convince her. Knowing his business, he merely
kept sending her back and forth, trying this mechanism or that.
She finally wanted to know if there had to be prenatal experience
and was told that what was there was there, that if there was no
prenatal memory then she wouldn't recall any but that if there was,
she might. This is a good, equivocal attitude for an auditor.
Dianetics, after all, as one auditor put it, "just shows the yard
goods" and makes no sales effort at all.
The auditor had been using repeater technique on varieties of
phrases. She was moving on the track so there must be a denyer
present. And he had utterly run out of ideas when he realized,
suddenly, that she was very handy with that phrase, "much later."
AUDITOR: Say "Much later" and return into the prenatal area.
GIRL: "Much later. Much later," etc. (very bored and
uncooperative).
AUDITOR: Continue please. (Never say "Go ahead" for that means to
do just that. Say "Continue" when you want them to keep on
progressing along an engram or repeating and
266
"Return over it" when re-running an engram already run once.)
GIRL: "Much later. Much..." I have a
somatic in my face! It feels like I am being pushed. (This was
good news for the auditor knew she had a mid-prenatal pain
shut-off which prevented later somatics from appearing.)
AUDITOR: Contact it more closely and continue to repeat.
GIRL: "Much later. Much later." It's getting stronger. (Naturally.
On repeater technique, the somatic gets stronger until the phrase
appears, exactly right. On a non-sonic case it impinges itself
indirectly on "I"; in a sonic, the sound comes through as sound.)
AUDITOR: Continue.
GIRL: "Much..." I hear a voice! There. That's it. Why, that's my
father's voice!
AUDITOR: Listen to the words and repeat them, please.
GIRL: He's talking to my mother. Say, this face pressure is
uncomfortable. It keeps going up and down on me. It hurts!
AUDITOR: Repeat his words please.
GIRL: He's saying: "Oh honey, I won't come in you now. It's better
to wait until much later to have one." And there's my mother's
voice. Say, this pressure is hurting me. No, it's eased up
considerably. Funny, the minute I contacted his voice, it got
less.
AUDITOR: What is your mother saying, please, if you hear her?
GIRL: She's saying: "I don't want you in there at all then!" She's
mad! Say, the somatic stopped. (Coitus had ended at this point.)
267
AUDITOR: Please return to the start of this and recount.
GIRL: (Regains the beginning, somatic returns) I wonder what
they're doing? (then a pause) I hear a squishing sound! (then a
pause and embarrassment) Oh!
AUDITOR: Recount the engram please.
GIRL: There's a sort of a faint rhythm at first and then it gets
faster. I can hear breathing. Now it's beginning to bear down
harder but a lot less than it did the first time. Then it eases
up and I hear my father's voice: "Oh, honey I won't come in you
now. It's better to wait until much later to have one. I'm not
too sure I like children that well. Besides, my job
..." And my mother must shove at him
because there's a sharper somatic here. "I don't want you in there
at all then. You cold fish!"
AUDITOR: Return to the beginning and recount it again, please.
GIRL: (Recounts it several times, somatic finally vanishes. She
feels quite cheerful about it but doesn't think to mention that
she doubted prenatals existed.)
This is repeater technique at work. This particular case had had
about two hundred phrases thrown at her for repeater technique
without finding one of them that would fit. In the first place,
there were only a few lower engrams which the file clerk was
willing to give out and the auditor was guessing at the whole gamut
of deniers. A later incident might have contained - and did but no
somatic appeared - numbers of the phrases he used. But the file
clerk was willing to settle for this one for it was early and could
be erased.
The file clerk rarely hands out something in a badly occluded case
which cannot be reduced to recession. And
268
an auditor never leaves an engram so offered until he has made
every effort with many recountings to reduce it. The file clerk, in
this case, by the bye, would have let down the auditor by putting
forth such an engram as birth, which would not have lifted and
which would have caused a lot of lost work and given the patient a
headache for a few days. The auditor would have let the file clerk
down if he had not reduced the engram offered by making the girl go
over it several times until the somatic was gone and the voice
faded out.
The reason this engram stayed hidden was because its content said
so. Actually it was a coitus. As an engram it seemed to say that
the incidents would be found later on in life. Further, as an
engram, it said that it was not to be entered.
Repeater technique will sometimes embroil a patient in trouble of a
minor sort by getting him "sucked into" incidents which will not
lift. This is not common but the file clerk occasionally hands out
a late incident, rather than an early one. However, this is not an
error on the part of the file clerk. Remember, he has these engrams
filed by subject, somatic and time, and the auditor can use any one
of these. When the file clerk responds and hands out a somatic on a
repeater phrase the auditor has gleaned from the pre-clear's
chatter or has guessed himself and yet that somatic will not lift
or no voice appears with it (in a sonic case, or merely won't lift
with a non-sonic), the file clerk had to unstack a pile of
material. Therefore, the auditor, realizing this, finding that a
voice does not appear or that the somatic will not lift, has the
pre-clear repeat the same phrase and tells him to go earlier and
earlier. Another somatic may turn up in a different place in the
body. The file clerk has gotten an even earlier one loose, now that
a small amount of trouble has been taken from what he could first
get. Now this earlier one is addressed similarly. It may get
mediumly strong as a somatic, the pre-clear repeating the phrase
all the
269
while, and still no voice may appear. The auditor then sends the
pre-clear earlier. The file clerk again has managed to get out an
even earlier one, now that something has been taken from the
second. This time again, an even earlier somatic turns on, probably
down around the basic area in a case which has not previously
contacted this area, and this time a voice can be heard. The engram
reduces. The file clerk, in short, was willing to risk trouble in
order to get several somatics unstacked and let the auditor get a
basic incident.
There are variations on this sort of thing. As the filing system is
by subject, somatic and time, the auditor can use other things than
phrases. He can send a pre-clear to the "highest intensity of a
somatic," and often results may be obtained, though this is not as
reliable as by subject nor as foolproof. The pre-clear,
incidentally, does not mind going to any "highest intensity" of
somatic because somatics are about a thousandth part as strong as
the original agony, though they are quite strong enough. In present
time with the pre-clear not in therapy, the intensity of one of
these somatics can be a drastic affair as witness the migraine
headache. Taking the migraine, a pre-clear can be returned to the
very moment of its reception when one would think its intensity
would be the highest and yet find a mild, dull ache such as one
would get with a hangover. This is part of the principle that any
entrance of a case is better than a case not entered at all. For by
return with standard reverie technique the source is approached,
and if the source is contacted at all, the power of the engram to
aberrate has become reduced in strength no matter how many mistakes
the auditor makes.
Returning to "maximum intensity" of a somatic, then, is nothing
very painful. Actual maximum intensity is when the pre-clear is
awake before the contact with the incident is made. But in
returning to "maximum intensity" the incident may often be
contacted and reduced. If
270
"maximum intensity" however, contains in its engram the phrases, "I
can't stand it!" "It's killing me," or "I'm terrified," then expect
our pre-clear to respond to it in some such way. If he does not
respond, then he has an emotional shut-off, which is another
problem which will be taken up later.
Similarly, the auditor can handle his pre-clear in time. There
exists a very accurate clock in the mind. The file clerk is very
well acquainted with this clock and wherever possible will comply.
The auditor who wants the patient to go "six minutes before this
phrase is uttered" will generally find that his pre-clear is now
six minutes before it, even though the incident is prenatal. The
auditor can bring his pre-clear forward, then, minute by minute as
he desires. He can take a pre-clear straight through an incident by
announcing, "It is one minute later, it is two minutes later. Three
minutes have gone by," and so forth. The auditor does not have to
wait for those minutes to elapse; he just announces them. He can
make a pre-clear go through time at five minute intervals or hour
intervals or day intervals, and unless there is engramic material
which holds him or otherwise affects the operation, the auditor can
move the pre-clear on the time track at will. It would be very nice
if the auditor could send the pre-clear to conception and then tell
him it is one hour later, two hours later and so forth to pick up
the first engram. However, there are more factors involved than
time, and the plan, though pretty, is not feasible. The time shift
is generally used when the auditor is trying to get the pre-clear
ahead of an incident to make sure that he really has a beginning.
By returning the pre-clear by five or ten minute intervals, the
auditor may sometimes discover that he is running backwards into a
very long and complicated incident and that the headache he has
been seeking to alleviate on the pre-clear was received, actually,
hours before the period in which he thought it had initially been
received. In such a case there is a
271
second engram appended to an earlier engram and the auditor cannot
lift the second one until he has the first one.
Actually time shift is of limited use. The auditor who tries to go
chasing backwards through time will find that he will have on his
hands an artificially restimulated case and that the work is much
impeded. Repeater technique works best and is most easily handled
by the file clerk. The auditor uses a time shift to get the
pre-clear as close to basic area (early prenatal) as possible and
then generally, if the file clerk doesn't simply go to work handing
out engrams which can be washed, one after the other, the auditor
uses repeater technique. Time shift and "running down a somatic"
have some limited use. Some experimentation will show about how
much use they have.
The laws of regression are these:
(1) A returned patient reacts more, theoretically, to those
commands which are earlier than he is on the time track and less to
those commands which are later than his point in time.
(2) A pre-clear reacts to those engramic commands which are: (a) in
chronic restimulation, or (b) to which he is nearest on the time
track. Thus, if an engram says, "I'm afraid," he is. If it says,
"I'd rather die than face this," he would. If the command to which
he is near says, "I'm sleepy," he will be. If it says, "Forget it,"
he will. Commands in chronic restimulation give a false color to
the personality: "I can never be sure of anything," "I don't know,"
"I can't hear anything" are all possibly in chronic restimulation.
If the file clerk won't give them up, then keep working the case
anyway around these. They will give up after a while.
(3) The action of the pre-clear on the time track and the condition
of the track are regulated exclusively by engramic commands
classifiable as bouncers, holders,
272
denyers and groupers and misdirectors. (These conditions, it is
repeated, are quite variable, as variable as language: "I don't
know whether I am coming or going," for instance in an engram makes
it very confusing. "I can't go back at this point" makes the
pre-clear keep progressing later and later.)
(4) The engramic command manifests itself either in the awake
speech of the pre-clear after a session of therapy or is
inadvertently announced as a supposedly "analytical" thought when
he nears the vicinity of the command.
(5) The engram is not a sentient, rationalized memory but a
collection of unanalyzed perceptions, and it will develop into
contact simply by the process of returning through it, to it, over
it or asking for it.
(6) The file clerk will give the auditor whatever can be extracted
from the engram bank. The auditor must aid the file clerk by
reducing in charge or severity everything the file clerk offers.
This is done by making the patient recount it. (Otherwise the file
clerk gets so much material piled around that, with this in
restimulation, he can no longer get at the files. The auditor who
bucks the file clerk is not rare. The file clerk who will buck an
auditor except by withholding data which will not reduce has yet to
be found.)
The techniques available to the auditor are as follows:
1. Returning, in which the pre-clear is sent as early as possible
on his track before therapy itself is engaged upon.
2. Repeater technique, by which the file clerk is asked for data on
certain subjects, particularly those affecting the return and
travel on the time track, and which aid the ability of the
pre-clear to contact engrams.
3. Time shift, by which a pre-clear can be moved short or long
distances on the track by specific announcement of the amount of
time forward the pre-clear is to go or
273
time backwards, or return or progression through intervals of time.
(It is also useful to find out if the pre-clear is moving or which
direction he is moving on the time track in order to discover the
action some engram may be having upon him.)
4. Somatic location, by which the moment of reception of the
somatic is located, in an effort to discover whether it is received
in this engram or to find an engram containing it.
274
CHAPTER VII
Emotion and the Life Force
One of the largest roles in therapy is played by Emotion. In the
second book we covered this subject and divided it tentatively as a
theory only into three divisions: (a) the emotions contained in the
command of engrams whereby physical pain became confused with
emotions; (b) the emotions contained as endocrine reactions subject
to the analytical mind of the clear and the analytical mind and
reactive mind of the aberree; and (c) the emotions contained in
engrams which bound up free units of Life force.
Further work and research on emotion will undoubtedly bring about
an even closer understanding of it. But we have a workable
knowledge of emotion now. We can use what we know and produce
results with it. When we know more, we shall be able to produce
much better results but just now we can produce the release and the
clear. If we treat emotion as bound up life force and if we follow
these general precepts to release it, we shall obtain a very large
gain in any pre-clear; indeed, we shall produce our largest single
gains by so releasing emotion.
In an engineering science like dianetics, we can work on a
push-button basis. We know that throwing a switch will stop a
motor, that closing it again will start it and that no matter how
many times we open or close that switch our motor will stop or
start. We are using here a force which is still as mysterious to us
as electricity was to James Clerk Maxwell. Much earlier Benjamin
Franklin had observed that electricity existed and had done some
interesting things with it: but he had not used it much
275
and he could not control it. A philosopher like Bergson selected
out a thing he called elan vital, a life force. Man is alive, there
must be a force or flow of something which keeps him alive; when
Man is dead there is no force or flow. This is life force in the
Benjamin Franklin stage. As he considered electricity, so did
Bergson consider life force. Now we are up, in dianetics, to the
James Clerk Maxwell stage, or very nearly. We know that certain
equations can be made about life force and we can use those
equations. And we can theorize that "life force" and what has been
called a certain kind of "emotion" are either similar or the same
thing. We may have the wrong theory, but so might James Clerk
Maxwell. Indeed, Maxwell's theories may still be wrong: at least we
have electric lights. In dianetics we are pretty certain that the
majority of tenets are parallels of natural law: these are the big
computations. We are not certain that we have emotion properly
bracketed, but then we shall not be sure until we have actually
taken a dead man and pumped him up with life force again. Short of
this extreme, we are on solid ground with emotion as life force.
We can, for instance, take a girl, examine something of her
background with, let us say, an electro-encephalograph (an
instrument for measuring nervous impulses and reactions)* and then
proceed on the basis of the information so obtained to do one or
two things. The first
* The electro-encephalograph, hypnoscopes, intelligence charts,
tests for various dynamics and so forth are all mechanical aids to
dianetics. They are primarily used in research. They can be used in
practice where available and the skill of the auditor permits, but
they have not been generally in such practical use and at this time
and with this therapy are not needed. Some chemist, one of these
days, is going to invent a perfect "trance-gas," I hope, which will
speed the clearing of a schizophrenic; and some engineer, I trust,
will make something to measure nerve impulses cheap enough to be
used in general practice. Right now, we can get along without them,
no matter how desirable they may be to the future.
276
is inhuman and would not be done, ot course, but she could be made
sick or insane merely by using this data, so obtained. (If the data
is obtained in therapy, it is obtained by actual contact with
engrams and an engram contacted in reverie has lost its power to
aberrate: dianetic therapy thus makes such an eventuality utterly
impossible.) The second and far more important fact to us is that
she can be made to recover, with this same data, all the force,
interest, persistence and tenacity to life and all the physical and
mental well-being possible. If it could not be made to work both
ways, we would not have the answer, at least in workable form.
(Some fiction writer, by the way, if tempted to horrorize on the
first fact, must please recall that the data was obtained with
apparatus which would have staggered Doctor Frankenstein for
intricacy and skill in use and that dianetic therapy contacts the
data at source: the apparatus is necessary to keep from touching
the source for the instant the source is touched by therapy its
power vanishes like yesterday's headlines: so let's have no
"Gaslight" plays about dianetics, please: they'd be technically
inaccurate.)
This is not as simple as electricity in that the switch cannot be
turned off and on. So far as dianetics is concerned, it can only be
turned on. We have a rheostat, then, which will not drop back but
which, when pressed forward, releases more and more dynamic force
into the individual and gives him more and more control over its
use.
Man is intended to be a self-determined organism. That is to say
that as long as he can make evaluations of his data without
artificial compulsions or repressions (held down 7's in an adding
machine) he can operate to maximum efficiency. When man becomes
exteriorly-determined, which is to say compelled to do or repressed
from doing without his own rational consent, he becomes a
push-button animal. This push-button factor is so sharply defined
that an auditor, in therapy, who discovers a key phrase in an
engram (and does not release it)
277
can use that phrase for a little while to make a patient cough or
laugh or stop coughing or stop laughing at the auditor's will. In
the case of the auditor, because he got the data at source -
contacted the engram itself, which robbed it of some power, the
push-button will not last very long, certainly less than two or
three hundred pushes. The whole pain-drive effort at handling human
beings and most of the data accumulated in the past by various
schools has been, unwittingly, this push-button material. If the
engram is not touched at source it is good for endless use, its
power never diminishing. Touched at source, however, the original
recording has been reached and so it loses its power. The "handling
of human beings" and what people have been calling, roughly,
"psychology" have been actually push-button handling of a person's
aberrational phrases and sounds. Children discover them in their
parents and use them with a vengeance. The clerk discovers that his
boss can't stand a full waste basket and so always has one full.
The bosun on a ship finds out one of his sailors cringes every time
he hears the phrase, "fancy-pants" and so uses the word to
intimidate the man. This is push-button warfare amongst aberrees.
Wives may find that certain words make the husband wince or make
him angry or make him refrain from doing something and so they use
these "push-buttons." And husbands find their wives' push-buttons
and keep them from buying clothes or using the car. This defensive
and offensive dueling amongst aberrees is occasioned by push-button
reacting against push-buttons. Whole populaces are handled by their
push-button responses. Advertising learns about push-buttons and
uses them in such things as "body-odor" or constipation. And in the
entertainment field and the song-writing field push-buttons are
pushed in whole racks and batteries to produce aberrated responses.
Pornography appeals to people who have pornographic push-buttons.
Corn-and-games government appeals to people who have "care for
278
me" push-buttons and others. It might be said that there is no
necessity to appeal to reason when there are so many push-buttons
around.
These same push-buttons, because they are 7's held down by pain and
emotion (false data forced into the computer by engrams - and every
society has its own special patterns of engrams), also happen to
drive people insane, make them ill and generally raise havoc. The
only push-button the clear has is whatever his own computer,
evaluating on his experience which itself has been evaluated by the
computer, tells him is survival conduct along his four dynamics.
And so, being no marionette in the hands of careless or designing
people, he remains well and sane.
It is not true, however, that a clear is not emotional, that his
reason is cold, and that he is a self-conscious puppet to his own
computations. His computer works so rapidly and on so many levels
with so many of his computations going on simultaneously but out of
the sight of "I" (though "I" can examine any one of them he
chooses) that his inversion or acute awareness of self is minimal.
Inversion is the condition of the aberree whose poor computer is
wrestling with heavy imponderables and held down 7's in his engrams
such as "I must do it. I just have to do it. But no, I'd better
change my mind."
The computational difference between the clear and the aberree is
very wide. But there is a much grander difference: life force. The
dynamics have, evidently, so much potential force. This force
manifests itself as tenacity to life, persistence in endeavor,
vigor of thought and act and ability to experience pleasure. The
dynamics in a man's cells may be no stronger than those in a cat's
cells. But the dynamics in the whole man are easily greater than
those in any other animal. Assign this as one will, the man is
basically more alive in that he has a more volatile response. By
more alive is meant that his sentient-emotional urge to live is
greater than those found in
279
other life forms. If this were not true, he would not now command
the other kingdoms. Regardless of what a shark or a beaver does
when threatened with final extinction, the shark and the beaver get
short shrift when they encounter the dynamics of Man: the shark
gets worn as leather or eaten as vitamins and the beaver decks a
lady's back.
The fundamental aspect of this is seen in a single reaction.
Animals are content to survive in their environments and seek to
adjust themselves to those environments. That very dangerous animal
- or god - Man has a slightly different idea. Ancient schools were
fond of telling the poor demented aberree that he must face
reality. This was optimum conduct: facing reality. Only it isn't
Man's optimum conduct. Just as these schools made the fundamental
error of supposing that the aberree was unwilling to face his
environment when he was actually, because of engrams, unable to
face it, they supposed that the mere facing of reality would lead
to sanity. Perhaps it does, but it does not lead to a victory of
Man over the elements and other forms. Man has something more: some
people call it creative imagination, some call it this or some call
it that: but whatever it is called, it adds up to the interesting
fact that Man is not content merely to "face reality" as most other
life forms are. Man makes reality face him. Propaganda about "the
necessity of facing reality," like propaganda to the effect that a
man could be driven mad by a "childhood delusion" (whatever that
is) does not face the reality that where the beaver down his ages
of evolution built mud dams and keeps on building mud dams Man
graduates in half a century from a stone and wood dam to make a
mill wheel pond to structures like Grand Coulee Dam, and changes
the whole and entire aspect of a respectable portion of Nature's
real estate from a desert to productive soil, from a flow of water
to lightning bolts. It may not be as poetic as Rousseau desired, it
may not be as pretty as some
280
"nature lover" would desire, but it's a new reality. Two thousand
years ago the Chinese built a wall which would have been visible
from the Moon had anybody been up there to look; three thousand
years ago he had North Africa green and fertile; ten thousand years
ago he was engaged upon some other project; but always he has been
shaping things up pretty well to suit Man.
There's an extra quality at work or perhaps just more of it, so
much more of it that it looks like a new thing entirely.
Now all this is not any great digression from therapy; it is stated
here as an aspect of life force. Where the individual finds himself
"possessed of less and less life force," he is losing some of the
free units somewhere. And the free units of this life force, in a
society or an individual, are the extra surge that is needed to
tame North Africa, divide an atom, or reach the stars.
The mechanical theory here - and recall it is but theory and
dianetics can stand without it - is that there are so many units of
force per individual. These units may be held in common by a group
and may build to higher and higher numbers as "enthusiasm"
increases; but for our purposes, we can consider that Man, as an
individual or a society - both are organisms - has a ready number
to hand for use in any given hour or day. He may manufacture these
life units as required and he may simply have a given supply: that
is beside the point. What is to the point is that he can be
considered, at any hour or day, as just so much alive. Consider
this as his dynamic potential as we can see on our descriptic
earlier.
What happens, then, to this dynamic potential in the aberree? He
has a large quantity of engrams in his bank. We know that these
engrams can sleep for his entire life without being "keyed-in," and
we know that any or all of them can be keyed-in and thereafter wait
for restimulators in the environment to set them into action. We
know that his necessity level can suddenly rise and surmount
281
all these keyed-in engrams, and we know that a high survival
activity can bring him such a chance of pleasure that the engrams
can stay unrestimulated, though keyed-in. And we can suppose that
these engrams, from one period of life to another, can actually
key-out again and stay out because of some vast change of
environment or survival chances.
The usual case, however, is that a few engrams stay keyed-in
continually and are restimulated rather chronically by the
environment of the individual, and that if he changes environment
the old may key out but eventually new ones will key-in.
Most aberrees are in a state of chronic restimulation which, on the
average, starts the spiral dwindling down rather rapidly.
As this pertains to life force, the mechanical action of an engram
on being keyed-in, is to capture so many of these units of life
force. Sudden and sweeping restimulation of the engram permits it
to capture a great many more units of life force. In the average
case, every restimulation captures a greater residue of life force
and holds it. When enthusiasm or impetus aligns the purpose of the
individual toward a true survival goal (as opposed to a pseudo-goal
in the engrams) he recaptures some of these units. But the spiral
is dwindling: he cannot capture back, except in very unusual
circumstances, as many as he has lost into the engram bank.
Thus it can be said, for purposes of this theory of life force
action, that more and more life force units out of an individual's
supply are captured and held in the engram bank. Here they are
perverted in use to counterfeit themselves as dynamic (as in the
manic and the high euphoria case) and force action upon the somatic
and analytical mind. In this engram bank, the life force units are
not available as free feeling or for free action but are used
against the individual from within.
282
An observation here tends to demonstrate this action: the more
restimulated an aberree is, the less free feeling he may possess.
If caught in a manic (highly complimentary pro-survival engram),
his life force is channeling straight through the engram and his
behavior, no matter how enthusiastic or euphoric, is actually very
aberrated: if he has this much life force to be so channeled, then
he can be shown to have even more life force, sentiently directed,
when clear. (This has been done.)
We have demonstrated the parasitic quality of the "demon circuits"
which use pieces of the analytical mind and its processes. This
parasitic quality is common to engrams in other ways. If a man has,
arbitrarily, a thousand units of life force, he has an ability to
channel them, when clear, into highly zestful existence: in a manic
state, with a pro-survival engram in full restimulation, the life
force is directed through an aberrated command and gives him, let
us say, five hundred units of pseudo-dynamic thrust.
In other words, the power is out of the same battery: such an
engram has at best less power than the whole organism, cleared,
would have. (This aspect of the manic or super-personality neurotic
has misled some of the old schools of mental healing into the
thoroughly aberrated and poorly observed belief that insanities
alone were responsible for Man's ability to survive, a concept
which can be disproven in the laboratory simply by clearing one of
these manics or any other aberree.)
The engram uses the same current but perverts it just as it uses
the same analytical mind but usurps it. Not only does the engram
have no life of its own, but it is wasteful as are so many
parasites, of the life force of the host. It is thoroughly
inefficient. If a comparable device were fitted into an electronic
circuit it would merely lead off and make "unalterable" some of the
functions of the equipment which should be left variable and would,
in
283
addition, consume, simply by lengthened leads and bad condensers
and tubes, power supply vital to the machine.
In the human mind, the engram assumes its most forceful "assist"
aspect in the manic, channeling and commanding the organism into
some activity of wild violence and monomanic concentration. The
"super-salesman," the violently buoyant "glad-hander," the
fanatical and apparently unkillable religious zealot are
classifiable as manics. The abundance of "power" in these people,
even when it is as grim as Torquemada's or as destructive as
Genghis Khan's, is an object of admiration in many quarters. The
manic, as will be later covered, is a "pro-survival," "assist"
command in an engram which yet fixes the individual on some certain
course. But an engram is capable only of as much "power" as is
present in the host, just as it is capable of tying up only as much
analyzer as is present.
Let us take a forceful manic who is displaying and functioning on
500 arbitrary units of life force. Let us assume that the entire
being is possessed of 1000 arbitrary units of life force. Suppose
we have here an Alexander. The dynamics of the average person are
unassisted by manics in most cases but are dispersed as a stream of
electrons might be dispersed by a block before them. Here are
scattered activity, scattered thoughts, uncomputable problems, lack
of alignment. In such a person, with 1000 units present, 950 of
those units could be so captured in the engram banks and yet so
thoroughly counteractive that the person displays a functioning
capacity of only 50 units. In the case of Alexander, it could be
assumed, the manic must have been an alignment in a general
direction of his own basic purposes. His basic purpose is a strong
regulator: the manic happens to align with it: a person of great
ability and personal prowess becomes possessed of 500 units via a
manic engram, believes he is a god and goes out and conquers the
known world. He was educated to believe he was a god, his
284
manic engram said he was a god and had a holder in it. Alexander
conquered the world and died at 33. He could hold in his manic only
so long as it could be obeyed: when it could no longer be obeyed,
it changed his valence, became no more a manic and drove him, with
pain, into dispersed activities. The engram, received from his
mother, Olympia, can almost be read even at this late date. It must
have said he would be a joyous god who would conquer all the world
and must keep on conquering, that he must always strive to rise
higher and higher. It was probably a ritual chant of some sort from
his mother, who was a high priestess of Lesbos and who must have
received some injury just before the ritual. She hated her husband,
Phillip. A son who would conquer all was the answer. Alexander may
well have had fifty or a hundred such "assist" engrams, the violent
praying of a woman aberrated enough to murder. Thus he could be
assumed to have conquered until he could no longer stretch a line
of supply for conquering, at which time he, of course, would no
longer be able to obey the engram and its force of pain would turn
on him. The engrams dictated attack to conquer, and they enforced
the command with pain: once conquering could not longer be
accomplished, the pain attacked Alexander. He realized one day he
was dying: within the week he was dead: and at the height of his
power. Such, on a very large scale, is a manic phrase in an engram
at work.
Now let us suppose that Alexander, with only education to turn him
against his father, with only prayers to ask him to conquer the
world, not engrams, had been cleared. Answer: given a sufficient
and rational reason, he would most certainly have been able to
conquer the world and at eighty might well have been alive to enjoy
it. How can we assume this?
The manic with 500 units of directed purpose has been cleared. He
now has 1000 units of sentiently directed purpose. He is exactly
twice as forceful as he was when he
285
was in a forceful manic and his basic purpose may be similar but
now can be realized and will not turn on him the moment he has
reached a goal or failed.
This is clinical, the theory behind life force. It was formulated
in an effort to explain observed phenomena. The theory may be
wrong, the observed data is not. But the theory must be somewhere
close to right because with it could be predicted considerable
phenomena which had not been known to exist before: in other words,
it is a profitable theory. It followed after dianetics was well
formulated, for a strange fact, vital to the therapist, turned up:
the pre-clear advanced in therapy in exact ratio to the amount of
emotional charge released from his reactive bank.
The purpose and persistency of the aberree was hindered in ratio to
the amount of emotional charge within his engram bank. His recovery
of survival potential increased in ratio to the amount of energy
freed from the engram bank. His health increased in ratio to the
amount of energy feed from the engram bank.
The engrams which contained the greatest discharge were those which
centered around loss of imagined survival factors.
Hence, this theory of life force was formulated. Any manic cleared
seemed to demonstrate far more actual power and energy than before
he was cleared. And any "normal" cleared increased in accessible
life force units to compare with any manic cleared.
Undoubtedly further work and observation will refine this theory.
At the present moment, however, it serves. It is one of those
"scientific theories" thrown in to explain an operation or a long
series of observations. In this case it happens to be squarely
aligned with the basic tenets of dianetics, for it predicts data
which can then be found and does not throw out former data
predicted by the basic mathematics and philosophy of dianetics.
286
Here we are speaking, actually, not of this slippery term, emotion,
but, we believe, life force. This life force is considerably
enhanced by success and pleasure in general and is, according to
this theory, augmented in terms of arbitrary units, by pleasure. In
other words, pleasure is a thing which recharges the batteries or
permits them to be recharged and in a clear, far from leading to
softness, leads to renewed activity since indolence is engramic.
Pleasure is a vitally important factor: creative and constructive
endeavor, the overcoming of not unknowable obstacles toward some
goal, the contemplation of past goals reached all combine to
recharge life force. The person, for instance, who has been an
enormous success and then loses that success and so becomes ill is
following no rational cycle but an engramic command cycle. In a way
he has disobeyed an engramic command and having disobeyed, suffers
pain. The "child wonder" who early "burns out" is actually, via
therapy, about as burned out as a banked furnace. Any "child
wonder" is a forced affair: think of the dreams mama must have
poured through his engrams. She's hurt: "Oh, I'll never forgive
myself! If I have ruined my child, I will never forgive myself. My
child, that's to be the world's greatest violinist!" or "Oh, you
brute! You have struck me! You have injured our child. I'll show
you. I'll make him the greatest child pianist in all Brooklyn! He's
to be a beautiful child, a wonder child! And you've struck him, you
brute. Oh, I am going to sit right here until you go away!" (Actual
engrams.) The last computes that the way to get even with papa is
to be the greatest pianist in all Brooklyn. The child is a great
success - musical ear, practice and great "purpose." He gets this
engram restimulated constantly by his mother. But then, one day he
loses a contest, he knows suddenly he is no longer a child, that he
has failed. His purpose wavers. He gets
287
headaches (papa's blow) and is at last "neurotic" and "burned out."
Cleared he went back to being a pianist, not as an "adjusted"
person but one of the best paid concert pianists in Hollywood.
Music aligned with basic purpose.
Again, in another manic example, a patient who had been some time
in therapy - not the first to do this by far - raved that he had
been "turned-on" by dianetics. He was walking about a foot off the
earth, chest punched out and so forth. His glasses suddenly would
not fit him, his eyes were too good. He was a beaming, powerful
case of euphoria. Artificial restimulation had touched a manic
engram, had brought it into key for the first time in his life. He
felt wonderful. The auditor knew that he was due for a complete
come down within thirty-six hours to three days (the usual time)
because an artificial restimulation, by therapy, had tapped the
engram. It happened that his grandmother had told her daughter that
she must not abort the child because someday it might become a
"fine upstanding man or beautiful woman." He was upstanding all
right: it almost strained his back muscles. Another glance at the
engram in therapy and the manic phase was gone.
This manic, then, as in the case of the boy wonder, can be assumed
to have gathered up available life force and suddenly channeled it
along basic purpose lines, making a high level of concentration of
life force. In the case of the pianist his cleared force was well
above the manic force. In the other case, currently in process, a
level has been reached which is approaching the former level and
will surpass it by far.
In the same way an enthusiasm for a project will channel life force
along some purpose line and necessity will suddenly rob back from
engrams enough power to carry an individual far, although he has no
active manics whatever.
Now we come to the heart of this matter: the pro-survival engram.
It is pseudo-survival like all engramic
288
"assist," a mirage which dissolves and leaves burning sands.
Formerly we spoke mainly of contra-survival engrams. These lie
across the dynamics of the individual and his basic purpose.*
The contra-survival engram is, to the dynamics, like a log jam
which dams a necessary river. The dynamic is blocked in some
degree. Any blockage to any one of the four dynamics (or any
section of that spectrum) causes a dispersal of the flow. It does
not make less dynamic, particularly, but it does misdirect it in
the same order that the river, blocked in its natural flow, might
become five streams going in various directions or flood a fertile
pasture it should merely have watered.
The pro-survival engram alleges to assist (but does not actually
assist) the dynamic on its way. It pretends it is the dynamic. In
the analogy of the river, the pro-survival engram would be a canal
which took the river's force and sent it off in some unintended
direction. The pro-survival engram is not a manic; it can and does
contain at times manic phrases.
A contra-survival engram says, "He's worthless, damn him, let's
kill him."
* It happens that there is an additional specialization of the
dynamics in everyone, a sort of built-in personal dynamic. It is a
clinical fact that the basic purpose is apparently known to the
individual before he is two years of age: talent and inherent
personality and basic purpose go together as a package. They seem
to be part of the genetic pattern. Anyone can be revivified
dianetically in the age of two years and consulted about his
purpose in life, and he will come forth with a very specific desire
as to what he wishes to accomplish in life (and two year old
activity as reviewed confirmed it). It will be discovered that his
later life has followed this general pattern wherever he succeeded.
Of fifteen persons examined the basic purpose was found formed at
two years of age, and when cleared these persons used and pursued
that basic purpose.
289
The pro-survival engram says: "I am saving him." If it added: "He
is a darling and a very wonder with the ladies," it would then be a
pro-survival with a manic.
In terms of the descriptic which defines the survival dynamic and
the suppressor earlier in this book, the contra-survival engram
would be part of the suppressor (an aberrated part) and the
pro-survival engram would be part of the dynamic thrust (an
aberrated part).
Neither one of these things is actually a sentient and computable
portion of survival dynamic or suppressor.
The engram (delirium from illness, perhaps) which says, "I will
stay with you, darling, so long as you are sick" is an apparent but
wholly shadow-stuff part of the survival dynamic. But the reactive
mind has no sense of time when restimulated and this engram,
keyed-in and constantly restimulated by some concept in it such as
an odor or a person's voice who may or may not be the original
person, demands that the person who has it be ill just as he was
ill when it was said. This way, according to our moron, the
reactive mind, lies survival: "I had some one taking care of me
when I was ill. I need some one to take care of me. I must be ill."
Here is the basic pattern of all sympathy engrams. Here is the
basic pattern of the engram which will contain the chronic
psycho-somatic illness in any patient. The variety is, of course,
very large but all insist that the individual who has them be ill
in order to survive.
The suppressor-type engram, always contra-survival, can be cut into
restimulation in exactly the same way as the pro-survival engram.
An engram is an engram and all the mechanics are the same. The fact
that the analytical mind cannot time the engram can make any engram
seem omnipresent. Time can "heal" the experiences of the analytical
mind, perhaps, but not the reactive mind which has no time, a fact
which makes time not the Great Healer but the Great Charlatan.
There may be no actuality at all in this suppressor data. It is
false data. Such engrams let
290
an individual, for instance, see a butterfly and then tell him it
is dangerous: he then comes to detest spring because that is the
time he sees butterflies. This engram may say: "You're all against
me. You're against everything I do," which was actually Mama making
a stand against her husband and mother-in-law. It contains a
concept, a recording of the sound of a sewing machine as well. The
individual possessing this engram hears a sewing machine (if this
engram has at some time been keyed-in) at a moment when he is weary
and dull and, looking toward the machine (he never identifies the
actual sound: these engrams protect themselves), sees his wife. She
is the associative restimulator, something his analytical mind,
told to scent danger, picks up as the cause. So he searches around
and finds something he is angry about (something almost "rational")
and begins to tell her she is against him. Or it can be an engram
of such low emotional tone that it is an apathy, and so he sits
down and weeps and moans that she is against him. If, during
"unconsciousness" at birth, the doctor said he'd have to spank him,
the individual possessing this engram howls and gets headaches when
he is spanked and when grown spanks his children as the strongest
suppressor he can think of.
There is a difference, then, between the pro- and contra-engrams,
particularly the real sympathy pro-engram and the contra-engram.
And it is a difference, even if we have been long on the road in
this chapter, which is of vital interest to the auditor.
All the real reluctance he will see in pre-clears during therapy
will come from these sympathy pro-survival engrams. These add up
into some very weird computations. They tell the patient that he
had better not "get rid of it" and so the patient struggles to
retain his engrams. Such an engram is very common. A typical case
is Mama pushing off Papa, who insists he cannot afford a child: the
struggle injures the child and in the "unconsciousness" he
receives, of course, an engram: Mama is refusing to get rid
291
of it. Mama is on baby's side, therefore baby had better do exactly
as Mama says and "not get rid of it." This aligns with purpose, the
deepest purpose, to survive. If he gets rid of his engrams, he will
die because getting rid of it means death, for Mama said she would
die if she got rid of it. Further, on up through life, Mama may
have the nasty habit of telling him when he is ill that she will
"take care of her baby and protect him from his father," and this
makes a new force in the old computation.
Thus we come to the ally computation. This will be the chief and
number one struggle of the auditor, the thing which will most
elusively resist him, the thing which lies down close to the core
of a person.
The ally computation is severe enough that an auditor once said
that a man is not victimized by his enemies, he is murdered by his
friends. Engramically speaking, that is quite true.
The only aberration and psycho-somatic ill the patient will
continually hold to is a pro-survival engram which is part of an
ally computation. That could be written fifty times here without
being stressed enough. It is most important, it is the first thing
which the auditor is going to buck when he enters a case, the first
thing he must discharge if he wishes therapy to go swiftly. He may
have to touch and reduce many contra-survival engrams, for the come
swiftly enough when called, before he can even get an idea of what
the ally computation is. But when he gets an ally computation he
had better run it out and discharge all its emotion or the case
will hang fire.
The ally computation is the reactive mind level moronism that
survival depends on Grandma or Aunt Sue or some serving maid thirty
years dead. The attendants of the individual when he was ill, the
people who begged his pregnant mother to stop trying to abort him,
or fed him or otherwise tried to keep him from being hurt: these
are the allies.
292
The reactive mind operates wholly on two-valued logic. Things are
life or they are death, they are right or they are wrong, just as
the engram wording states. And the personnel of engrams are friends
or enemies. The friends, the allies, mean Life! The enemies mean
Death! There is no middle ground. Any restimulator or associated
restimulator for the pro-survival engram means Life: and any
restimulator or associated restimulator for a contra-survival
engram means Death!
The auditor, of course, may be a really restimulative person (one
who is a pseudo-father, a pseudo-lover of mother before birth,
etc.) but he is always an associative restimulator, the person who
may take away these terribly, horribly vital things, the
pro-survival engrams. The contra-survival engrams outbalance this
factor and, of course, the analytical mind of the pre-clear is
always all for the auditor and the therapy.
The trouble comes when the analytical mind is shut down by
restimulation and the auditor is seeking the ally computation. Then
the pre-clear's reactive mind dodges and avoids.
The ally computation, however, is simple to trace. And it is very
vital to trace it, for this computation may contain the bulk of all
the emotional discharge of the case. Freeing the complete ally
computation wholly before basic-basic is reached is wholly
impossible. But as much life force as possible must be restored to
the pre-clear to make the case work well.
For the ally computation, above all things, encysts the life force
of the individual. Here is caught and held the free feeling, the
very heartbeat of life itself. A pre-clear is only placed in apathy
by ally computations. The body can be almost dead in the presence
of antagonism and still rally and fight. But it cannot fight its
friends. The law of affinity has been aberrated into an entrance
into the reactive engram bank. And that law, even when twisted
293
with the murky shadows of unreason in the reactive mind, still
works. It is a good law. It is too good when the auditor is trying
to find and reduce engrams which are making the pre-clear ache with
arthritis or bleed internally with stomach ulcers. Why can't he
"get rid of" his arthritis? Mama said, when she gracefully fell
over a pig, "Oh, I can't get up! Oh, my poor, poor baby. Oh, my
baby! I wonder if I hurt my poor, poor baby. Oh, I hope my baby is
still alive! Please God let him live. Please God let me keep my
baby. Please!" Only the God to which she prayed was the Reactive
Mind, which makes one of its idiot computations on the basis of
everything is equal to everything. A holder, a prayer for life, a
thoroughly bruised baby's spine, Mama's sympathy, a pig grunt, a
prayer to God, all these things are equal to the reactive mind and
so we have a fine case of arthritis, particularly since our patient
sought "survival" by marrying a girl with a voice just like Mama's
sounded when he was in the womb. Ask him to get rid of his
arthritis? The reactive mind says "NO!" Arthritis is a baby is a
pig grunt is a prayer to God is wife's sympathy is being poor is
Mama's voice and all these things are desirable. He's kept himself
poor and he's kept his arthritis and he married a wife who would
make a harlot blush and this is pro-survival: wonderful stuff,
survival, when the reactive mind computes it! And in the case of
the ulcers, here was baby poked full of holes (Mama is having a
terrible time trying to abort him so she can pretend a miscarriage,
and she uses assorted household instruments thrust into the cervix
to do it) and some of the holes are through and through his baby's
abdomen and stomach: he will live because he is surrounded by
protein and has a food supply and because the sac is like one of
these puncture-proof inner tubes that seals up every hole. (Nature
has been smart about attempted abortion for a long, long time.) It
so happens that Mama in this case was not a monologist, although
most of Mama's activity on this
294
line is a dramatization and has conversation with it; but it also
so happens that Grandma lives next door and she comes over
unexpectedly, shortly after the latest effort to make baby meet
oblivion. Grandma may have been an attempted abortionist in her day
but now she is old and highly moral and besides, this baby is not
giving her any morning sickness: she therefore finds much to
censure when she sees a bloody orangewood stick in the bathroom.
Baby is still "unconscious." Grandma berates Mama: "Any daughter of
mine who would do such a horrible thing should be punished by the
vengeance of God (the principle of, don't do as I do, do as I say,
for who gave Mama this dramatization in the first place?) and
driven through the streets. Your baby has a perfect right to live:
if you don't think you can take care of him, I certainly will. Now
you go right on through with your pregnancy, Eloisia, and when that
baby is born, if you don't want him, you bring him to me! The idea
of trying to hurt that poor thing!" And so, when our bleeding ulcer
case gets born, there is Grandma and there is security and safety.
Grandma is here the ally (and she can become an ally in a thousand
different ways, any of them based on the principle that she talks
sympathetically to baby when he is out like a flounder, and fights
Mama in his favor when he is "unconscious"), and when he grows to
boyhood he can be found placing a large dependency on Grandma, much
to the parental wonder (for they never did anything to little
Roger, not they). And Roger will, when Grandma is dead, develop
bleeding ulcers to get her back.
Whoever is a friend is to be clasped to the bosom with bonds of
steel, says this great genius, the reactive mind, even though it
kills the organism.
The ally computation is a little more than the mere idiot
calculation that anyone who is a friend can be kept a friend only
by approximating the conditions wherein the friendship was
realized. It is a computation on the basis
295
that one can only be safe in the vicinity of certain people and
that one can only be in the vicinity of certain people by being
sick or crazy or poor and generally disabled.
Show an auditor a child who was easily frightened by punishment,
who was not at ease around home and who had allies who seemed more
important to him than the parents (grandparents, aunts, boarders,
doctors, nurses, etc.) and who was sickly, and the auditor can
usually spring into view an attempted abortion background because,
more often than not, it is there. Show an auditor a child who
showed enormous attachment for one parent and detestation for the
other and the auditor can bring out a background wherein one person
wanted to get rid of or hurt the child and the other parent did
not.
The ally computation, then, is important. And it is also very
secret. Trying to get the real allies in a case is often a great
struggle. It may be that a patient had eight or ten of these allies
in some cases and tried desperately to hold to them, and when he
could not, searched and found mates and friends who were
approximations of his allies. A wife, around whom A is continually
ill but whom he will not leave under any circumstances, is usually
a pseudo-ally, which is to say she approximates some mannerism of
the actual ally, has a similar voice or even a similar first name.
B, who will not leave a job and yet who is working far below his
ability level in life, may be there because his boss is a
pseudo-ally; further, he may be working at this job because an ally
had a similar station in life and he is being the ally.
Anything which can so far corrupt a person's life is naturally
going to be difficult to some degree in therapy, for when he is
asked to get rid of his ally computation, it is as likely that he
will give any clue to it as it is that he would have spit in his
ally's face.
These pro-survival engrams containing the ally computation can be
described as those which contain personnel who defended the
patient's existence in moments when
296
the patient conceived that his existence was under attack. This
need not be an actual, rational defense: it may only be that the
content of the engram seems to indictate it; but it can safely be
assumed that the worst ally computations are those when the life of
the patient was defended against attackers by the ally. Most ally
computations have their genesis in the prenatal area.
The ally computation is sought as the first action in any case and
new ally computations are sought throughout a case.
These sympathy pro-survival engrams, which make up the ally
computations, vary only in intensity from the standard pro-survival
engram. A standard pro-survival engram is bad only because someone
has expressed friendship for the patient or another person when he
was "unconscious": it is difficult to discover and clear even when
it actually has been entirely misread - which is to say that the
pro-survival content was intended for another person than the
patient but is only misconstrued by the patient. If the patient is
"unconscious" and somebody says "he is a good guy," actually
meaning another person entirely, the egocentric reactive mind takes
the phrase to have been meant for oneself. In the sympathy
pro-survival engram (the ally computation is composed only of
these) there is an actual defense of the person from danger by some
ally: this can vary from a dramatic scene wherein somebody has been
bent on killing the patient and the ally has arrived, like the
cavalry, in the nick of time, to the incident wherein the patient
was simply saved (or assumed he was being saved) from destruction
such as drowning, being run over, etc. And the sympathy
pro-survival engram is only as good as its content in words, for it
does not rationalize the action. Engrams have been discovered where
the patient was actually being murdered but the content was such
that he was convinced he was being saved: such a case would include
what auditors call a "mutual AA" - a father and mother together
attempting
297
an abortion, AA meaning "attempted abortion" - wherein Mama was in
utter agreement and disposed herself for the operation but became
frightened and began to scream about "her precious baby" in an
effort to save herself from being injured: patients with this sort
of sympathy pro-survival engram can get pretty confused about
mother.
The insidious aspects of the sympathy pro-survival engrams are
several. (1) They are aligned with the fundamental dynamic of
survival in the most literal sense and are therefore aligned with
the purpose of the individual; (2) they are like cysts round which
contra-survival engrams serve as the outer shell; (3) they most
sharply affect the health of the individual and are always the
basic factor beneath the psycho-somatic illness which the
individual displays; (4) they cause the reactive mind (but not the
analytical mind) to resist therapy; and (5) they are the largest
drain upon the life force units.
In (3) above, the pro-survival sympathy engram does more than just
carry forward the injury which becomes the psycho-somatic illness.
Any engram is a bundle of data which includes not only all
perceptics and speech present but also metering for emotion and
state of physical being. The last, the state of physical being,
would be serious enough. This metering says that structure was so
and such at the moment this sympathy pro-survival engram was
received: in the case of an embryo engram, then, the reactive mind,
in forcing the engram back into action, may also force the
structural pattern back upon the body: this occasionally results in
retarded development, embryo-like skin, embryo-type back curvature,
and so forth. The glands themselves, being physical organs, are
also sometimes so suppressed in the reactive mind's effort to
approximate all conditions. The underdeveloped gonads, the
sub-level thyroid, the wasted limb, all these things often come
from sympathy pro-survival engrams. This is so observably the case
that when an individual is being
298
cleared, growth process begins to bring the body up to genetic
blueprint even before the case is completed: the change which takes
place in the physical being of the patient is sometimes so
remarkable and so marked that it is far more startling than the
mere disappearance of a catalogue of psycho-somatic ills such as
coronary, ulcers, arthritis, allergies, and so on.
It would be supposed that anything powerful enough to twist the
physical blueprint and keep the body from developing or make it
keep on growing where it should have stopped would resist any
therapy. This is true only in a most limited sense. Once one is
aware of what suppresses a case, one can go about vanquishing the
suppressors because a pro-survival engram, unlike a contra-survival
engram, has an Achilles heel.
The most workable answer now known to dianetics lies in the
principle of life force units and a technique for throwing them
back into circulation. The pro-survival engram collects and holds
such units, according to this theory, and collapses when its power
to hold units is broken.
Entering a case, then, where one has a chronic psycho-somatic
illness (and what case doesn't have, even though it is as slight as
an occasional fit of sneezing or hiccoughs), the auditor first
scouts it, going through a returning routine to find out how early
he can get for material, how the state of the sonic recall is, how
occluded is the youth of the person, and so forth. When he has made
this survey, he begins to make his computation on the case: first,
was the child happy with both father and mother, and if not, where
was the child happiest (there will be where the allies live). Was
either parent an unreasonably powerful factor in shaping the
thinking powers of the child: here again may be an ally, even if a
poor one. Did the patient have grandparents or other relatives; how
did he feel toward them? All this data will be more or less
occluded and
299
warped by demon circuits and is about as reliable as the data this
patient will inevitably try to get from "loopy" parents or
relatives, who not only do not know what happened to him but might
be most anxious not to have anything discovered.
What really did happen? Don't let patients ask relatives or parents
anything if you can help it, for these are restimulators in the
extreme and never have any data you can use; the patient is just
trying to use them as by-pass circuits to avoid the pain of
recalling things himself. When the case is finished he will no
longer want to hound these people and if you want a check for
research reasons, get one of the relatives and put him through
therapy.
The auditor now has some slight idea of who the allies may be. And
here comes the Achilles heel of the ally computation:
Any ally computation may have included the loss of the ally. And
the loss of the ally may be the trigger which will start chain
fission. For what we are going to try to do is blow off or
discharge as many life force units as possible from the reactive
engram bank and weaken it. Every charge we get from the bank will
reinforce the ability of the patient to carry on in existence and
will aid his analytical mind to get into the engram bank. Hence,
discharging these frozen units is a vital and important part of
therapy and the condition of the case will improve in direct ratio
to the number of these units so discharged.
Consider these life units as free life energy: an engram capturing
them can set itself up, for all intent, as a life force. It is then
an entity and only then. The demon circuits, the valence walls
(which compartment the analyzer, so to speak, and bring about
multi-valence), the force and power of the engram itself are all
dependent, according to theory and as observed in practice, upon
usurped life units.
To free these units is the primary task of therapy: to relieve pain
from the engrams is the secondary task; to make
300
the patient comfortable during therapy does not even rank, though
there is no need he should be uncomfortable. The dual character of
therapy, then, is actually two sections of the same thing:
relieving engrams. There is this dual nature in engrams, however,
that they have painful emotion (where that means usurped life
force) and physical pain (where that means pain of injury, illness,
etc.).
To get as early as possible as fast as possible and find
basic-basic is the direction and intent of therapy in its first
stages: to accomplish this (when it cannot be done immediately
merely by returning and finding basic-basic which can and always
should be tried) one relieves the case and robs the engram bank by
releasing life units (painful emotion captured them) from the ally
computations.
In brief, the entire intent and act of therapy is to find the
earliest engram and erase it and then proceed to erase all other
engrams as engrams so they can no longer be discovered (they refile
in the standard bank but it takes a genius to find them there and a
search of hours and hours: hence, to the auditor they can be said
to have "erased" for they are no longer engrams and are now
experience). The first, last and only job of the auditor is to find
the earliest engrams available and erase them. That cannot be said
too often or too strongly.
The various ways to accomplish this are the techniques and arts of
therapy. Anything which brings about this erasure of engrams in
place and their refiling as experience is useful and legitimate
whatever it includes. An engineer intends to remove a mountain
which is in the way of a river: his intent and all his effort is
directed toward moving that mountain; the ways and means employed
by him to move that mountain, by steam shovel, hydraulic rams or
dynamite are the art and techniques applied to do the job.
There are three degrees of knowledge in our task: (1) In dianetics
we know the goal: we know the results which come about when that
goal is attained; (2) We know the
301
character of the obstructions between us and the goal but of the
exact character of the obstruction we can never learn too much; (3)
The art and technique of removing the obstruction between us and
the goal are legitimate only by the test of whether or not they
remove the obstruction.
The method of attack on the problem can always be improved by
learning more about the character of the factors in the problem,
and by learning new arts and techniques which can be applied to the
problem, and by studying to improve our skill in practicing
existing arts and techniques. The currently existing art and
technique is not to be considered optimum merely because it does
the job. The time and ease of work could be shortened by new
techniques or advancing skills for old techniques.
All this is interjected so that dianetics, unlike Aristotelian
logic and natural history, will be recognized as an advancing,
changing science. It is interjected at this place because no
auditor should just sit back with this routine and never try to
improve the routine.
Very well: this is the routine: it works but it can never be made
to work too quickly or too well:
(1) Place the patient in reverie and scout into the prenatal area
to see if engrams are available for lifting without further work.
If they are there and can be found, take the charge out of them and
erase them if possible. Do not try to erase anything as remote from
basic-basic as birth unless the file clerk insists on presenting
birth. In other words, get the subject into the prenatal area and
look for the earliest engrams. Do not ask for specific instances,
particularly for something like birth, just take whatever is
presented. If you can't get back early, take step two.
(2) Scout the patient's life, while he is in reverie (do this in
any event sooner or later if the case slows down but only if it
slows down to a point where early engrams are either not reducing
or are without any emotion). Establish in this scout whomever may
have been depended upon by the patient and be suspicious always
that he has not told you
302
the really important allies, but do not tell him you are
suspicious.
(3) Find out when the patient lost any ally through death or
departure. Approach this moment and one way or another, by getting
earlier material and this incident or getting just this incident,
discharge the sorrow of loss out of the incidents. Treat any
incident in which the ally departs or the patient is separated from
the ally as an engram and erase it accordingly or run it until it
has no "charge" of sorrow on it. If the "charge" holds, suspect an
early moment of sorrow about this ally and find that and treat it
as an engram.
(4) First, last and always, the job is to get basic-basic and then
ever afterwards the currently existing earliest moment of pain or
sorrow, and to erase every incident as it is advanced by the file
clerk or found by repeater technique.
(5) Any incident that hangs fire always has a similar incident
earlier, and the patient should be taken earlier for the prior
incident when an engram will not "reduce" on recounting.
(6) At any time the engrams start to become emotionless in tone,
even though they reduce, suspect another ally computation and,
early or late in the patient's life, get it and reduce it at least
until the emotional discharge is gone. Do not get everything in a
case restimulated by changing from an unreduced incident to
something which looks more fruitful, but reduce everything in view
before you go looking for a new sorrow charge.
(7) It is better to reduce an emotionless early engram than it is
to upset the case by hounding him for an ally computation when a
cunning search fails to reveal none in sight. Erasing early
emotionless engrams will eventually bring a new ally computation
into sight if you occasionally look for it.
(8) Consider that any hold-up on a case, any unwillingness to
cooperate, stems from ally computation.
(9) Treat all demon circuits as things held in place by
303
life force units absorbed into the bank and address the problem of
demon circuits by releasing charges of sorrow.
(10) Consider that loss by death or departure of an ally is
identical with a death of some part of the patient and that the
reduction of a death or departure of an ally will restore that much
life back to the patient. And remember that great sorrow charges
are not always death or departure but merely may be a sudden
reversal of stand by the ally.
Always keep in mind that that person who most nearly identifies
himself with the person of the patient, such as a sympathetic
mother or father or grandparent or relative or friend, is
considered by the reactive mind to be a part of the person himself
and that anything happening to this sympathetic character can be
considered to have happened to the patient. In such a case, where
an ally has been found to have died of cancer, you may occasionally
find the patient to have a sore or scaly place where he supposed
the ally's cancer to have been.
The reactive mind thinks in identities only. The sympathetic
pro-survival engram identifies the patient with another individual.
The death or loss (by departure or denial) of the other individual
is therefore a reactive mind conviction that the patient has
suffered some portion of death.
Emotional charges may be contained in any engram: the emotion
communicates, in the same tone level, from the personnel around the
"unconscious" person into his reactive mind. Anger goes into an
engram as anger, apathy as apathy, shame as shame. Whatever people
have felt emotionally around an "unconscious" person should be
found in the engram which resulted from the incident. When the
emotional tone of personnel in an engram is obviously angry or
apathetic from the word content and yet the patient, recounting,
does not feel it, there is something somewhere which has a valence
wall between
304
the patient and the emotional tone, and that valence wall is nearly
always broken down by the discovery of an engram with a sorrow
charge sometime earlier or later in a patient's life.
The only legitimate reason for entering later portions of a
person's life before the prenatal area has been well exhausted is
search for sorrow discharges occasioned by the death, loss or
denial by an ally. And by "denial," we mean that the ally turned
into an active enemy (real or imaginary) of the patient. The
counterpart of the ally, the pseudo-ally, is a person whom the
reactive mind has confused with the real ally. The death, loss or
denial by a pseudo-ally can contain a sorrow charge.
According to theory, the only thing which can lock up life units is
this emotion of loss. If some method existed of doing nothing but
freeing all life units, the physical pain could be neglected.
A release is brought about, one way or another, by freeing as many
life units as possible from periods of loss with minimal address to
actual engrams.
The loss of an ally or pseudo-ally need contain no other physical
pain or "unconsciousness" than the loss itself occasions. This is
serious enough. It makes an engram.
Any person who is suddenly discovered to be occluded in a patient's
life can, with some reliability, be considered an ally or
pseudo-ally. If, either while remembering or returning, large
sections of a patient's association with another person are
missing, that person can be called an occluded person. It is a
better guarantee of ally status if the occlusion surrounds the
death of the person or a departure from or a denial by that person.
It is possible for occlusion to take place, also, for punishment
reasons; which is to say, the occluded person may also be an arch
enemy: in such a case, however, any memory present will concern the
death or defeat or illness of the occluded person. Occlusion of a
person's funeral in the memory of a
305
patient would theoretically label that person an ally or
pseudo-ally. Recollection of the funeral of a person but occlusion
of pleasant association might tend to mean that the person was an
enemy. Such rules are tentative. But it is certain that any
occlusion means that a person had a vast and unrevealed
significance in a patient's life which should be explained.
It may be remarked at this point that the recovery of the patient
will depend in large measure on the life units freed from his
reactive bank. This is a discharge of sorrow and may be quite
violent. The usual practice is to "forget" such things and the
"sooner forgotten, the sooner healed." Unfortunately this does not
work: it would be a happy thing if it did. Anything forgotten is a
festering sore when it has despair connected with it. The auditor
will find that every time he locates that arch denyer, "forget it,"
he will get the engram it suppressed; when he can't locate the
engram and yet has found a somatic, a "forget it" or "don't think
about it" or "can't remember it" or "don't remember it" or some
other denyer will be sitting there in the context of the engram.
Forgetting is such unhealthy business that when a thing has been
"put out of mind," it has been put straight into the reactive
engram bank and in there it can absorb life units. This "loopy"
computation, that forgetting things makes them bearable, is
incredible in view of the fact that the hypnotist, for instance,
gets results with a positive suggestion when he puts one of these
denyers on the end of it. That has been known now for a great many
eons: it was one of the first things the author was taught when he
studied Asiatic practices; from India it long ago filtered to
Greece and Rome and it has come to us via Anton Mesmer: it is a
fundamental principle in several mystic arts: its mechanics were
known even to the Sioux medicine man. Yet people at large, hitherto
unguided about it, and perhaps because they lacked any real remedy,
believed that the
306
thing to do with sorrow was to "forget it." Even Hippocrates
remarks that the whole of an operation is not finished until the
patient has recounted the incident to all of his friends in turn,
and while this is inadequate therapy, it has been, like the
Confessional, a part of popular knowledge for lo, these many ages:
yet people persist in suppressing sorrow.
The auditor will many times in his activity be begged by a patient
"not to talk to me about so-and-so's death." If he is foolish
enough to heed this tearful plea when the patient is in reverie,
then the auditor is actively blocking a release. That is the first
incident he should get!
Perhaps it would be bad, without dianetic technique, to approach
such things; but with our art it is easy not only to enter the
actual moment of the incident but to then recount it until the
tears and wailings are but echoes in the case book. Treating that
loss like an engram, recounting it until it is no longer painful
emotionally, is to give back to the patient vitality he has not had
since the incident took place. And if the incident does not ease on
a dozen recountings, slide back down its sorrow track, just as you
would with any other engram, and find earlier and earlier moments.
A patient starting to discharge sorrow at the age of fifty may find
himself, two hours later, down in the basic area recounting the
primary moment of sorrow, at the moment when the lost ally first
became an ally. If the auditor can get the whole chain on any one
ally, exhausting sorrow from it from later to earlier, taking all
the sorrow he can get from every incident and stripping the entire
series of engrams of their charge, he may, in a few hours work, rid
the case of enough emotional charge to then begin an orderly
erasure.
Please observe this difference: the Achilles heel of the ally
computation can be considered late on the chain of incidents which
concern that ally, which is to say that we
307
have a funnel here, upright in time, which can be entered late and
followed early: the Achilles heel of the contra-survival engram
chain is in the earliest incidents, exactly the reverse of the
emotionally painful engrams.
To regain out of the engram bank life units so that enough free
emotion is available to release or clear a case, start with late
ally or pseudo ally losses and work back earlier.
To release the physical pain of the individual from the engram
bank, start early (as close to conception as you can get) and work
through to late. Physical pain in the contra-survival chain can
suppress painful emotion in the pro-survival chain.
Painful emotion in the pro-survival chain can suppress physical
pain in the contra-survival engrams.
If you were to draw a picture of the prenatal area of the reactive
engram bank, it would appear somewhat as follows: a long line drawn
horizontally, representing time, would have dark blots on it
representing engrams; one end of the line would represent
conception, the other end birth: above this line would lie a dark
area, like a heavy mist, extending from one end of the line to the
other and dropping down almost to it: above this dark mist would
lie another horizontal line, the apparent time track along which
the patient returns. The first long line is the actual time track;
the mist is painful emotion; the uppermost dark line is what the
patient mistakes and uses for his time track.
The painful emotion is, of course, occasionally tapped in the
prenatal area itself, and the opportunity of dispersing it by so
discovering prenatal emotional charges should never be overlooked
by the auditor: indeed, once much of the later life painful emotion
is discharged, a great deal of painful emotion can be found amongst
the early engrams. The better part of this mist, and the first part
the auditor often contacts, is in late life: although it
originates, as charge, in late life, it can be said to lie on this
prenatal area.
308
Moments of loss, the loss by death or departure of any of the
patient's allies, and the loss of an ally because he turns against
the patient, trap these emotional charges and intervene them
between the patient and actuality. Although the moment of loss was
post-birth, in infanthood, childhood, adolescence, adulthood, it
was retroactive in suppressing early engrams.
This aspect of painful emotion is a key-in of the early incidents
by the moment of loss. In other words, a moment of great loss
suppresses the individual on the tone scale to a point where he
approximates the level of early engrams and these, keyed-in, hold
the units of charge thereafter.
Life units so seized are held and are the life of engrams. As in
electricity, a positive charge glances away from a positive charge:
like charges repel each other. The analyzer, operating, it can be
said for analogy, on the same kind of charge as that contained in
the engram, glances away from the engram, which remains thereby
unknown and intact.
As the individual returns into the area of the early engrams -
which are held keyed-in by virtue of the seized charges from late
incidents - he can quite comfortably pass by enormous quantities of
aberrative material without even suspecting it is present. However,
when the late moments of painful emotion are released, the auditor
can go immediately into the early area and find engrams of physical
pain which he had not hitherto been able to uncover.
Actually the late moments and the early moments are both engrams:
the news or observation of loss shuts down the analyzer and
everything which then enters it is engramic and is filed in the
reactive mind. Because of sight and a memory of activity which is
connected to the present, all of which serves to keep an individual
oriented, a person can often recall the moment of loss, whereas he
cannot recall prenatal material, for he lacked in that area any
connection with orienting factors which
309
would impinge themselves on the analyzer. While the prenatal infant
definitely, especially in the late stages, has an analyzer,
experience and memory are not coordinated and the existence of
engrams is not then suspected by the analytical mind. This is not
true of the later periods of life, particularly those after speech
has been learned and is being used. The fact of the matter is that
this later-life ability to recall surrounding circumstances without
feeling any extremity of pain also serves to hide here the
existence of an actual engram: a person feels that he knows all
about such a moment of loss analytically: actually he has no
contact with the engram itself, which contains a moment of
"unconsciousness" of a lesser depth than that, for instance, of the
anesthetic variety. Childhood losses of allies, however, can be so
entirely occluded that the allies themselves are not remembered.
The auditor will find very late engrams easy to contact. And he
will also discover something else. The patient may not be, as he is
returning to such a moment of loss, occupying his own body. This
"phenomenon" has been known for several thousand years and even the
latest mention of it merely said that it was "interesting" without
making any further effort to find out why a person, returned to an
area in hypnotic regression, sometimes could be found within
himself (which is to say, seeing things as though he were himself)
and sometimes saw things there and himself included as part of the
scenery (as though he had a detached view). Because we have
discovered that a natural function of the mind is to return in an
awake state to past incidents does not alter the fact that we
encounter aspects hitherto known as mysterious "phenomena" of drug
dreams and hypnotism. We are not by any means practicing hypnotism;
so this means that hypnotism and dianetics use similar abilities of
the mind - it does not mean that such abilities belong in the field
of hypnotism. And one of the various
310
aspects of the return is that it occasionally - or, in some
patients, continually - encounters areas where the patient is
"outside" his body. These exteriorized views of self have two
explanations. One of them is valence, whereby the patient has taken
unto himself the identity of another person and sees the scene
through that other person's eyes; the other is exteriorization, in
which painful emotion is present in such quantity that the patient
cannot occupy himself. That painful emotion may stern from past or
future incidents to the moment when the patient is witnessing a
scene to which he has been dianetically returned. On several
recountings of the scene, the patient will come nearer and nearer
to an occupation of his body until at last he sees the scene from
within his body. At times no emotional discharge (tears, etc.)
takes place until the patient has gone over the incident several
times and until he is within his own body. It is as though,
returned, he had to scout the ground to find out if it was safe to
occupy himself. If, after a few recountings, no discharge such as
tears takes place, then the emotion is suspended elsewhere, earlier
or later but usually much later. Exteriorization because of emotion
is the same as exteriorization because of physical pain to all
intents and purposes of the auditor. When he encounters a case
which, all the way up and down the track, is continually exterior,
he should address his skill to the release of moments of painful
emotion.
All patients seem to have the idea that time heals and that some
incident of ten or twenty years ago no longer has any effect upon
them. Time is a Great Charlatan, not a great healer, as has been
remarked. Time by the processes of growth and decay alters, and
environment introduces new faces and activities and thus alters the
restimulators: a moment of painful emotion in the past has, like
any other engram, its own restimulators and is, in addition,
holding keyed-in all the early engrams which relate to it so that
their restimulators also work: every
311
restimulator has a set of restimulators which are associated to it
by the analytical mind, which cannot see the real restimulator. All
this makes a complex pattern but complex in therapy only if one
does not know the source of aberration. If the auditor returns the
patient to any moment of painful emotion in the past and runs it as
an engram, he will discover that all its original charge is present
and will discharge.
He will usually find the patient shying away from any thought of
going into the actual engram: the pre-clear may attempt to detail
all manner of bric-a-brac, his own thoughts, the reasons why it no
longer is painful to him, and so forth. These thoughts and data
before the fact or after it are about as much use in running an
engram as a dissertation about "childhood illusions" was to the
problem of removing aberrations from the human mind. The auditor
who will listen to these "reasons" and "I remembers" in lieu of
running the engram itself will not get his patient well and will
waste valuable hours of therapy. An auditor who will do this
belongs to the hand-patting school of thought which believes
sympathy has value. He does not belong in an auditor's chair. It is
wasted time, wasted valuable time, to listen to anything the
patient thought or said or did or believed when the patient should
be going into the engram and running it as an engram. Certainly
there is a necessity to find out, from the patient's talk, where
that engram is, but once it is located, all else is dross.
Take a moment when a child is notified of his parents' deaths. The
auditor learns that the parents died when the child was two years
of age. He can then deduce, without further trouble or questions,
that somebody must have told his patient about the death of the
parents, that there was a precise moment when the patient, then an
infant, learned about that death. Recounting the matter in present
time - without being returned, the patient is using all the
intervening years as buffers against the painful emotion. The
auditor returns the patient,
312
without further preamble than the usual routine of putting the
patient into reverie, to the moment when the patient learned of the
death of the parents. The patient may do a little fumbling to
orient himself in the past, but shortly he will have a contact with
the instant somebody informed him. Be assured, if that child loved
his parents at all, that an engram exists here. The engram starts
at the first moment the child is informed, when the analyzer can be
expected to have shut down. The end of the engram is a moment, an
hour, a day or even a week later when the analyzer again turned on.
Between the first moment of analytical attenuation and a regain of
analytical power is the engram. The first minutes of it are the
most severe. Running an hour of it (an hour of incident, not of
therapy) should be more than ample. Most auditors run only the
first few minutes several times to get a test of whether or not
there is going to be any emotional discharge. Run such a period of
loss which must contain painful emotion exactly as you would run a
period of physical pain and "unconsciousness" with another source.
For the period of painful emotion is an "unconscious" period just
as certainly as if the patient had been struck with a club. If the
emotion in this period can be contacted with four or five
recountings (each time starting at the beginning, making sure the
patient is returned and in contact with all perceptics of the
incident, and running it for what it is, an engram) then the engram
should be recounted until the emotion in it is gone, until the
patient is bored with it or even cheerful about it. If, after four
or five recountings the patient is still well exteriorized, still
has not contacted any emotion, then the charge is suspended
elsewhere, either earlier or later, and tries should be made in
terms of other losses, no matter how many years from the unyielding
incident, to get a discharge. After a discharge is blown off
elsewhere the incident first addressed, as in the case of the
two-year-old who lost his parents, may discharge. It is certain
that sooner or later such an incident will discharge and it
313
is also certain that the case will not make much progress in
getting any bulk of physically painful engrams until such a severe
incident is well discharged.
Discharges are contacted, often, in very unlikely places. Somewhere
they contact the surface enough so that a touch by the returned
patient will permit the units to free, permit engrams to key-out
and come into view on the time track in their proper places.
The engram bank becomes severely distorted by painful emotion and
the areas of painful emotion become severely distorted by physical
pain elsewhere. The filing system of the reactive mind is bad. The
file clerk is able to recover and deliver to the auditor only so
many painful emotion engrams or physical pain engrams at a time.
They may be disordered in their positions on the track, which is to
say, the auditor may contact an early physically painful engram
(always his most important job) then contact one in mid-prenatal,
then one post-birth, and thereafter no other engrams of the
physical pain variety seem to be present (engrams of the physical
variety which contain knock-outs by accidents, illnesses, surgery
or injury). This does not mean that the case is stalemated or that
the patient is cleared. It more likely means that there are
incidents of the other engram variety (painful emotion, stemming
from loss by death, departure or reversal of allies) which can now
be contacted. The auditor then looks for and exhausts the emotional
discharge from the loss engrams, usually later in life. These, with
the units freed back in circulation, allow earlier physical pain
engrams to appear and the auditor reduces each one of these he can
contact. As soon as he can no longer find physically painful
engrams, he goes back to a search for painful emotion engrams and
so forth alternately as necessary. The mind, being a
self-protecting mechanism, will sooner or later block the patient
from physical pain engrams if painful emotion engrams are ready;
and it will block him from painful
314
emotion engrams as soon as physical pain engrams are ready.
Start late to get painful emotion and work back early. Start early
to get physical pain engrams and work toward late. And whenever any
engram is contacted, run it until it is no longer troublesome in
any way to the patient or is entirely gone (refiled, but gone for
all the auditor and patient will be able to tell at the moment). If
an incident, after many recountings, shows no signs of lightening
(somatic decreasing or emotion either not expressed or not
decreasing), only then should the auditor seek another incident. In
a painful emotion engram the charge is often later, in a physical
pain engram the suspension is invariably caused by the existence of
the same phrase in an earlier physical pain engram which can be
contacted, and in such case the auditor should go back over the
phrases which brought him to the somatic until he finds a contact
and a lift of the engram.
It should be extremely clear by this time that rationalization*
about action or conduct or conditions does not advance therapy and
is of no use beyond occasional aid in locating engrams. It should
be equally clear that no amount of explanation or hand-patting or
evaluation by the auditor is going to advance the erasure of the
engrams themselves. It should be plain that what a person thought
at the time of the incident was not aberrative. It should be clear
that painful emotion puts the compartments and demon-circuits into
the mind and that the physical engrams hold the aberration and
physical pain in the body.
This entire operation is mechanical. It has nothing to do with
justified thought or shame or reasons. It has only to do with
exhausting the engram bank. When the bulk of painful emotion is
gone, the person is released; when
* Justified thought - the excuses one makes to explain his
irrational behavior.
315
the engram bank is exhausted of content, the person is cleared.
The mind is like a fine piece of equipment: as itself and as a
mechanism it is almost impossible to destroy except by removing
some of its parts: engrams do not remove parts of the mind, they
add unnecessary things to it. Envision a beautiful, stream-lined
machine, operating perfectly - that would be the mind without the
additions of pain and painful emotion. Now envision this beautiful
machine in the hands of a crew of moronic mechanics: they start to
work around it and do not know that what they do affects the
machine at all. Now they see that something is wrong with the
machine and are all unwitting that they have placed various
assorted monkey-wrenches, hatpins, old cigar butts and yesterday's
garbage into it and around it. Their first thought is to put
something new on or in the machine to correct its operation and
they add arbitrary gadgets to it in order to patch up the machine's
operation. Some of these gadgets appear to help the machine
(sympathy engrams) and can be used, in the presence of the
remaining bric-a-brac, by the machine itself to help its stability.
The morons interrupt the fuel supply (painful emotional engrams)
or, like the Japanese captain who beat the car with a switch when
it would not go, try to goad the machine (punishment drive) and so
add more trouble. At last this machine appears to be a hopeless
wreck, being almost hidden beneath everything added to it and
thrust into it, and the moron mechanics shake their heads and say,
"Let's put something else on it or it will stop!" They do and the
machine appears to stop (goes insane).
In dianetics, a workmanlike job of clearing away the debris in and
around the machine is performed. It is not done by adding any more
debris. The moron mechanics (the content of the reactive mind) seem
dismayed at this action, but the machine itself, suddenly aware
that something is being done for it which will actually bring it
into
316
good running operation again, begins to help. The more debris which
is cleared, the better it runs and the less force the moron
mechanics have. The course of improvement should be and is rapid.
We can stop when the machine is running at least as well as the
"normal" machine (a release) or we can stop when we have all the
debris out of the machine (a clear). When we have effected a clear,
we behold something which has never been beheld before because it
never before existed in a debris-free state: a perfect machine,
stream-lined, powerful, shining, able to adjust and care for all
its own operations without further therapeutic assistance of any
kind.
317
CHAPTER VIII
Some Types of Engrams
Two examples of each kind of engram are given, so that the auditor
can clearly understand their differences:
CONTRA-SURVIVAL ENGRAM
This is any kind of engram which lies across the dynamics and has
no alignment with purpose: Fight between mother and father shortly
after conception. Father strikes mother in stomach. She screams
(first percepts are pain, pressure, sound of blow and scream) and
he says, "God damn you, I hate you! You are no good. I'm going to
kill you!" Mother says, "Please don't hit me again. Please don't.
I'm hurt. I'm hurt. I'm frantic with pain!" Father says, "Lie there
and rot, damn you! Good-bye!"
In this engram we have a severe aberrative situation, first,
because it is early; second, because its content says the person
who has it is hurt and frantic; third, because it has a holder and
is therefore apt to become chronic ("Lie there"); fourth, because
it can produce disease ("and rot"); fifth, because it has religious
connotation about God and being damned; sixth, because it gives the
individual a feeling other people are no good ("you" applies to
other people, ordinarily); seventh, because it has an emotional
tone, by content, of hostility ("I hate you") and eighth, because
the individual, post-birth, has to live with these restimulative
persons, his father and mother. It has other additional effects,
giving, like all engrams, two additional and unnecessary valences
to the
318
individual, one of which, the mother's, is a coward valence and the
other, the father's, a bully valence. The individual may dramatize
this in several ways: if he does not dramatize it, he feels the
pain (as he would then be in his own valence) whenever it is
restimulated; if he dramatizes the mother, he will feel the pain
she received, which is a blow in the stomach (whereas his own was
on his head and heart); if he dramatizes the father, he will be in
trouble with society, to say nothing of his own wife and children.
There is no winning with any engram of any kind but so long as a
person has engrams, some kinds, the sympathy engram particularly,
serve to hold away antagonistic engrams.
The second contra-survival example is a morning sickness engram
where the mother is vomiting so violently that the compression on
the child is severe and renders it "unconscious." The mother is
vomiting and gasping and saying to herself between spasms, "Oh, why
was I ever born! I knew I shouldn't have let him come in me. I knew
it, I knew it. It was wrong but he had to do it anyway. Ugh, how
nasty. Sex is nasty. It's horrible. I hate sex. I hate men. I hate
them. Oh, ugh, it won't come up, it won't come up. I am so sick at
my stomach and it won't come up."
In this engram we have something a woman might dramatize if she
were pregnant but which a man could never dramatize as pregnancy
but only by being sick at his stomach. Much morning sickness seems
to be an aberration stemming from engrams: somewhere back in time
some mother may have vomited from food poisoning and started the
whole thing - perhaps in the days when Man was still in trees. Now
note that the mother is throwing up, that the content of her
stomach is being regurgitated: the engram, however, says that it
won't come up: when this is dramatized with the individual in his
own valence, he experiences pressure on him and "unconsciousness"
and thus such a dramatization is impossible; when this is
dramatized it must be dramatized
319
as the mother but the action is not dramatized so much as the
command and we get a condition where the individual with such an
engram, when he is sick, cannot vomit. The command of the engram is
more important than the action people take in it. On a reactive
level there is no rationality. If this were on a conscious level,
where it would not be aberrative, of course, the action could be
mimicked and then would contain actual vomiting, the action on the
conscious level being more important than the word content.
In therapy, when we encounter this engram, we may have difficulty
entering it because it says that "I shouldn't have let him come in
me," which is a denyer. We also find, with the "It won't come up,"
a holder. The engram will most certainly lift the moment these
words and the somatic lift, and these words could not interrupt the
engram. If the engram does not lift, it is because there is a
previous engram with much the same content (the aberree has a
pattern of dramatization which he repeats over and over and over,
giving people around him many incidents which are more or less
alike except in their point in time). This could be restimulated in
the environment (but not in therapy) to a point where it would
cause madness, for "it" may also refer to the child, who
identifying himself with the word "it," then cannot rise to present
time. In therapy the engram is somewhat drained of power just by
being touched with the returned analytical mind; further, the
auditor discovers the patient is not moving on the track and a
scout of the situation soon discovers the holder, for the patient
will sooner or later say he "can't come up" even if the auditor has
not guessed it.
In the aberrative sphere, this engram would probably put a heavy
block across the second dynamic and we would find the person in
whose reactive mind it was being frigid, prudish and sharp with
children (all of which go together in various combinations).
Further, we
320
would find an apprehension that "he" was going to have to do
something when he found out it was wrong. In the psycho-somatic
sphere it might cause headaches during or because of coitus or a
tendency to nausea whenever coitus was performed. Any of the
phrases of this engram, like any other phrases in any other engram,
would tend to give him both the somatic and the aberration,
providing, of course, the individual was in a state of low
analytical power as found in weariness or slight illness. Thus,
this one is waiting until somebody says during a future
"unconsciousness" period, preferably in a voice like the mother's
would sound through the walls of the abdomen and womb, "Ugh, how
nasty!" or some other phrase to key it in. "Nastier," by the way,
would not key it in: "ugly" despite a similar syllable to "Ugh"
would not key it in. The sound of vomiting itself probably would
key it in.
PRO-SURVIVAL ENGRAM
This could be any engram which, by content only, not by any real
aid to the individual containing it, pretended to assist survival.
Let us take a coitus engram: mother and father are engaged in
intercourse which, by pressure, is painful to the unborn child and
which renders him "unconscious" (common occurrence, like morning
sickness, usually present in any engram bank). Mother is saying,
"Oh, I can't live without it. It's wonderful. It's wonderful. Oh,
how nice. Oh, do it again!" and father is saying, "Come! Come! Oh,
you're so good. You're so wonderful! Ahhh!" Mother's orgasm puts
the finishing touch on the "unconsciousness" in the child. Mother
says, "It's beautiful." Father, finished now, says, "Get up,"
meaning she should take a douche (they do not know she is pregnant)
and then begins to snore.
Obviously this is a valuable incident because one "cannot live
without it." Furthermore, "it's beautiful," also, "it's wonderful."
But it is also extremely painful. It
321
cannot be followed because it has first something which beckons
part of the mind back, "Come!" and then, later, tells it to "Get
up." Things that are "beautiful" and "wonderful" can cause our
patient, not in therapy, to have an orgasm when she looks at
beautiful and wonderful things, providing they have been so
labeled.
Dramatization of this can be in either the father valence or the
mother valence: to dramatize it in the personal valence would mean
physical pain. Thus, the individual holding this, will be found,
varied only by his other coitus engrams, to be, as father,
disgusted after the act and telling his partner to "Get up." The
emotion is contained in how the words, "Get up," were spoken: this
is a telegraphed emotion out of voice tones, not word content:
engrams always contain both.
In therapy, we find the reactive mind very chary of letting this
one come to view because, after all, one "cannot live without it."
There are whole classes of these favorable evaluation phrases in
engrams and wherever he comes upon one the auditor will find the
pre-clear's reactive mind holding out on him. "I don't want to lose
you," "Hold on to this," "I can't let go of this, I'd fall," and so
forth. But this is, after all, just another engram and "pleasant"
or not is aberrative.
Masochistic and sadistic impulses often stem from coital engrams
which contain those specific things, so the auditor is not to infer
that merely because this coitus is painful to the child, it will
make the child a masochist or a sadist. If masochism or sadism is
present in the patient it is caused by engrams which contain rapes,
beating for sexual gratification, enjoyment of pain, etc., and
engrams which homonymically seem to state that sex and pain are
alike such as a "normal" coitus which says, "It hurts so good! Hurt
me again, Bill. Hurt me again! Oh, shove it in me, way up! Make it
hurt so I can come." Dramatized by a boy, this might very well
bring about sodomy because the engram is not an observed action but
a series of commands, literally taken.
322
Thus our pro-survival coitus engram, as the first example of one
here, is relatively innocent in a person's aberrative pattern. But
by an accident of words, it could be very different in its
aberrative effect.
The second pro-survival example concerns another prenatal engram.
(One auditor commented, while he was being cleared, that he "had
thought of my life B.D. - before dianetics - as a graph of years,
in which the time from conception to birth occupied one-fiftieth of
the linear distance between conception and present time, but now
think of the prenatal period as occupying two-thirds of the
distance between the beginning and now." The prenatal area,
cleared, at last went back to being one-fiftieth.)
The mother, subject to high blood pressure, continually brought
about a condition of great pain in the unborn infant, particularly
when she was agitated. (This is a prime source of migraine
headache.) Whatever it was which agitated her into high blood
pressure at the moment this engram was received was unknown - and
much of the "plot" of prenatal life may remain unknown for the
explanatory data may come before the pain and the engram and a
complete recording only happens after the instant of pain when some
degree of "unconsciousness" comes about. The mother, at the
beginning of the engram, when pressure began to build up and
stiffen out the unborn child, was weeping. She was by herself. "Oh,
how am I ever going to get out of it. Everything looks so drab and
colorless to me. Oh, why did I ever start it; I can't possibly go
through with it. But I have to, I have to. I would be sick if I
didn't. Oh, Lord, everything comes in on me at once. I am utterly
trapped. But there, I will go through with it, I'll feel better.
I'll be brave and do it. I've got to be brave. I am brave. I am the
bravest person in the world. I have to be and I am." The pressure
receded.
Exactly what this was about will remain a mystery to the auditor
who reduced it, the patient who had it, the
323
auditor and the reader: such is often the case with an engram. They
are conceived in misunderstanding and they aren't to be understood,
save mechanically, and only deleted from the engram bank.
This is a particularly dangerous engram to have for it contains a
manic in the words, "bravest person in the world." "I," of course,
is ordinarily used by the unborn child to be himself, when the
engram is at last able to affect an analyzer in which there is
speech. Before that moment, of course, there is just a recording
without word meaning, although even before the words are given
meaning, the engram can be aberrative. This is further dangerous
because it says, "I'm trapped," and because it says, "Everything
comes in on me at once." "Trapped" is our enemy, the holder. But
"everything comes in on me at once" is a grouper. Further, the
remainder of the content, as an engram, will not compute in the
analyzer. It says one "must go through with it," but that one
"cannot go through with it," that one "would get sick if I didn't
go through with it" but that "it is impossible." Everything being
equal to everything, as our moronic enemy, the reactive mind
computes, this engram both repels and attracts therapy: it brings
about a condition of indecision in the analytical mind which is
insufferable.
The individual holding this engram might find himself - as it acted
as aberration - first in the manic portion of being the bravest
person in the world and then, regressed a trifle by a slight change
of restimulators such as his migraine headache getting bad, find
himself utterly undecided about any course of action and with the
telegraphed emotion, contained in the tears, of being very
depressed. But this is pro-survival because it apparently dictates
a way out of a situation. As an additional factor, it brings, with
its phrase about "everything being drab and colorless" color
blindness at least in recall so that the recalled images of the
past are "seen" in the mind as having no color. It can bring about,
if added to by enough subsequent dramatizations, actual perceptic
324
color blindness. The whole engram is very likely, when combined
with other factors, to place the individual in an institution with
all of his somatic turned on (migraine) and, because of the
grouper, all other pain he felt in his life turned on as well. This
grouper bunches the track of the engram bank all into one place and
then puts the individual squarely in that place.
In therapy, when this was contacted, a case which had been
classified as "insane" came into a release state of "normal." The
patient had been institutionalized, was in the foetal position and
had regressed physically. That she kept screaming these exact words
and weeping had been placed on her record as the manifestation of a
childhood delusion. The case was opened by repeater technique,
using the words she kept screaming, after she had had her attention
fixed upon the auditor by loud, monotonous noise. There were some
former incidents containing these words which had to be reached
before the incident in dramatization would ease. However, engrams
like this are commonly contacted in more or less "normal" people
and are relieved as routine. A very high degree of restimulation
had been experienced by this patient and several severe "loss"
engrams had occurred which had kept earlier content keyed-in.
It might also be remarked in re all these "trapped," "caught,"
"can't get out of it" cases (which is to say where there are
several holders and also a high quantity of painful emotion) that
certain foetal aspects are visible even when the case is "normal."
A shiny skin, a spinal curvature, only partial development of the
gonads, all are common and one or many such signs may be present.
SYMPATHY ENGRAM
The first example is an illness suffered by a patient when he was a
small boy. At two years and a half he was taken ill with pneumonia.
He had a considerable background of attempted abortion and the
usual engram
325
cargo received from aberrated parents. He was extremely worried
about the quarrels and upsets od his own home; numbers of his
engrams had been keyed-in and amongst them was his pneumonia. His
grandmother came and took him to her home because, whenever he was
ill, his mother would go away and leave him. The incident was
extremely occluded and was only reached after several late life
painful emotion engrams had been discharged and after almost a
hundred prenatal physical pain engrams had been released. The
grandmother, when he was crying in delirium, mistook his activity
as demonstrating that he was "conscious," which he was not, and she
sought to reason with him. She said, "Those people don't really
mean to be so bad to you, honey. I know they have good hearts
really. You just do what they say and believe what they tell you
and you'll be all right. Now promise you'll do that, won't you,
honey." The child, in the last depths of reaction, responded and
promised her he would believe them and do what they said. "I love
you very much," the grandmother continued, "and I will take care of
you. Now don't worry, honey. Forget it now. Just get a little
rest."
The phrases contained in this engram, because they were on a trance
level and because they could be held in place by his fever and
pain, produced a very profound effect on the child. He had to
believe whatever was said. This means literal belief and cost him,
for one thing, much of his sense of humor. Because he wanted to be
all right, he had to believe what his parents said; the things they
had said, prenatally, contained every kind of a bad datum possible
about who was the boss and how much fun it was to beat the mother
and so forth. All this, then, was made into "true data" which,
because his sympathy engram said so, he had to believe. No more
horrible curse could ever be laid on anyone than those in sympathy
engrams which say "Believe what is said," "Believe
326
what is read," "Believe people," because that engram means
literally that the poor old analyzer will now never be able to
evaluate its own data unless, by utter rebellion, the individual
negates against the whole world, which can occasionally be done.
Let this individual, however, as this one did, marry a woman who
has characteristics similar to his grandmother's (a
pseudo-grandmother) and he becomes prey to: (a) the pain and
illness, chronic, which he experienced in his grandmother sympathy
engrams (necessary to get and keep her sympathy); and (b) all his
prenatals, since the pseudo-grandmother throws him into his own
valence: This makes him quarrel, which makes his wife fight back,
and suddenly this woman is not pseudo-grandmother but
pseudo-mother. Exit sanity.
In therapy, when we encounter this sympathy engram at last, it is
discovered to have been buried in two ways: (a) it was aligned with
purpose; and (b) it had a forgetter mechanism on it.
Because of (a) the self-protection of the mind permitted it to give
up the engram only when enough tension was taken off the case to
permit the mind to get along without this engram.
In (b) we have a device which is common in engrams. Whenever we try
to run an engram which has somatics enough even to make the
pre-clear roll around on the couch but which contains no word
content, we suspect a forgetter mechanism. There are evidently
people in this world who think that the panacea for all mental
discomfort is to forget: "Put it out of my mind," "If I remembered
it I would go mad," "Junior, you never remember a thing I tell
you," "Nobody can remember anything," "Can't remember," and just
plain "I don't know," as well as the master of the family of
phrases, "Forget it!" all bar information from the analyzer. A
whole case, freshly opened, may keep answering everything with one
327
of these denyers (there are many other kinds of denyers, if you
recall). Repeater technique will eventually begin to release the
phrase from various engrams and begin to show up incidents. To have
a grandmother who says, "Forget it" continually every time a child
gets hurt is to be cursed beyond Macbeth. A forgetter, used by an
ally, all by itself and with practically no pain or emotion present
will submerge data which, in recall, would not be aberrative but
which, so buried - by a forgetter - makes things said just before
it aberrative and literal.
Hence this engram remained utterly out of sight until the case was
almost finished and as soon as it was contacted, the already
de-intensified reactive bank collapsed and the patient was cleared.
The second example of the sympathy engram concerns a childhood
experience of a patient who, at the beginning of therapy, was a
remarkably confused individual. Here is an example of sympathy
engram which is not uncommon. (It will not be primary in any ally
computation but because it is often repeated in the same case,
becomes aberrative.) This incident occurred when the child had been
badly hurt in an accident. He had received a fractured skull and
concussion and was for many days in a coma. He had never learned
that such an incident happened to him although examination
afterwards disclosed evidence of the fracture and disclosed also
that while he had known there was a ridge in his skull he had never
wondered about it for an instant. His father and mother were, at
the time, on the verge of divorce and, in the presence of the only
partly conscious child, quarreled several times in these few days,
evidently upset by his accident and recriminative as to whose fault
it was. The first part of the series of engrams within this one
large engram are unimportant as an example save that they brought
about a condition where the mother put herself forward as a
defender of the child who was not under
328
attack by the father. The mother's conversation aberratively
indictated that the father was attacking the child, and the words
in an engram rather than the action are important as aberrative
factors. Finally the father left the house and home. The mother sat
down by the boy's trundle bed and, weeping, told him she would keep
him from dying, that she would "work and slave and wear her fingers
to the bone" to keep him alive and "I am the only reason you are
alive. I have defended you against that beast and monster. If it
were not for me, you would have died long ago and I am going to
care for you and protect you. So don't pay any attention to
anything people tell you. I am a good mother. I have always been a
good mother. Don't listen to them. Please, baby, stay here and get
well, please!"
This remarkable piece of nonsense came, of course, straight out of
her reactive mind. She did not feel guilty about the way she was
taking care of the baby, though she had done her cyclic worst for
this child since conception. (There is no such thing as guilt nor a
guilt complex that is not straight out of an engram that says, "I
am guilty" or some such similar phrase.)
Here is ambivalence at work. By ambivalent is meant power on two
sides. It had better be called multivalence, for it is demonstrable
that people have many valences, twenty or thirty not being unusual
for a "normal." This mother, with her wild pleas and her mawkish
sentimentality, shifted around in valences like a whirling dervish.
She was capable of being viciously cruel, torturing her child with,
as the Navy calls them, "capricious and unusual punishments": yet
one of these valences which, unfortunately for the patient, only
turned on when he was ill, was one of savage protection for the
child and assurances to him that she loved him and would never
leave him to starve, etc. She formed, in this child, because of her
own reactive pattern and her inabilities,
329
close to a thousand engrams before he was ten. This particular
specimen given was fairly standard.
The aberrative aspect of this engram was a "conviction" that if
one's mother were not around and if one were not on good terms with
her, one would starve, die or suffer generally. Also it meant,
because of the time it was given, having a bad headache if one
wanted to live. The whole series of these engrams made a highly
complex pattern of psycho-somatic ills including sinusitis, a
chronic rash, allergies and numerous other actual physical ills,
despite the fact that the patient had always tried to be as
forthright in his physical being as possible and was not in any way
a hypochondriac.
In therapy the entire chain of fights in this area, much of the
prenatal area and most late life painful emotion engrams were
relieved before this sympathy engram displayed itself.
As a note on the subject of sympathy engrams, these are in nowise
exclusively found in childhood: they exist prenatally and
postnatally - and sometimes late in life. Any persons who defend
the child against further abortion attempts become part of the
sympathy engram chains and, of course, they are allies whose loss
is something to be dreaded. Late sympathy engrams have been
discovered at fifty years of age. One, discovered at thirty,
consisted of a nymphomaniac nurse who, during the period when the
patient was still under ether and still in pain, talked to him
obscenely, played with his genitals and still managed, by the
content of her remarks, to plant a sympathy engram which produced a
very serious psychic condition in the patient. (It is in nowise
true that many cases of sexual play exist while the patient is
under anesthetic or drugged but because this is a standard
psychotic reaction of delusion is no reason to rule that the
incident cannot occasionally happen.)
The sympathy engram only has to sound like a sympathy engram to
become one: there is no evaluation of actual intent by the reactive
mind.
330
PAINFUL EMOTION ENGRAM
Three of these are given to illustrate a type of each. They can
happen at any period, including prenatally, but are most easily
tapped in more recent life, when they will then lead back to early
incidents of physical pain, sympathy engrams and the like. The
first example is a case of loss by death of an ally. A girl, at the
age of eighteen, was given a painful emotion engram by being told
by her parents that her aunt was dead. The aunt was a prime ally.
The patient, treated at the age of thirty-one, recalled the death
of her aunt but attributed her sorrow to other things such as a
restimulation of what she called her own "death instinct" (which
was, in reality, engramic chatter by mother about wanting to die
and get it all over with). Actually the aunt had been a large
factor in dissuading the mother from "getting rid of" the child and
had made the mother promise that she would not. The aunt had also
tended the child, postnatally, through illnesses and was, in fact,
the only refuge for the girl when a termagant mother and a
religiously bigoted father would converge on her, for neither had
wanted her and there had been a number of efforts to terminate the
pregnancy pre-term.
Her father communicated the information to the girl with a sonorous
voice and appropriately long face. "I want you to be very
respectful at the funeral, Agatha." ("What funeral?") "Your aunt
just passed to the great beyond." ("She's dead?") "Yes, death must
come to us all and we must all be prepared some day to meet the
fate which waits for us at the end of the road. For it is a long
path, life, and God and flaming hell wait at its other end and
someday we all must die. Be sure you are very respectful at the
funeral." She had begun to pale at the word "funeral," she was to
all purposes "unconscious" when she heard the first mention of
"death" and she remained "unconscious," if moving about, for two
whole days. The case had been very slow until this engram was
331
discovered and run. An enormous discharge of grief took place,
which had never before manifested itself. It was reduced to boredom
in eight recountings, at which the first moment of the aunt's
intervention in the abortion attempts was automatically contacted
and released. Thereafter the case made progress in the prenatal
area, prohibition against "getting rid of it" having been removed
and (according to theory, free units being available), the charge
had come off the prenatal area. There were five other allies in
this case, the girl, with parents who had been so wicked to her,
having attached herself to anyone who would show her interest and
refuge. As lower physical pain came into view, more allies showed
up and more painful emotion engrams were discharged, permitting new
physically painful engrams to display themselves.
The next example is an engram from a patient who had all his life
been reared and cared for by "moneyed parents." He had a very
severe prenatal area which yet would not lift to view. It was
discovered at length that his nurses had been his only source of
love and affection and that his mother, being a woman who liked to
unsettle the household as often as possible, would discharge a
nurse every time she found the child had grown fond of her, even
though the mother herself made it plain that she considered the
child "nasty." The engram: the boy sees his nurse coming out of the
house with her suitcase in her hand: he stops playing in the yard
and runs to her to "scare her": she is quite angry from the scene
she has just had - an Irish girl - and yet she smooths her face and
kneels down beside him. "I am leaving, Buddy. I can't stay here any
more. No, I can't be your nurse now. But there, there, you'll have
another one. Don't cry. It's not good for little boys to cry.
Good-bye, Buddy. I love you." And she goes off out of sight.
He was stunned from the first instant she said she was leaving. The
prohibition against crying was from an ally:
332
whatever an ally says must be good and must be believed because
allies are survival and one must survive: allies therefore must be
believed. He had not cried except on rare occasions of enormous
sorrow in all the years thereafter. Eight of these departures were
touched without result but with this one, they all loosened and
discharged, one after the other.
Any departure of or from an ally contains an emotional charge
which, if it will not display itself, is elsewhere suppressed.
The third example of the painful emotion engram is the third type,
loss of an ally by reversal. A wife loved her husband very dearly.
They had gotten along well together until his parents came into the
vicinity and began to malign his wife. He was furious with them for
it and quarreled with them. His wife was a pseudo-ally and
unfortunately that ally had told the child to believe his parents.
(This is fairly chronic with allies - if they would give the child
correct data when he is emotionally disturbed or ill, there would
be less trouble. A remark such as, "Well, you'll grow up some day
and be able to care for yourself," is much better than a hat full
of Emersonian platitudes.) This brought about a tragic reversal.
The reactive mind, restimulated at the sight of his wife (the
husband was emotionally disturbed, very restimulated already by his
parents) threw in the data that one must believe one's parents.
This made his wife no good, as per their aberrative chatter. He
went into his father's valence to escape this imponderable
situation and that valence beat women. He struck his wife
repeatedly, dramatizing one of his father's engrams: "I hate you.
You are no good. I should have listened to them sooner. You're no
good."
The wife was in therapy. This charge suppressed itself, not out of
shame for her husband's actions but for the mechanical reason that
the early area had to be relieved before this one would discharge
(smart file clerk). Her
333
case had slowed down to a point where the board looked entirely
clear although somatics (which she attributed to natural causes)
and aberrations (which she said were reasonable reactions) still
manifested themselves. Suddenly this incident appeared when
repeater technique was used on the auditor's random guess: "I hate
you," for it was known that she said this now and then to her
husband. Three recountings discharged this painful emotion despite
its violence (it made her weep until she almost choked).
Immediately twelve prenatals, all fights between her mother and
father (an ally, of which her husband was the pseudo-ally) wherein
the mother beat her abdomen and cursed the child, appeared and were
erased and the case progressed to clear.
Loss of dogs, dolls, money, position, even the threat of a loss,
anything may bring about a painful emotion engram so long as it is
loss. It may be loss by death, loss by departure, loss by reversal.
Anything connected with the life of the patient and associated by
him with his own survival seems to be capable of locking up life
units when lost. A condition of such painful emotion is that it has
early physically painful engrams upon which to append. The
physically painful engram is still the villain but it has an
accomplice in the painful emotion engram.
334
CHAPTER IX - PART ONE
Mechanisms and Aspects of Therapy
THE CASE ENTRANCE
Every case presents a new problem of entrance. No two human beings
are exactly alike and no two cases will follow the exact pattern.
However, this presents no problem to dianetics since the mechanics
are always the same.
There are three case classifications: the sonic-recall, the
non-sonic recall and the imaginary recall (what auditors call a
"dub-in" recall).
In the sonic recall case, the entrance is very easy. But in all
cases the basic procedure is the same. Put the patient in reverie
(and don't worry too much if he doesn't go into a very deep reverie
because reverie only serves to fix his attention on himself and the
auditor and you can at least accomplish that). Install a canceller.
Return him to childhood to pick up a pleasant incident and then
find a minor pain incident such as a slap in the face. Run him
through this a few times just to let him get the idea. If he
doesn't respond well, put him into yesterday and let him ride to
work and ask him about sounds and sights, then send him to
childhood again.
The object of finding a minor incident such as a slapped face is to
find out if the patient has a pain shutoff. A pain shut-off is not
particularly difficult in dianetics. You can get back before the
command which installed the anesthesia, but it is interesting to
know about it because you want to look for it early in the case.
See then if the patient has an emotional shut-off. This again is
not particularly embarrassing but again is data you want to find
eventually.
335
Test now to find out if the patient is within himself or if he is
outside himself, watching himself. If he is exteriorized, you are
working a case which has considerable walled up emotion in it which
must be discharged.
Now make a try to basic-basic. You might surprise yourself and get
it. And you might work fifty hours for it, releasing the case the
while. Get whatever the file clerk will give you in the prenatal
area and what you get, reduce.
Whether basic-basic is contacted or not, locate as many prenatals
as will present themselves without much coaxing and reduce each
one.
If you find no prenatals, bring the patient up to present time but
remind him to keep his eyes closed. Now ask him a few questions
about his family, his grandparents, his wife or, if the pre-clear
is a woman, her husband. Ask about any former husbands or wives.
Ask about children. And ask particularly about death. You are
looking for a painful emotion engram, an instant of loss which will
discharge.
Finding out about one, even if it is just the death of a favorite
dog, return the pre-clear to it and run it from the first moment he
hears the news of it and for the ensuing few minutes of it. Then
start it again. Reduce the moment as an engram. You want an
emotional discharge. Run it several times. If you don't get a
discharge, find some other moment of loss, some failure, something,
anything which will discharge: but do it all quietly as if with
sympathy. Lacking any success, start in repeater technique, never
for a moment giving any intelligence that you are anything but
calmly concerned for his welfare (even if some of his gyrations
worry you). Try such phrases as "Poor little - " using his or her
childhood name.
When the pre-clear has repeated this several times (the auditor at
the same time stating that somatic strip will return to any
incident containing the phrase to assist the
336
"suck down"), he may find himself in a high tension incident which
will discharge. If nothing discharges yet, keep calm (all this work
will pay dividends in the next session or the next or next), keep
searching, keep observing. There is emotional charge here somewhere
which will discharge. Try other combinations of words such as those
which would be said to a sick and worried child, make the pre-clear
repeat them.
If you have had no success as yet, make another test, without
saying it is a test, to see if the pre-clear is actually leaving
present time. Don't let him "try to remember" - you want him to
return and that is another process, although it is just as natural
to the brain. If he is stuck in present time, start him on repeater
technique again, suggesting bouncers: "Get out and never come
back!" "You can't ever return!" etc., which would account for his
being still in present time. If he is not returning after some of
this, start in with holder phrases: "I'm stuck!" "Don't move!" and
so forth.
Stay calm, never appear anxious. If you get neither a discharge nor
an engram with repeater technique in this first session and if you
get no motion on the track, read this manual again and try your
patient not later than three days after this first session. At that
time some of the data you have asked for may be available.
Ordinarily, however, you will receive either a prenatal or a
discharge and if you get a discharge, then ask the somatic strip to
go back for the prenatal it was sitting on. Reduce everything you
can find. If birth turns up and seems to be in full recall, try to
reduce that but do so in the knowledge that it probably will not
lift very far and in the knowledge that you had better run it over
and over and over to de-intensity it all you can.
Sometimes the pre-clear will go into a deeper reverie than you
wish. But do not try to wake him into a higher level. Work him
where he is. But if he seems to be in something approaching
hypnotic trance, be very careful
337
of your language. Never tell him, for instance, to go back there
and stay there until he finds something. That's a holder. Don't use
holders and bouncers and groupers et al. on anyone in dianetics.
"Will you please return to the prenatal area?" "Let's see if the
somatic strip can locate an early moment of pain or discomfort."
"Please pick up the somatic at the beginning and roll the engram."
"What do you hear, please?" "Continue" (when you want him to keep
on going from the point of the engram where he is to the later end
of the engram). "Recount that again, please."
There's nothing to be nervous about. If you get nervous, then he'll
get nervous.
Sometimes you run into a pain shut-off. This has a tendency to put
the pain into the muscles and the muscles will jump and quiver and
the patient may sense this and still feel nothing more. Once in a
great while a patient will have such a thorough pain shut-off that
he bounces about, all unconscious of the action, and almost falls
from couch to floor. If you run into this, do not be alarmed: the
pain is locked in somehow. Get early enough and you'll locate a
somatic he can feel, or go late and find an emotional charge.
Don't be misled if he tells you, with regard to emotion, that he
has worked it all out in psycho-analysis or some such thing. He may
have walled in the death of his wife or sweetheart or child, but
the whole engram is still there, crammed with captured units, ready
to be run exactly as an engram.
If you run into a heavy emotional charge, simply let the patient
weep, keep him at the business of running the engram in a soft,
sympathetic voice, have it recounted until there is no charge left
in any of it and then run him early into the prenatal area or early
childhood to get a physical pain engram that must have been below
that emotional charge and held it in place.
The extravagance of emotional discharge is nothing to be alarmed
about. Bringing the patient out of it and to
338
present time suddenly would cause him unhappiness about it. Running
the painful emotion engram will discharge, in a few recountings,
sorrow which society has believed could never be countered or
relieved except by repression. Get the moment he first heard the
news or observed the thing which made him feel so bad. Run it far
enough from its beginning to make sure that you have the initial
shock - a few minutes of engram time will do - and then get him to
recount it again. He may observe himself to be far outside himself
when you start. The moment may not discharge until you have run it
several times. Remember, he is returned to the incident, he is not
running it as a memory, a thing which would do no good whatever.
Do not let him replay anything, ever. Repay is a bad habit some
pre-clears have of playing over what they remember they said the
last time instead of progressing through the engram freshly on each
recounting and contacting what is contained in the engram itself.
Tell the pre-clear there may be some more in it, ask him what color
the bed in the room he is returned to is, keep his attention, by
any quiet mechanism, upon the scene. And do not let him replay
ever, not on any engram at any time: he could replay forever
without therapeutic value, each time saying what he remembered he
said the last time. There is a difference between this and the
repeated re-experiencing of the engram to gather additional data
and to get rid of the charge.
Discharge emotion, reduce incidents of physical pain as early
prenatally as possible. If you can't get into the prenatal area at
first, it has many bouncers in it and repeater technique will take
you there.
If the patient keeps saying such a thing as "I can't remember," be
patient - always follow the code. Have him start running that
phrase as repeater technique. If he gets a somatic but contacts
nothing else, send him earlier. If he gets another and still can't
contact on "I can't remember," send him earlier, his whole engram
339
bank must be strewn with them - poor fellow. Somebody really didn't
want him to know what had happened to him. Eventually you will get
back to an engram which will release a phrase. When he has gone
over the phrase a few more times, he will smile or chuckle or
perhaps merely feel relieved. Now you can either run the engram in
which you found the earliest phrase, which is best, or you can come
back toward present time, lifting the phrase as it later appeared.
Or you can start on something else which may block the case.
The goal and the whole goal is to place the standard bank in entire
conscious reach of the individual by deleting (a) early and
subsequently all physical pain engrams; (b) all demon circuits
(which are merely contained in engrams and come up more or less
automatically); and (c) all painful emotion engrams.
The process of work is to get as early as you can, preferably
prenatal and very early in that, and try to find and reduce an
engram, complete with all somatics (pain) and perceptics (words and
other sensations). If you fail in this, you go late, any time from
birth forward to present time, and find a moment of loss or
threatened loss from which you can get an emotional charge. Then
you go back early, early, early and find the engram on which it
rested. You try always, until you are certain you have it, to get
basic-basic, the earliest engram. You reduce as many early engrams
as you can find, using the file clerk and repeater system, and when
you seem to run out of material, you go later into life and try to
find another emotional charge.
The physically painful engrams cover up later emotional charges.
Emotional charges cover up physically painful engrams. Back and
forth, back and forth. Run as much as you can get early: when it
seems to be running out or getting too unemotional, get some later
material.
This is the way you work a case. No matter what kind of a case it
is, no matter what the state of its recall, no
340
matter if the case is normal, psychotic or neurotic or what, this
is the way.
These are the tools:
(1) Reverie or fixed attention if you cannot get reverie.
(2) Return.
(3) Repeater technique.
(4) A knowledge of bouncers, holders, groupers, misdirectors,
denyers.
(5) A knowledge of the painful emotion engram.
(6) The reduction or the erasure.
(7) The flash answer.
(8) The valence shift.
This is all you need to do:
(1) Keep the patient mobile, able to move on the track.
(2) Reduce or erase everything you get your hands on.
(3) Deduce from the remarks of the patient, in or out of therapy,
what must be his bouncers, holders, groupers, misdirectors,
denyers.
(4) Keep it solidly in mind that the number one goal is
basic-basic, the earliest moment of pain and "unconsciousness."
(5) Keep in mind that the patient may have "computations" which
make his illness or his aberrated state "valuable" to him and
discover whence those "computations" come by flash answer to your
questions.
(6) Keep the case progressing, gaining, work only for progress and
gain, not for sudden, soaring results. Worry only when the case
remains static and worry then in terms of finding the engram which
is balking everything. Its content will be a close approximation to
the way the patient says he feels about it and will contain the
same or similar words.
(7) Get the patient back to present time each time you work and
feed him the canceller. Test him with an age flash, get his first
reply to how old he is, find the holder at that age if he is not at
present time.
(8) Keep your temper no matter what the patient says.
341
(9) Never try to tell him what his data means: he knows and he
alone knows what it means.
(10) Keep your nerve and run dianetics; like Farragut said, "Damn
the torpedoes! Go ahead."
(11) Wife, son, whatever you may be to the pre-clear, you are the
auditor when you are auditing. He cannot compute his own engrams to
find them - if he could they would not be engrams. You can compute
them. Do what you think a good auditor would do, never what the
patient says save only when he accidentally concurs in his opinion
that a good auditor would do that. Be the auditor, not a recording
device. You and the file clerk in his mind are running the case:
what his engrams and his analytical mind believe should have no
force in any of your computations. You and his file clerk know. He,
as "I" doesn't know.
(12) Be surprised at nothing. Audit.
These are the things you must not do:
(1) Dilute dianetics with some practice or belief of yesteryear;
you will only slow or sidetrack a case. Analyzing data received on
any other basis than getting more engrams leads to delay and
confusion for the pre-clear. It is a temptation to use this
material for other reasons than getting engrams if one has been
trained in another field than dianetics. Yielding to that
temptation before one knows how dianetics works is a very unfair
test of dianetics, completely aside from the way it snarls a case.
The temptation is great because, with dianetics, you get such a
wealth of data.
(2) Do not bully the patient. If the case is not progressing, then
the fault lies with the auditor. Do not surrender to an old
practice of getting mad at a patient just because he doesn't get
well. You may be sure the engram you have just reduced out of his
reactive engram bank is the reason he won't take baths, but if he
still refuses to bathe, be certain there is an earlier reason.
342
(3) Don't assume grandly that you have a "different" case just
because it doesn't resolve swiftly. They are all "different" cases.
(4) Don't run for help to somebody who does not know dianetics if
your nerve fails you. The reason the case did not progress or
became involved is right there - your nerve failed you. Only
dianetics can work a problem in dianetics.
(5) Do not listen to a patient's complaints as complaints; use them
as data to get engrams.
(6) Do not suppose that just because you cannot reach prenatal
engrams in a case that they are not there. There are scores and
scores of them in every case. Remember that an engram isn't a
memory, it has to be developed to become within recall. There is no
human being walking on earth today who does not have a plentitude
of prenatals.
(7) Do not allow the patient to use his mother or his memory of
what he has been told as a by-pass of prenatals. Every time you
find a patient talking in past tense instead of present tense he is
not returned to an incident. Unless he is returned, the engram will
not lift.
(8) Do not suppose that because a patient does not feel bad today
about a sorrow of yesterday that a despair charge is not located
back on his track when he received the impact of that despair. Time
may encyst, it does not heal.
(9) Do not think in terms of "guilt complexes" or "shame" unless
you think of them as engram content for there they will be found.
Never suggest to a patient that he may be at fault in an engram.
(10) Any departure from optimum behavior or conduct or rationality
on the part of the patient is engramic: don't make "allowances for
human nature" any more than you, as a mathematician, would make
allowances for an adding machine which brought up wrong answers.
343
Sexual fears, repressions, defenses are not "natural" as they have
been regarded in the past.
(11) Don't worry about the patient's aberrations. Work to contact
and reduce and erase engrams. You will find, in any patient, enough
aberrations to fill a dictionary.
(12) Don't fret if your patient does not become a clear in an
evening or a month. Just keep working. You'll have him above normal
so quickly you won't realize when you passed it. Above that you are
shooting for a very high goal.
STUCK IN PRESENT TIME
Cases, when they are entered, are found in various positions and
situations on the time track; sometimes they are off the time track
entirely and sometimes the time track is all snarled up in a ball.
Now and then the time track is found to be in good condition and
the engrams available, but this is not ordinary.
No case can be said to be more difficult than another except in the
matter of recalls, "dub-ins" and shut-offs. But the case which
seems to be "stuck in present time" and on whom no repeater phrase
works is very often quite puzzling to an auditor. The pre-clear
will not return to engrams. Ordinarily there may be pain and
emotional shut-offs and the painful emotion cannot be quickly
discharged. Sometimes somatics will turn on but no content can be
gained. Sometimes there is no somatic but content. The situations
are quite various.
There are several things an auditor can do. The first of them is to
use his wits. The next is to indoctrinate the patient into
returning. This indoctrination is quite simple. The auditor takes
the patient back a few hours and has the patient tell what he sees.
The sonic and visio may be occluded but the patient may have some
idea of what is taking place. The auditor then takes him back a few
days, then a few months and finally several years, each
344
time getting the patient to describe his "surroundings" as best he
can. The patient now has the idea of returning. He can travel at
least along portions of his life which are not occluded by engrams.
When the patient is returned to some early moment in his life,
begin to use repeater technique on him, aiming toward obvious
things such as feeling shut-offs (going over the word "feel") or
forgetter mechanisms (such as "forget"). An engram may then be
contacted and reduced.
If repeater technique still does not work and still does not get
data, diagnose by his behavior in therapy and his statements what
must be troubling him or occluding his recalls and again use these
guesses as repeater. For instance he may have no recollection of
some member of his family. Have him repeat the familiar name. Or
have him repeat his own childhood nickname until an incident is
contacted.
Should this still fail, then find some light locks, incidents which
contain minimal pain, and run those. Such things as falls from a
tricycle, getting sent from the table, getting spanked or scolded,
being kept after school and so forth will serve. After he has
reduced several locks, again try to find an engram.
The running of locks will not bring about any great recovery, and
there are thousands and thousands of locks in any case, most of
which will vanish without assistance from the auditor once the
severe engrams are located. But locks may be used to indoctrinate
the patient into returning and therapy in general and may even
bring about an improved condition in him by demonstrating to him
that he can face his past.
The foremost things to do in any case at the beginning are to (1)
attempt to locate and erase basic-basic, and (2) discharge painful
emotion. The sooner emotion can be released, the better, and there
is always emotion on a case just as there are always a plenty of
prenatal incidents.
345
But when a case is stuck in present time either when it is opened
or during progress, it is highly charged with occluded emotion and
it is obeying a restimulated engram to the effect that it must go
all the way to now and stay there. The wording of this engram will
generally be expressed by the patient himself in complaining of his
trouble. Repeater technique is used with this clue. That failing,
indoctrinate the patient by taking him back to what he can contact
and when indoctrination is done, as above, start using repeater
technique again.
There is one motto which applies to all therapy, "If you keep
asking for it, you'll get it." Any and all engrams surrender on the
basis of returning the patient to the area time and again, session
after session. The engram bank may be balky but enough asking will
bring forth any data in it sooner or later. Just keep asking, keep
the routine of therapy running. Even a "stuck in present time" case
will eventually begin to return on the sole principle of repeater
technique.
There are certain things that the auditor may be doing which are
wrong. He may be trying to work the case on data taken from parents
or relatives, which is usually fruitless in view of the fact that
it undermines the preclear's faith in his own data (all the data
will check with the relatives; just don't worry about checking it
until the case is finished). Or he may be trying to work the case
in the presence of other people. Or he may be violating the
auditor's code. A list of these deterrents to progress is to be
found elsewhere in this volume.
BASIC-BASIC
The first goal of the auditor is basic-basic and after that always
the earliest moment of pain or discomfort which he can reach. He
may have to go late for emotional charges and these themselves may
be physically painful.
346
Emotion may bar the patient from basic-basic. But always that first
turn-off of the analyzer is important and when it is gained,
subsequent engrams are much more easily reduced.
Basic-basic is the vital target for two reasons: (1) It contains an
analyzer shut-off which itself is restimulated every time a new
engram is received. The common denominator of all engrams is
analyzer shut-off. Turn it on the first time it was shut off and a
vast improvement takes place in the case, for thereafter analyzer
shut-off is not as deep. (2) An "erasure" (which is to say an
apparent removal of the engram from the files of the engram bank
and refiling in the standard bank as memory) of basic-basic widens
the track beyond it markedly and brings many new engrams into view.
Basic-basic is occasionally found weeks before mother's first
missed period, which would place it much earlier than any
examination for pregnancy or an attempted abortion. Sometimes in a
non-sonic case sonic is discoverable in basic-basic but far from
always.
Considerable material may be "erased" before basic-basic appears.
Sometimes basic-basic gets "erased" without either the auditor or
the pre-clear knowing that it has been reached, basic-basic being
merely another engram in the basic area. Sometimes much painful
emotion must be discharged in the later life areas before
basic-basic discloses itself.
Always, however, basic-basic is the target and until he has a good
idea that he has reached it, the auditor, once every session, makes
an effort to get it. Thereafter he tries to get the earliest moment
of pain or discomfort he can reach every session. If he can reach
nothing early, he seeks to discharge a late emotional engram - when
it is completely discharged, "reduced" or "erased" as an engram -
then he goes down into the earliest material the file clerk will
give him.
347
Whatever comes up, the auditor seeks to take all the charge out of
it, whether that charge is pain or emotion, before he proceeds on
his way to new material. This is done merely by returning the
patient back over the incident many times until it no longer
affects him either painfully or emotionally, or until it seems to
vanish.
THE REDUCTION AND THE ERASURE
These two terms are highly colloquial. Serious effort has been made
to deter their use and substitute for them something sonorous and
wonderfully Latin, but no progress has been made to date. Auditors
insist on using colloquial terms such as "AA" for attempted
abortion, "louse up" for engrams which seriously aberrate,
"aberree" for a person not released or cleared, "zombie" for an
electric shock or neuro-surgical case and so forth. It is feared
that a tendency exists in them to be disrespectful to the hallowed
and sacred tomes of yesteryear, to the dignity of past Authorities
which labeled much and did little. However this may be, "reduction"
and "erasure" are in such common use that to change them is hardly
necessary.
To reduce means to take all the charge or pain out of an incident.
This means to have the pre-clear recount the incident from
beginning to end (while returned to it in reverie) over and over
again, picking up all the somatics and perceptions present just as
though the incident were happening at that moment. To reduce means,
technically, to render free of aberrative material as far as
possible to make the case progress.
To "erase" an engram means to recount it until it has vanished
entirely. There is a distinct difference between a reduction and an
"erasure." The difference depends more upon what the engram is
going to do than upon what the auditor wants it to do. If the
engram is early, if
348
it has no material earlier which will suspend it, that engram will
"erase." The patient, trying to find it again for a second or sixth
recounting, will suddenly find out he has no faintest idea what was
in it. He may ask the auditor who, of course, will give him no
information whatever. (The auditor who prompts is slowing down
therapy by making himself the patient's memory.) Going through it
and trying to find it may cause the patient some amusement when he
cannot. Or it may make him puzzled for here was something which
had, on first contact, a painful somatic and a highly aberrative
content which now no longer seems to exist. That is an "erasure."
Technically the engram is not erased. If the auditor cares to spend
some time, solely for purposes of research, he will find that
engram in the standard banks now, labeled "formerly aberrative:
rather amusing: information which may be useful analytically." Such
a search is not germane to therapy. If the incident had a somatic,
was recounted a few times and then, when its last new material was
found, vanished, it is erased so far as the engram bank is
concerned. It will no longer be "soldered" into the motor circuits,
will no longer be dramatized, it no longer blocks a dynamic and is
no longer an engram but a memory.
The "reduction" has some interesting aspects. Let us take a
childhood incident (age of four, let us say) which had to do with a
scalding. This is contacted while much data remains in the basic
area. It has many things below it which will hold it in place.
Nevertheless, it has emotional charge and therapy is slowed by that
charge. The file clerk hands out the scalding. Now it will not
erase, but it will reduce. Here is a job which will take more time
than an erasure. And there may be several aspects to that job.
The somatic is contacted, the incident is begun as close to the
beginning as the auditor can get, and is then recounted. This
scalding, let us say, has apathy as its
349
emotional tone (Tone 0.5). The pre-clear slogs through it
apathetically, well exteriorized, watching himself be scalded. Then
suddenly, perhaps, an emotional discharge may come off, but not
necessarily. The pre-clear returns to the beginning and recounts
(re-experiences) the whole thing once more. Then again and again.
Soon he begins to get angry at the people involved in the incident
for being so careless or so heartless. He has come up to anger
(Tone 1.5). The auditor, although the patient would like to tell
how vicious his parents are or how he thinks laws ought to be
passed about scalding children, patiently puts the pre-clear
through the incident again. Now the pre-clear ceases to be angry
and finds that he is bored with the material. He has risen up to
boredom on the tone scale (Tone 2.5). He may protest to the auditor
that this is a waste of time. The auditor puts him back through the
incident again. New data may show up. The somatic may or may not be
still present at this period but the emotional tone is still low.
The auditor puts the pre-clear through the incident again and the
pre-clear may, but not always, begin to be sarcastic or facetious.
The incident is again recounted. Suddenly the pre-clear may be
amused about it (but not always) and the incident, when it
obviously has reached a high tone, may be left. It will probably
sag in a few days, but that is a matter of no great importance for
it will be erased wholly on the return from basic-basic. In any
case it will never be as aberrative as it was before the reduction.
A reduction will sometimes result in the whole engram's apparently
disappearing. But it is obvious when this will occur. Without much
lifting in the tone scale, the incident, by repetition, simply goes
out of sight. This is reducing to recession. In a few days that
incident will be back in force again, almost as strong as ever.
There is material before it and emotional charge after it which
make it unwieldy.
Several things can happen, then, to an engram in the process of
work. It can reduce, which is to say, discharge
350
emotionally and somatically and be of no great aberrative power
thereafter. It can reduce to recession, which is to say it merely
goes out of sight after several recountings. It can erase, which is
to say, vanish and cease to be thereafter so far as the engram bank
is concerned.
A little experience will tell an auditor what engrams are going to
do after he has contacted them. Erasure takes place, ordinarily,
only after basic-basic has been reached or, for that matter, when
the basic area is being worked. The reduction occurs with an
emotional discharge. The reduction to recession happens when there
is too much in the engram bank suppressing the incident.
Every now and then even the best auditor will get hold of an engram
and decide to grind it out now that it has been contacted. It is a
sorry job. Perhaps it is better to grind it out than to merely
restimulate it and let the patient be irritated by it for a couple
of days. Perhaps not. But in any case that engram which reduces
only to recession was better not contacted in the first place.
New auditors are forever charging at birth as an obvious target.
Everybody has a birth: in most patients it can be located rather
easily. But it is a painful incident and until the basic area has
been thoroughly worked and until late life painful emotion has been
discharged and until the file clerk is ready to hand up birth, the
incident is better left in place. It will usually reduce to
recession and afterwards keep popping up to plague the auditor. The
patient gets obscure headaches, gets sniffles, feels uncomfortable
afterwards unless birth is taken on the return (from the basic
area). The auditor is wasting time, of course, by trying to remove
these headaches and sniffles because birth, with the whole prenatal
life before it, will not properly reduce or erase but only recede.
It is too often the case that birth, if prematurely contacted, will
give the patient a headache and a cold. These discomforts are minor
and of no great importance, but the work the auditor may have
invested in working an incident which will only reduce to recession
is lost work.
351
True, the file clerk occasionally hands out birth: if he does,
there is an emotional charge on it which will discharge and the
incident will reduce properly. The auditor by all means should take
it. True, a case sometimes stalls down and the auditor runs birth
anyway just to see if he can speed things up. But merely going back
to birth to put one's hands on an engram because he knows it is
there will bring about discomfort and lost time. Go prenatal as far
as you can and see what the file clerk will hand forth. Try
repeater technique in the basic area. You may get incidents which
will erase. If there is nothing there, find out about a painful
emotion engram in late life, the death of a friend, the loss of an
ally, a failure of a business, something. Blow a charge from it and
reduce it as an engram and then go back prenatally as early as
possible and see what has turned up. If the file clerk thinks you
need birth, he'll give it out. But do not ask for birth just to
have an engram to work, because it may prove to be a thoroughly
uncomfortable and fruitless endeavor. Birth will come up when it
will come up and the file clerk knows his business.
Charging into any late period of "unconsciousness" such as surgical
anesthetic, where physical pain is present in large quantities, can
bring about this needless restimulation. You can, of course, fare
better with such things in reverie than in hypnosis or
narco-synthesis where such a restimulation might bring about severe
results. In reverie the effect is light.
HANDLING THE SOMATIC STRIP
There are two little men on each side of the brain, a set for each
lobe, hanging by their heels. The outer one is the "motor strip,"
the inner one, the "sensory strip."* If you
* The "sensory strip" could be considered the "mental" side of the
switchboard, the "motor strip" the physical side.
352
wish to know more about the structure of these pairs dianetic
research will have the answer in a few more years. Currently there
is something known about them, a description. To an engineer who
knows dianetics the current description which will be found in the
library is not entirely reasonable. These are, possibly,
switchboards of some sort. Readings can be taken in the vicinity of
them - just aft of the temples - if you have a very sensitive
galvanometer, a galvanometer more sensitive than any on the public
market today. Those readings show emanations of a field of some
sort. When we have established the precise type of energy flowing
here, we can probably measure it with better precision. When we
know exactly where the thinking is done in the body we will know
more about these strips. All dianetic research has established to
date is that, beneath a welter of labels, nothing is actually known
which is worth recounting about these structures beyond the fact
that they have something to do with coordination of various parts
of the body. We do, however, refer to them for lack of something
better, in the course of therapy. Now that we know something about
function, further research certainly cannot help but yield
precision answers about structure.
The auditor can turn somatics on and off in a patient like an
engineer handles switches. More aptly, he can turn them on and off
in the body like a conductor runs a street car along a track. Here
we have the game referred to previously when we talked about the
time track.
In a patient who is working well, the "somatic strip" can be
commanded to go to any part of the time track. Day by day, hour by
hour, in normal life the somatic strip ranges up and down this
track as engrams are restimulated. The auditor, working a patient,
may find his own somatic strip obeying his own commands and some of
his own somatics turning on and off, a fact which is at worst
mildly uncomfortable. The whole body, the cells, whatever it is
that is moving we do not really know. But we can handle it and we
can assume that it at least
353
passes through the switchboard of the little men who hang by their
heels.
"The somatic strip will now go to birth," says the auditor.
The patient in reverie begins to feel the pressure of contractions
thrusting him down the birth canal.
"The somatic strip will now go to the last time you injured
yourself," says the auditor.
The pre-clear feels a mild reproduction of the pain of, perhaps, a
bumped knee. If he has sonic and visio recall, he will see where he
is and suddenly realize that it was in the office: he will hear the
clerks and typewriters and the car noises outside.
"The somatic strip will now go into the prenatal area," says the
auditor.
And the patient finds himself in the area, probably floating along,
not uncomfortable.
"The somatic strip will now go to the first moment of pain or
discomfort which can now be reached," says the auditor.
The patient drifts around a moment and suddenly feels a pain in his
chest. He begins to cough and feels depression all over him. Mama
is coughing (often source of chronic coughs). "Roll the cough,"
says the auditor. The patient finds himself at the beginning of the
engram and begins to run it. "Cough, cough, cough," says the
patient. He then yawns. "'It hurts and I can't stop,'" he quotes
his mother. "Go to the beginning and roll it again," says the
auditor. "Cough, cough, cough," begins the patient, but he is not
coughing as badly now. He yawns more deeply. "'Ouch. It hurts, it
hurts, and I can't seem to stop,'" quotes the pre-clear, listening
directly if he has sonic, getting impressions of what's said if he
does not have. He has picked up words now that were suppressed in
it by "unconsciousness." "Unconsciousness" is beginning to come off
with the yawns. "Roll it
354
again," says the auditor. "'I can't stop,'" says the pre-clear,
quoting all that he finds this time. The somatic is gone. He yawns
again. The engram is erased.
"The somatic strip will now go to the next moment of pain or
discomfort," says the auditor.
The somatic does not turn on. The patient goes into a strange
sleep. He mutters about a dream. Suddenly the somatic gets
stronger. The patient begins to shiver. "What occurs?" says the
auditor. "I hear water running," says the pre-clear. "Somatic strip
will go to the beginning of the incident," says the auditor. "Roll
it." "I keep on hearing water," says the pre-clear. (He must be
stuck, the somatics did not move. This is a holder.) "Somatic strip
will go to whatever it is that is holding," says the auditor.
"'I'll hold it in there awhile and see if it does some good,'"
quotes the pre-clear. "Pick up the beginning of the incident now
and roll it," says the auditor. "I feel myself being jostled," says
the pre-clear. "Ouch, something bumped me." "Pick up the beginning
and roll it," says the auditor. "'I'm sure I must be pregnant,'"
quotes the pre-clear. "'I'll hold it in there awhile and see if it
does some good.'" "Is there anything earlier?" says the auditor.
The pre-clear's strip goes to the earlier moment where he feels
pressure as she tries to get something into the cervix. Then he
rolls the engram and it erases.
This is handling of the somatic strip. It can be sent anywhere. It
will pick up the somatic first, usually, and then pick up the
content. Using repeater technique, the somatic is "sucked down" to
the incident and the somatics turn on. Then the incident is run. If
it does not lift, find an earlier incident simply by telling the
somatic strip to go to the earlier incident.
If the somatic strip does not move, which is to say, if somatics
(physical sensations) do not turn on and off, then the patient is
stuck somewhere on the track. He can be stuck in present time,
which would mean he has a
355
bouncer thrusting him all the way up the track. Use repeater
technique or merely try to send the somatic strip back. If it won't
go, get various bouncer phrases like "Can't go back," "Run a mile,"
etc. and with them suck the somatic strip down to the incident and
run it.
The somatic strip may move through an incident with full sensation
and yet, returning over the same ground several times will not
bring out data. Time after time this can be done without result in
some engrams: the somatics remain almost the same, undulating
through the incident each time but with no other content. Then the
auditor is "bucking" a denyer, a phrase such as "This is a secret,"
"Don't let him know," "Forget it," etc. In such a case he sends the
somatic strip to the phrase which denies the data: "Go to the
moment a phrase is uttered denying this data," says the auditor.
After a moment, "'If he found out about this, it would kill him,'"
quotes the pre-clear, either from sonic or from impressions. Then
the auditor sends the somatic strip back to the start of the
incident and it goes on through it, this time with other perceptic
content. The somatics, unless the incident is very late prenatal
with basic area full of material, undulate (fluctuate according to
the action of the engram) and diminish to either reduction or
erasure on consecutive recountings.
The auditor tells the somatic strip to go earlier, sometimes it
goes later. This is a misdirector. "Can't tell which way I am
going," "Going backwards," "Do just the opposite," these are the
type of phrases of the misdirector. The auditor recognizes that he
has one in the pre-clear, guesses it or discovers it from the
pre-clear's wording of the complaint about the action, and by
repeater or direct command of the strip, picks up the phrase and
the engram, reduces or erases it and continues.
If the somatic strip does not respond according to command, then a
bouncer, a holder, a misdirector, or a
356
grouper has been restimulated and should be discharged. The somatic
strip will be where the command is which forbids it to function as
desired.
There are good and bad conductors of this somatic strip. The good
conductor works closely with the file clerk, using such broad
orders as "The somatic strip will pick up the earliest moment of
pain or discomfort which can be reached," or "The somatic strip
will go to the highest intensity of the somatic you now have" (when
a somatic is bothering the patient). The bad conductor picks out
specific incidents which he thinks might be aberrative, bullies the
somatic strip into them and somehow beats them down. There are
moments when it is necessary to be quite persuasive with the strip
and moments when it is necessary to pick out incidents of physical
pain, but the auditor is the best judge of what should take place.
As long as the strip will work smoothly, finding new incidents and
running over them, he should not tamper with it beyond making sure
that he reduces everything the strip contacts.
A very fine way to thoroughly wreck a case is to put the somatic
strip into an incident, decide something else is more important and
go rushing off to it, get that half lifted and go off to something
else. By the time three or four incidents have been so touched but
not reduced, the strip stalls down, the track starts to bunch up
and the auditor has a snarl which may take him many hours of
therapy or a week or two of rebalancing (letting the case settle)
to bring back to a workable state.
The patient will sometimes want a somatic turned off. It has been
bothering him. That means that the strip is somehow hung up in some
incident which therapy or the patient's environment has
restimulated. Ordinarily it is not worth the time and trouble to
locate the incident. It will settle out of its own accord in a day
or two and it may be an incident which cannot be reduced because of
the earlier engrams.
357
The somatic strip is handled in a late incident just as it is sent
to an earlier one. Despair charges are contacted in the same way.
If you want a test to see if the strip is moving, or to test
recall, send it back a few hours and find out what you get. While
the prenatal area is easier to reach than yesterday in many cases,
some idea will be gained of how the patient is working.
PRESENT TIME
The beginning is conception. Your patients sometimes have a feeling
that they are sperms or ovums at the beginning of the track: in
dianetics this is called the sperm dream. It is not of any great
value so far as we know at this time. But it is very interesting.
It does not have to be suggested to the pre-clear. All one has to
do is send him to the beginning of the track and hear what he has
to say. Sometimes he has an early engram mixed up with conception.
At the late end of the track is, of course, now. This is present
time. It happens now and then that patients are not getting back to
present time because they have struck holders en route. Repeater
technique with holders will generally free the strip and get it to
present time.
A patient may get a trifle groggy with all the things which have
been happening to him in the course of a therapy session. And he
may have reduced resistance to engrams as he comes back up the
track and may thus trip a holder. The auditor should be very sure
the patient is up in present time. Occasionally the patient will be
so thoroughly stuck and the hour so advanced that the effort to
bring him all the way up is not feasible at the time. A period of
sleep will generally accomplish it.
There is a test whereby the auditor can tell if the pre-clear is up
to present time. He snaps a question at the pre-clear, "How old are
you?" The pre-clear gives him a
358
"flash answer." If it is the pre-clear's right age, the pre-clear
is in present time. If it is an earlier age, there is a holder
there, and the patient is not in present time. There are other
methods of determining this but it is not very important, by and
large, if the patient does fail to make it.
Snapping questions at people, asking how old they are, elicits some
surprising answers. Being stuck on the track is so common in
"normal" people that a day or two or a week or two of failure to
reach present time in a pre-clear is far from alarming.
Anyone who has a chronic psycho-somatic illness is definitely stuck
somewhere on the time track. Snap questions about it get, "Three,"
or "Ten years," or some such answer quite ordinarily even when
asked of people who suppose they are in good health. Reverie
reveals to them where they are on the track. Sometimes, in the
first session, a pre-clear shuts his eyes in reverie to find
himself in a dentist's chair at the age of three. He has been there
for the last thirty years or so because the dentist and his mother
both told him to "stay there" while he was shocky with pain and gas
- so he did, and the chronic tooth trouble he had all his life is
that somatic.
This doesn't happen very often, but you can find someone you know,
it is certain, who would flash answer "Ten years" and, being put in
reverie, would find himself, as soon as the engram came to view,
lying flat on his back in a ball park or some such situation, with
somebody telling him not to move until the ambulance came: that's
his arthritis!
Try it on somebody.
THE FLASH ANSWER
A device in common use in therapy is the flash answer. This is done
in two ways. The first mentioned here is the least used. "When I
count to five," says the auditor, "a phrase will flash into your
mind to describe where you
359
are on the track. One, two, three, four, five!" "Late prenatal,"
says the pre-clear, or "yesterday" or whatever occurs to him.
The flash answer is the first thing which comes into a person's
head when a question is asked him. It will come from the engram
bank, usually, and will be useful. It may be "demon talk" but it is
generally right. The auditor merely asks a question, such as what
is holding the patient, what denies him knowledge, etc., prefacing
the question with the remark, "I want a flash answer to this."
"I want a flash answer to this," says the auditor. "What would
happen if you became sane?" "Die," says the patient. "What would
happen if you die," says the auditor. "I'd get well," says the
patient. And with this data they then make an estimate of the
current computation on allies or some such thing. In this case, the
ally said to the pre-clear when he was ill, "I'd die, just die if
you didn't get well. If you're sick much longer I'll go insane."
And a former engram said the pre-clear had to be sick. And this is,
after all, just an engram. So repeater technique is used on the
word "die" and an ally is uncovered that the pre-clear never knew
existed and a charge is blown.
Much valuable data can be recovered by clever use of the flash
answer. If there is no answer at all, it means that the answer is
occluded and that is almost as good a reply as actual data since it
means some kind of a cover-up.
DREAMS
Dreams have been used considerably by various schools of mental
healing. Their "symbology" is a mystic foible forwarded to explain
something which the mystics did not know anything about. Dreams are
crazy house mirrors by which the analyzer looks down into the
engram bank.
360
Dreams are puns on words and situations in the engram bank.
Dreams are not much help, being puns.
Dreams are not much used in dianetics.
You will hear dreams from patients. Patients are hard to shut off
when they start telling dreams. If you want to waste your time, you
will listen.
VALENCE SHIFT
A mechanism used in dianetics is the valence shift.
We know the way a patient gets into valences when he dramatizes his
engrams in life. He becomes a winning valence and he says and does
rather much what the person in the winning valence did in that
engram.
The theory behind it is this: returned to a time the patient may
consider too painful to enter, he can be shifted into a valence
which felt no pain. A dull way to persuade him is to tell him he
does not have to feel the pain or the emotion and let him go
through it. This is very bad dianetics because it is a positive
suggestion and every safeguard must be taken to keep from giving
suggestions to the patient, for he may be very suggestible even
when he pretends not to be. But there is the valence shift and this
permits the patient to escape the pain and still remain in the
engram until he can recount it.
Example, father beating mother, unborn child knocked "unconscious."
The data is available in the father valence with no pain, in the
mother valence with her pain, in the child's valence with his pain.
The way to handle this, if the patient positively refuses to enter
it although he has somatics, is to shift him in valence. The
auditor says, "Go into your father's valence and be your father for
the moment." After some persuasion the patient does so. "Bawl your
mother out," says the auditor. "Give her a fine talking to." The
patient is now on that circuit which contains no "unconsciousness"
361
and approximates the emotion and the words his father used to his
mother. The auditor lets him do this a couple or three times until
the charge is somewhat off the engram. Then he turns the patient's
valence into the mother: "Be your mother for the moment now and
talk back to your father," says the auditor. The patient shifts
valence and is his mother and repeats his mother's phrases. "Now be
yourself," says the auditor, "and recount the entire incident with
all somatics and emotion please." The patient is able to
re-experience the incident as himself.
This works very well when one is trying to get at an ally. "Shift
valence," says the auditor to the returned patient, "and plead with
your mother not to kill the baby." "Now be a nurse," says the
auditor, with the pre-clear returned to some incident he seems very
fearful about entering, "and plead with a little boy to get well."
The patient will correct the auditor's concept of the script and
usually will proceed.
The patient will often refuse to go into a valence because he hates
it. This means there must be considerable charge in the person he
refuses to be.
This mechanism is rarely used but is handy when a case is stalling.
The father did not obey the holders or commands, he uttered them.
The nurse would not obey her own commands. And so forth. Thus many
holders and denyers can be flushed to view. It is useful in the
beginning of a case.*
* Valence shift is seldom used except where an engram is suspected
which will not otherwise be approached by the patient. He will
often approach the engram with valence shift when he will not
approach it as himself. Valence shift is somewhat undesirable when
employed on a suggestible subject since it violates the dianetic
rule that no positive suggestion be used beyond those absolutely
necessary in returning and recounting and uncovering data.
Therefore valence shift is seldom employed and rarely on a
suggestible person. It should be considered a last resort and
practiced only when the pre-clear is
362
TYPE OF CHAINS
Engrams, particularly in the prenatal area, are in chains. That is
to say there is a series of incidents of similar types. This is
useful classification because it leads to some solutions. The
chains one can most easily contact in a pre-clear are the least
charged. The most aberrative chains will usually be the hardest to
reach because they contain the most active data. Remember the rule
that what the auditor finds hard to reach, the analyzer of the
patient found hard to reach.
Here is a list of chains - not all the possible chains by any means
- found in one case which had passed for "normal" for thirty-six
years of his life.
COITUS CHAIN, FATHER. 1st incident zygote.
56 succeeding incidents. Two branches, father drunk and father
sober.
COITUS CHAIN, LOVER. 1st incident embryo.
18 succeeding incidents. All painful because of enthusiasm of
lover.
CONSTIPATION CHAIN. 1st incident zygote.
51 succeeding incidents. Each incident building high pressure on
child.
DOUCHE CHAIN. 1st incident embryo.
21 succeeding incidents. One each day to missed period, all into
cervix.
SICKNESS CHAIN. 1st incident embryo.
5 succeeding incidents. 3 colds. 1 case grippe. One vomiting spell
- hangover.
MORNING SICKNESS CHAIN. 1st incident embryo.
32 succeeding incidents.
CONTRACEPTIVE CHAIN. 1st incident zygote.
1 incident. Some paste substance into cervix.
entirely and completely unable to confront and attack an engram
which the auditor is certain is present: and this is rare.
363
FIGHT CHAIN. 1st incident embryo.
38 succeeding incidents. Three falls, loud voices, no beating.
ATTEMPTED ABORTION, SURGICAL. 1st incident embryo.
21 succeeding incidents.
ATTEMPTED ABORTION, DOUCHE. 1st incident foetus.
2 incidents. 1 using paste, 1 using lysol, very strong.
ATTEMPTED ABORTION, PRESSURE. 1st incident foetus.
3 incidents. 1 father sitting on mother. Two mother jumping off
boxes.
HICCOUGH CHAIN. 1st incident foetus.
5 incidents.
ACCIDENT CHAIN. 1st incident embryo.
18 incidents. Various falls and collisions.
MASTURBATION CHAIN. 1st incident embryo.
80 succeeding incidents. Mother masturbating with fingers, jolting
child and injuring child with orgasm.
DOCTOR CHAIN. 1st incident, 1st missed period.
18 visits. Doctor examination painful but doctor an ally,
discovering mother attempting an abortion and scolding her
thoroughly.
PREMATURE LABOR PAINS. 3 days before actual birth.
BIRTH. Instrument. 29 hours labor.
In that mother was a sub-vocal talker this made a sizable quantity
of material to be erased for the remainder of the patient's life
was in addition to this. This was a 500-hour case, non-sonic,
imaginary recalls which had to be cancelled out by discovering lie
factories before the above data could be obtained.
There are other chains possible but this case was picked because it
contains the usual ones found. Mother's lover is not very unusual,
unfortunately, for he puts secrecy into a case to such an extent
that when the case
364
seems very, very secret, then a lover or two will seem indictated.
But don't suggest them to a pre-clear. He may use them for an
avoid.
DIANETIC DON'TS
Don't give any patient a positive suggestion as therapy in itself
or to assist therapy.
Don't fail to give a canceller at every session's beginning and use
it at every session's end.
Don't ever tell a patient he can "remember this in present time"
because the somatic will come to present time and that is very
uncomfortable.
Don't ever, ever, ever, ever tell a patient that he can remember
everything that ever happened to him in present time because that
groups everything in present time if the patient has slid into a
deep trance. And that makes it necessary to unsnarl a whole case.
Want to waste two hundred hours?
Don't ever retaliate in any way when a patient in reverie gets
angry at you. Follow the auditor's code. If you get angry with him
you may throw him into an apathy which will take you many hours to
undo.
Don't evaluate data or tell a patient what is wrong with him.
Don't crow. If the pre-clear is your wife, or husband, or child,
don't rub it in that the favorite argument phrase was out of an
engram. Of course it was!
Don't question the validity of data. Keep your reservations to
yourself. Audit the information for your own guidance. If the
patient doesn't know what you think, the engrams will never get a
chance to evade.
Don't ever snap a patient to present time just because he begs for
it. If he is in the middle of an engram, the only way out of it is
through it. The power of the engram is slight when the patient is
returned to it. It turns on
365
hard when the patient comes to present time. The patient will have
a nervous shock if he is snapped to present.
Don't ever get frightened, no matter what kind of squirming or
squalling a patient may do. It isn't serious, any of it, although
it is sometimes dramatic.
Don't ever promise to clear a case: promise only to release it. You
may have to go away or work on something more urgent. And a broken
promise to a pre-clear will be taken very hard.
Don't interfere with the private life of a pre-clear or give him
guidance. Tell him to make up his own mind about what he should do.
Don't break the auditor's code. It is there to protect you, not
just the pre-clear. Therapy can't hurt him if you do but half a job
on it and do half of that wrong; breaking the code can make you
very uncomfortable because it will make you a target of the
pre-clear and cost you considerable extra work.
Don't leave engrams half-reduced when you are given them by the
file clerk.
Don't get inventive about dianetics until you have worked at least
one case out. And don't get too inventive until you have worked a
case which has sonic, a case which has shut-off sonic, and a case
which has imaginary sonic. Clear these and you will know. And you
will have met enough engrams to get some ideas that can be of great
benefit to dianetics. If you don't get ideas after that and after
you yourself are in therapy and cleared, there's something wrong.
Dianetics is an expanding science; but don't expand it until you
know which way it travels.
Don't mix gasoline and alcohol, or dianetics and other therapy
except purely medical, dispensed by a professional medical doctor.
Don't get a case snarled up and then take it to a psychiatrist who
knows no dianetics. Only dianetics can unsnarl dianetics and
yesterday's methods won't help your patient one slightest bit when
all he needs is another
366
run through the one you snapped him out of too fast. Take a cinch
on your nerve and send him back through the incident again. In
dianetics today's obvious nervous breakdown is tomorrow's most
cheerful being.
Don't quit, don't balk. Just keep running engrams. And one day
you'll have a release. And another day you'll have a clear.
TYPES OF SOMATICS
There are two kinds of somatics, those which properly belong to the
patient and those which belong to his mother or some other person.
The first actually happened, so did the second. But the patient
should not have his mother's somatics. If he does, if he is found
complaining of headaches whenever his mother has a headache, there
is an engram, very early, which says he must have whatever she has:
"The baby is part of me," "I want him to suffer as I suffer," etc.
Or the phrase may be some entirely misunderstood thing literally
taken. However, all this "comes out in the wash" and should be no
great concern of the auditor's.
"UNCONSCIOUSNESS"
While "unconsciousness" has been covered elsewhere in various ways,
in therapy it has two special manifestations. The yawn and the
"boil-off."
The engram of physical pain contains deep "unconsciousness" and if
it is going to lift, particularly in the basic area, it comes off
in yawns. After a first or second recounting, the patient starts to
yawn. These yawns are turning on his analyzer.
In a very extreme engram - a prenatal electric shock which mother
received - five hours of "unconsciousness"
367
"boil-off" have taken place during therapy. The shock lasted for
less than a minute but so close did it bring the individual to
death that when the incident was first contacted in therapy, he
swam and floundered and had strange dreams, muttered and mumbled
for five hours. That is a record. Forty-five minutes of this
"boil-off" is rare. Five or ten minutes of it are not uncommon.
The auditor will take a patient into an area. No somatic turns on.
But the patient begins to drowse into a strange kind of sleep. He
rouses from this from time to time, mutters something, usually
idiotic, rouses again with a dream and generally makes no progress
to all appearances. But progress is being made. A period when he
was almost dead is coming up to the surface. Soon a somatic will
turn on and the patient will run an engram a few times on command,
will yawn a little and then brighten up. Such a quantity of
"unconsciousness" was, of course, sufficient to keep his analyzer
about nine-tenths shut off when he was awake for, if it was near
basic, it was part of every other engram. Such an engram, with such
deep "unconsciousness," when released, produces a marked
improvement in a case, as much as a painful emotion engram at
times.
It is up to the auditor to sit it through no matter how long it
takes. It may make an uncleared auditor very sleepy to watch all
this but it should be done. He will rarely strike one that lasts an
hour but every case has such a period lasting from ten minutes to a
half hour.
He should stir the patient up once in a while and try to make him
go through the engram. There is a very special way to stir a
patient into life: don't touch his body for it may be highly
restimulative and make him very upset. Touch only the bottoms of
his feet with your hand or your own feet and touch them just enough
to jog him into attention for a moment. That keeps the "boil-off"
in progress and does not permit the patient to sag into ordinary
sleep.
368
The "boil-off" can be confused, by an inexperienced auditor, with
an engram command to sleep. However, if the auditor will observe
the patient closely, he will find that in the "boil-off" the
patient gives every appearance of being drugged while in a sleep
command, he simply goes to sleep and does it very smoothly. The
"boil-off" is a trifle restless, full of mutterings and
flounderings and dreams. The sleep is smooth.
An engramic command to go to sleep, acting on the returned
pre-clear, is broken by sending the somatic strip to the moment
when the sleep command is given. If the pre-clear contacts it and
goes over it, he will quickly awaken on the track and continue with
therapy.
The "boil-off" may be full of yawns, mutterings or grunts. Sleep is
usually quiet and gentle.
Just why this is called a "boil-off" and just why auditors are fond
of the term is obscure. It was originally and sedately named
"comatic reduction" but such erudition has been outvoted by the
fact that it has never been used.
If you are fond of listening to dreams, you will find them in
plenty in the "boil-off." As images on the desert are distorted by
the glass snakes of heat waves, so are the engramic commands
distorted to the analyzer through the veil of "unconsciousness."
LOCKS
It is one of the blessings of nature that the lock is something
which needs minor attention. A lock is an incident which, with or
without charge, is in conscious recall and which seems to be the
reason the aberree is aberrated. Perhaps this was another way the
bank protected itself. A lock is a moment of mental discomfort
containing no physical pain and no great loss. A scolding, a social
disgrace: such things are locks. Any case has thousands and
thousands of locks. The auditor will discover them in plenty if he
cares to waste time looking for
369
them. The treatment of these locks was the main goal of an old art
known as "hypno-analysis." Most of them can be reduced.
The key-in of an engram takes place at some future date from the
time the engram was actually received. The key-in moment contains
analytical reduction from weariness or slight illness. A situation
similar to the engram, which contained "unconsciousness," came
about and keyed-in the engram. This is a primary lock. Breaking it,
if it can be found, produces the effect of keying out the engram.
But it can be considered a waste of time even if it has some
therapeutic value and was used, without understanding, by some past
schools.
If an auditor wants to know how the case was reacting to life, he
can find some of these thousands and thousands of locks and look
them over. But that is probably all the interest he has in them,
for locks discharge. They discharge automatically the moment the
engram holding them is erased. A whole life rebalances itself when
the engrams are gone and the locks need no treatment. Neither does
the pre-clear now cleared need education as to how to think: like
the blowing of locks, this is an automatic process.
These locks lie down amongst the engrams sometimes. The pre-clear
may be deep in the prenatal area and suddenly think about a time
when he was twenty or, as is common in therapy, think about an
engram he heard from somebody else. This is a good clue. Pay no
further heed to the lock: find the engram to which it attached
itself, for there is an engram immediately with it. In dreams these
locks in distorted form, come swimming up out of the bank,
complicating the dream.
THE JUNIOR CASE
Do not take on a Junior for your first case if you can avoid it. If
father was named George and the patient is
370
called George, beware of trouble. The engram bank takes George to
mean George and that is identity thought de luxe.
Mother says, "I hate George!" "That means Junior," says the engram
though mother meant father. "George is thoughtless." "George must
not know." "Oh, George, I wish you had some sex appeal, but you
haven't." And so go the engrams. A Junior case is seldom easy.
It is customary to shudder, in dianetics, at the thought of taking
on a Junior case. An auditor can be expected to slave his hardest
when he has a case with non-sonic, which is off the time track, and
which is named after father or mother. Such cases resolve, of
course, but if parents knew what they did to children by giving
them any name which might appear in the engram bank, such as that
of parents or grandparents or friends, it is certain the custom
would vanish instanter.
RESTIMULATING THE ENGRAM
"Ask often enough and you will receive," is always true when
working the engram bank. Simply by returning into an area enough
times engrams will appear. If it is not there today, it will be
there tomorrow. But if it is not there tomorrow, it will be there
the day after and so forth. Emotional discharges are most certainly
located by asking for them time after time, returning the patient
over the part of the track where the charge is expected to lie.
What repeater technique will fail to do can be done by returning
the patient, session after session, to a portion of his life.
Sooner or later it will come into view.
OCCLUDED LIFE PERIODS AND PEOPLE
Whole areas of the time track will be found occluded. These contain
suppressors by way of engram command,
371
ally computations and painful emotion. Persons can vanish utterly
from sight for these reasons. They come to view after a few engrams
have been lifted in basic or the area has been developed as above.
ANIMOSITY TOWARD PARENTS
It always happens, when one clears a child or adult, that the
pre-clear goes through stages of improvement which bring him up the
tone scale and cause him, of course, to pass through the second
zone, anger. A pre-clear may become furious with his parents and
other offenders in the engram bank. Such a situation is to be
expected. It is a natural by-product of therapy and it cannot be
avoided.
As the case progresses the tone scale, of course, rises and places
the pre-clear in a state of boredom toward the villains who have
wronged him. At last he reaches Tone 4, which is the tone of the
clear. At this time he is very cheerful and willing to be friends
with people whether they have wronged him or not: of course he has
the data about what to expect of them, but he nurses no animosity.
If a parent feels that the child, knowing all, would turn against
him, then the parent is mistaken. The child has already, as an
aberree, turned very thoroughly against the parent whether his
analyzer knows all or not and the most uncertain and unlovely
conduct may result from further hiding of the evidence.
It is a matter of continual observation that the good release and
the clear feel no animosity whatever toward their parents or others
who had caused their aberrations and indeed stop negating,
defending and fighting so irrationally. The clear will fight,
certainly, for a good cause and he will be the most dangerous
opponent possible, but he does not fight for irrational reasons
like an animal and
372
his understanding of people is very much enlarged and his affection
can at last be deep. If a parent wishes love and cooperation from a
child, no matter what he has done to that child, permit therapy and
achieve that love and cooperation with the child self-determined
and no longer secretly in apathy or rage. After all, the clear has
learned the source of his parents' aberrations as well as his own;
he recognizes that they had engram banks before he did.
PROPITIATION
In the process of work a stage will be passed, in the upper range
of apathy, of propitiation. This conciliation is an effort to feed
or sacrifice to an all destructive force. It is a state wherein the
patient, in deep fear of another, offers expensive presents and
soft words, turns the other cheek, offers himself as a doormat and
generally makes a fool out of himself.
Many, many marriages, for instance, are marriages not of love but
of that shabby substitute, propitiation. People have a habit of
marrying people who have similar reactive minds. This is
unfortunate for such marriages are destructive to both partners.
She has a certain set of aberrations: they match his. She is
pseudo-mother, he is pseudo-father. She had to marry him because
father tried to murder her before she was born. He had to marry her
because mother beat him when he was a child. Incredible as it may
seem, these marriages are very common: one or the other partner
becomes mentally ill, or both may deteriorate. He is unhappy, his
enthusiasms crushed; she is miserable. Either with another partner
might be a happy person yet, out of fear, they cannot break apart.
They must propitiate each other.
The auditor who finds a marriage in this condition and attempts to
treat one of the partners, had better treat both
373
simultaneously. Or such partners had better treat each other and
soon. Tolerance and understanding are almost always fostered by
mutual help.
Propitiation is mentioned here because it has a diagnostic value.
People who start bringing the auditor expensive gifts are
propitiating him, and it probably means that they have a
computation which tells them, engramically, that they will die or
go crazy if they become sane. The auditor may enjoy the gifts, but
he had better start looking for a sympathy engram not yet suspected
or tapped.
LOVE
Probably no single subject in the concerns of Man has received as
much attention as Love.
It is not untrue that where one finds the greatest controversy,
there he will also find the least comprehension. And where the
facts are least precise there one can also find the greatest
arguments. And so it is with Love.
Without doubt Love has ruined more lives than war and made more
happiness than all the dreams of Paradise.
Entangled with a thousand songs a year and submerged beneath a
solid tonnage of poor literature, Love should have a proper chance
to be defined.
It has been discovered that there are three kinds of Love between
woman and man: the first is covered under the law of affinity and
is the affection with which Mankind holds Mankind; the second is
sexual selection and is a true magnetism between partners; the
third is compulsive "Love" dictated by nothing more reasonable than
aberration.
Perhaps in the hero and heroine legends there have been cases of
the second kind, and surely as one looks about him in this society
he can discover numbers of happy partnerships based on a natural
and strongly affectionate admiration. The third kind we find in
plenty:
374
tabloid literature is devoted to it and its travails; it crams the
courts with urgent pleas for divorce, with criminal acts and civil
suits; it sends children weeping into the corner away from quarrels
and it launches from its broken homes broken young women and men.
Dianetics classifies this third kind of love as "reactive mind
partnership." Here is a meeting of minds - but the minds are on the
lowest computational level possessed by man. Driven together by
compulsion, men and women mate who will find in that mating nothing
but sorrow and reduction of their hopes.
He is pseudo-brother who beat her regularly or he is pseudo-father
whom she had to mind. Maybe he is even pseudo-mother who screamed
ceaselessly at her but whom she had to placate, and he might be the
doctor who hurt her so savagely. She may be his pseudo-mother, his
pseudo-grandmother whom he had to love despite the way she
undermined his decision; she may be a pseudo-nurse in some
operation long gone or the pseudo-teacher who kept him after school
to whet her sadism upon him.
Before the marriage takes place they only know there is a
compulsion that they must be together, a feeling that each must be
extremely nice to the other. And then the marriage takes place and
more and more restimulation of ancient pain is felt until at last
each is ill and life, complicated now perhaps by unhappy children,
is an unhappy ruin.
The mechanism of propitiation carries with it covert hostility.
Gifts given without cause and beyond the ability to expend,
self-sacrifices which seem so noble at the time compose
propitiation. Propitiation is an apathy effort to hold away a
dangerous "source" of pain. Mistaken identity is one of the minor
errors of the reactive mind. To buy off, to nullify the possible
anger of a person perhaps long since dead but living now again in
the partner, is the hope of propitiation. But a man is dead who
will not sometimes fight. The hostility may be masked, it may be
entirely
375
"unknown" to the individual who indulges it. Certainly it is always
justified in the mind of the person who exerts it and is supposed
to be a natural consequence of some entirely obvious offense.
The wife who makes inadvertent blunders before the guests and by
them accidently gives away the truth of her husband's favorite
myth, the wife who forgets the little favors he has asked, the wife
who suddenly stabs him with a "logical" pin in the region of his
hopes: these are wives who live with partners whom they must, out
of some wrong done years before the courtship and by some other
man, propitiate, and these are wives who, propitiating, numb the
hopes and misunderstand the sorrows of their mates.
The husband who sleeps with another woman and "accidentally" leaves
the lipstick on his tie, the husband who finds her excellent
cooking bad and idleness in her days, the husband who forgets her
letters he must mail, the husband who finds her opinions silly,
these are husbands who live with partners whom they must
propitiate.
A soaring, roller-coaster curve of peace and war in the home,
failures to understand, mutual curtailment of liberty and
self-determinism, unhappy lives, unhappy children and divorce are
caused by reactive mind marriages. Compelled by an unknown threat
to marry, repelled by fear of pain from trust, this "meeting of
minds" is the primary cause of all marital disaster.
The law lacked definition and so invoked great difficulty in the
path of those involved in such marriages. The track of it is the
dwindling spiral of misery which accompanies all chronic
restimulation and leads only down to failure and to death. Someday
there will, perhaps, exist a much more sentient law that only the
unaberrated can marry and bear children. The present law only
provides that marriages must be at best most difficult to part.
Such a law is like a prison sentence for the husband, the wife and
the children - all and every one.
376
A marriage can be saved by clearing its partners of their
aberrations. An optimum solution would include this in any case
since it is most difficult for a wife or a husband to rise, even
when divorced, to any future plane of happiness: and where there
are children, if clearing is not effected, a great injustice has
been done.
It is usually discovered that when both partners in a reactive mind
marriage are cleared of aberration, life becomes considerably more
than tolerable; for human beings often have a natural liking even
when no sexual selection has been present. The restoration of a
marriage by clearing the partners may not bring about one of the
great loves that poets strummed about but it will at least bring a
high level of respect and cooperation toward the common goal of
making life worthwhile. And in many marriages so cleared it was
discovered that the partners, beneath the dirty cloth of
aberration, loved each other well.
A major gain to such a clearing is for the children's sake. Nearly
all marital discontent has as its major factor aberration on the
second dynamic, sex. And any such aberration includes a nervous
disposition toward children.
Where there are children, divorce does not answer, clearing does.
And with clearing comes a fresh new page of life on which happiness
can be written.
In the case of the reactive mind marriage, turn-about clearing is
often complicated by the concealed hostilities which lie below the
propitiative mechanism. It is wise for the partners to look outside
the home, each interesting a friend in a therapy turn-about. If
such mutual clearing is begun, with the partners working on each
other, much restraint of anger and exertion of patience must be
practiced, and the auditor's code must be most severely followed.
It requires a saintly detachment to bear the Tone One of the
partner who, returned to a quarrel, seasons the recountings with
further recrimination. If it must be
377
done, it can be done but, when many quarrels and travails have
beset a couple, it is easier if they each look without the home for
a therapy partner.
Additionally, there is a kind of "rapport" established between any
auditor and pre-clear and after the therapy session is done, a
strengthening of the natural affinity is such that a small deed or
word may be taken as a savage attack with the result of a quarrel
and the inhibition of therapy.
Men can be considered to be best audited by men and women by women.
This condition is changed when one deals with a woman who has such
severe aberrations about women that she is in fear around them or
when one is auditing a man who has deep fear of men.
The dynamics of men and women are somehow different and a wife,
particularly if there have ever been quarrels of any magnitude,
sometimes finds it difficult at times to be sufficiently insistent
to audit her husband. The husband may audit, in the usual case,
without great difficulty but when in therapy himself, his feeling
that he must rise superior to the situation forces him to attempt
auto-control, a thing which is impossible.
THE ERASURE
Sooner or later - if you keep trying - you will get basic-basic,
the earliest moment of "unconsciousness" and physical pain. You
will know when you have it, perhaps, only because things start to
erase rather than reduce. If the patient still has a sonic
shut-off, you can still erase: sooner or later that sonic will turn
on, perhaps not even until the case is almost finished. You will
reach basic-basic sooner or later.
The erasure, then, is more or less the same procedure as the
entrance. You erase all the early engrams, always the earliest you
can find, and you keep discharging painful emotion engrams either
in the basic area or in the
378
later periods after birth and later in life. You erase as much as
you can find in the early part of the case, then you release all
the emotion you can find later in the case (erase everything in
each engram you touch) and then you come back and find early
material.
The reactive engram bank is a hurrah's nest. The file clerk must
have a great deal of trouble with it. For things are keyed-in early
and late, sometimes all he can get is material under certain
topics, sometimes all he can get is material under certain somatics
(all teeth, for instance), sometimes he can go in an orderly parade
forward in time and give consecutive incidents: this last is the
most important proceeding.
Not until you have worked out every moment of physical pain and
discharged all the moments of painful emotion will the case be
cleared. There will be times when you are sure that you are almost
to the goal only to discover, going into the prenatal area again, a
new series of material uncovered by the later life painful emotion
you have released.
One day you will find a case which will not have any occlusions
anywhere on the track, which will no longer be interested in
engrams (apathy cases aren't interested at the start; clears, at
the top level, are not interested either, making a cycle, though
the clear is a long way from apathetic), which will have all
recalls, which will compute accurately and make no errors (within
the limitations of the data available) and which, in short, has an
exhausted engram bank. But do not be too optimistic, ever. Keep
looking until you are sure. Observe the case to make certain no
aberrations are displayed about anything, that dynamics are high in
it and that life is good. If this person now feels he can solve all
the problems of life, lick the world with one hand tied behind him
and feel a friend to all men, you have a clear.
The only way you can go wrong is to compute with the idea that
human beings are full of error and evil and sin and that if you
have made a person less unhappy and
379
above normal he is to bejudged a clear. This is a release.
In gold panning, it is true that every tenderfoot mistakes iron
pyrites - fool's gold - for gold. The tenderfoot will crow with
delight over a bright bit of something in his pan which, actually,
is worth a few dollars a ton. And then he sees real gold! The
moment he sees real gold in that pan, he knows what gold really
looks like. It cannot be mistaken.
Aside from the fact that psychometry would show a clear
phenomenally intelligent, would show his aptitude and versatility
wide, there is another quality, the human quality of a freed man.
You take a release through psychometry and show him to be above
normal, too. But a clear is a clear and when you see it you will
know it with no further mistake.
That a clear is no longer interested in his extinct engrams does
not mean he is not interested in the troubles of others. That a
person is not interested in his own engrams does not necessarily
argue a clear but may well be another mechanism, the apathy of
neglect. To have engrams and neglect them is a common aberration
with the reactive mind on a tone scale of apathy. To have no
engrams and neglect them is another thing. Every apathy case,
neglecting his engrams as an answer to his woe, insisting he is
happy, insisting, as he racks himself to pieces, that there is
nothing wrong with him, will, in work, particularly after
basic-basic is lifted, become interested in his engrams and more
interested in life. It is easy to tell the apathy case from the
clear for the two are at opposite ends of the spectrum of life: the
clear has soared up toward victory and triumph, the apathy case
knows victory and triumph are not for him and explains they are not
worth it.
What the life span of a clear is cannot be answered now; ask in a
hundred years.
How can you tell a clear? How close does the man
380
measure to optimum for Man? Can he adjust to his environment
smoothly? And far more important, can he adjust that environment to
him?
Sixty days and again six months after a clear has apparently been
effected, the auditor should again make a search for any neglected
material. He should question the possible clear carefully as to the
events of the past interval. In such a way he can learn of any
worries, concerns or illnesses which may have taken place and
attempt to trace these to engrams. If he cannot then find engrams,
the clear is definitely and without question, cleared. And he will
stay that way.
If a case merely stalls, however, and while aberration seems to be
present, engrams cannot be found, the cause probably lies with
thoroughly masked despair charges - painful emotional engrams.
These are not necessarily postnatal, they can be within the
prenatal period and involve circumstances which are very secret -
or so the engrams announce. Also, some cases have stalled and
proven "impenetrable" because of a current or immediately past
circumstance the patient has not revealed.
There are two reasons which can delay a case:
(a) the person may be so aberratedly ashamed of his past or so
certain of retribution if he reveals it that he does nothing but
avoid; and
(b) the person may be in fear because of some existing circumstance
or threat.
The auditor is not interested in what the patient does. Or in what
the patient has done. Dianetics treats of what has been done to the
person exclusively in therapy. What has been done by a patient is
of no concern. The auditor who would make it any concern is
practicing something other than dianetics. However, a patient,
because of his engrams, may become obsessed with the idea that he
must hide something in his life from the auditor. general classes
above cover the general conditions.
381
These active reasons, as under (a), may be such a thing as a prison
sentence, a murder hitherto unknown (although many people think
they have done murder who have not even threatened it to anyone),
abnormal sexual practices, or some such circumstance. The auditor
should promise not to reveal any confidential matter, purely as a
matter of routine and explain the principle of "done to. not done
by." And no auditor would taunt or revile a patient for having been
victimized by his engrams. As under (b) there may exist some
person, even the wife or husband, who has cowed the patient into
secrecy. One case is at hand where no advance was made although
there were many incidents contacted: the incidents would not reduce
or erase no matter where they were. It was discovered that this
case, a woman, had been beaten savagely and often by her husband
and that she had been threatened with death if she told the auditor
a word of these acts; and yet these acts contained the whole
despair charges of the case and had to be released. Seeing this,
finally suspecting, the auditor was able to gain her confidence and
locate the despair charges. Even if he had not gained her
confidence, by constant restimulation of late life areas he would
have provoked her tears. In another case, that of a small child,
"dub-in" recall was so obvious and lie factories were so busy that
the auditor at last realized that he was attempting to penetrate
not just the secrecy on an engram but the secrecy imposed upon a
child by some one at hand. The mother, in this case, out of the
idea that she would be apprehended, had furiously threatened the
child to say nothing about his treatment at home. There was more
than this behind the case, there were eighty-one attempted
abortions, an incredible number.
Anything is the business of an auditor if it has become an engram.
If society has jailed a man, if all is not well in the home, these
are things done to a person. What the person did to "deserve" this
treatment is of no concern.
382
THE FOREIGN LANGUAGE CASE
Now and again an auditor will encounter a strange sort of hold-up
in a case. He will be unable to get anything to clear or make sense
in the prenatal area and sometimes in childhood as well as the
prenatal area. He may be encountering a "foreign language case."
Occasionally the child did not know he was born to other parents
(who may have spoken a foreign tongue) than those he has known as
his parents. This is a special sort of mix-up of its own which is
rather easily resolved simply by running engrams. It is always
possible for the patient to forget that his parents spoke some
other tongue in the home. Another tongue than the one the patient
is using or other than that of the country in which the patient
resides is, in one way, an asset: it gives a prenatal area which is
very difficult to restimulate although it may still be acting upon
the patient's mind. But it is no asset to the auditor, who must now
deal with a patient who does not know the language, who may not
have sonic recall and yet has an engram bank full of data which
once had meaning and really is his basic language.
The best remedy for such a case is to get an auditor who knows both
the language used in the prenatal area and the present tongue.
Another remedy is to take a dictionary to the case and figure out
the bouncers et al. from the dictionary. Another way is to regress
the patient often enough into the infant period that he begins to
pick up the language again (making the file drawer of it come
forth) and then ask the patient for phrases which, in the foreign
tongue, would mean this or that. Gradually he may recover the
language and so exhaust the bank. This is an extremely difficult
case only when there was no childhood use of the other tongue.
Given childhood use of that tongue, the auditor simply keeps
returning the patient to childhood when he knew the tongue and then
returning him into the prenatal area: the patient can
383
translate what is happening. The cliches of other tongues than that
the auditor speaks are often quite productive of other literal
meanings than comparable cliches in the auditor's tongue. This
difference of cliche is a very responsible agent in the social
aberrations of one nation as they differ from those of another. "I
have hot," says the Spaniard. "I am hot," says the Englishman.
Engramically, they mean different things, even if they mean the
same to the analyzer.
384
CHAPTER IX - PART TWO
Mechanisms and Aspects of Therapy
EXTRA-SENSORY PERCEPTION
Every time the auditor has a case with dub-in recall or which is
highly charged with emotion, the case may return into the prenatal
area and start describing scenery. This is the awe and wonder of
some beholders. There is the patient in the womb and yet he can
"see" outside. The patient tells about father and mother and where
they are sitting and what the bedroom looks like, and yet there he
is in the womb. Some pretty theories can be advanced for this: one
of them is that the tortured foetus develops extra-sensory
perception in order to see what is coming next. ESP is an excellent
theory and some observation may confirm it but not in the foetus.
One must recall that the foetus, even if it has highly developed
and clever cells, is yet not a truly rational organism. The
presence of the engram does not necessarily mean that the foetus
could think. The engram became most severely aberrative when the
child finally learned speech. The engram is not a memory but a
recording of pain and percepts.
Returning a grown man or a child into the prenatal area returns
there an experienced mind which, connecting with these engrams,
forms conclusions. To listen to some pre-clears one would think
they read Keats and drank lemonade every afternoon at four
throughout the prenatal period.
To return reason and analytical power back into a period when
neither reason nor analytical power existed, of course, impinges
upon the returned individual many ideas. All he is supposed to run
are the engrams and
385
their contents. He may additionally, by dream mechanisms and
current computation, try to fashion in a whole technicolor picture
of the scenery.
This prenatal ESP does not in fact exist. It has been proven, after
considerable test, that whenever the returned pre-clear thinks he
sees something, the scenery itself is mentioned in the engrams and
gives him an imaginary picture of it. There is no prenatal ESP, in
other words. There are only descriptions and actions which suggest
scenery and these suggestions, operating now upon the imagination,
bring about the supposed visio.
This is most chronic with patients who have high powered lie
factories. When the auditor sees this he begins to form a notion of
the case he is engaged upon, he knows "dub-in sonic" may be used
and he should find and discharge all painful emotion he can reach
for it is this painful emotion which so disposes a case to avoid.
He can find, then, the lie factory itself, not the lie factory of
the lie factory which produces lie factories, but the actual engram
which causes all this delusion.
However, never bring a pre-clear up short on this material. Don't
tell him it is imaginary, you'll drive the lie factory into higher
effort. For there are sympathy computations here, despairful
losses, great prenatal pain and childhood neglect. And it would
take little to shatter what self-confidence this patient has
managed to assemble. Therefore walk softly, look for despair
charges, allies, sympathy engrams and get the lie factory. Then the
case will settle down and progress to clear.
ELECTRIC SHOCK
It has been found important, in entering a case to locate and
relieve all engrams caused by electric shock of
386
whatever kind. These seem to produce a grouping of engrams, whether
they are received prenatally (as some have been), accidentally, or
at the hands of psychiatrists. Any electric shock seems to have
more than usual force in the engram bank and apparently deranges
the memory files of both past and future events surrounding the
shock area. Further, electric shock injury contains a great depth
of "unconsciousness" which thereafter holds the analytical mind in
a reduced state.
TACIT CONSENT
In the case of two pre-clears working on each other, each one
assuming in his turn the auditor's role, a condition can arise
where each prevents the other from contacting certain engrams.
For example, pre-clear A has an ally computation concerning a dog.
He unknowingly seeks to protect this "pro-survival" engram within
himself although, of course, failure to release it will hinder
therapy. As he audits pre-clear B he has a tendency to project his
own problems into pre-clear B, which is to say he has some slight
confusion of identity. If pre-clear B is known to have some
"pro-survival" engram about a dog, then pre-clear A, auditing, will
actually avoid making pre-clear B contact B's own engram. This is a
mistaken idea that by letting B keep his dog engram, A can retain
his dog engram. This is "tacit consent." It might be summed as a
bargain: "If you don't make me get well, I won't make you get
well." This should be guarded against: once known that such a
condition exists and that such reluctance to clear the other is
manifested, "tacit consent" ceases.
It may also happen that a husband and wife may have a mutual period
of quarrels or unhappiness. Engaged
387
upon clearing each other, working alternately as auditor, they
avoid, unknowingly but by reactive computation, the mutual period,
thus leaving in place painfully emotional engrams.
Tacit Consent is not easily recognized by the individuals so
involved, and pre-clears, alternating as auditors, should be very
wary of it for it cannot do other than slow a case.
EMOTION AND PAIN SHUT-OFFS*
A case which manifests no emotion or cannot feel pain when emotion
and pain should be present in some incident is suffering from a
"feeling" shut-off: this most likely will be found in the prenatal
area. The word "feeling" means both pain and emotion: thus the
phrase, "I can't feel anything," may be an anesthetic for both.
If an exteriorized view of the incident (where the patient sees
himself and is not in himself) or what pretends to be prenatal
"ESP" is present, the emotional shut-off probably stems from
painful emotion engrams in late life or at least post-birth. If
there is no exteriorized view and the patient is within himself,
and yet no sharpness of pain or emotion manifests itself while he
is running through an engram, an early emotional shut-off or an
early pain shut-off should be suspected and should be located by
repeater technique. Run the words "No emotion" until a paraphrase
is obtained: run the words "I can't feel," or some other phrase
meaning the same thing and the patient, if the engrams are
available and are not suppressed by others, will eventually
respond.
* The somatic strip works in all shut-offs whether the patient
feels it or not. The somatic strip also obeys but no somatic tums
on when the incident is occluded by "unconsciousness," the somatic
appearing after the "boil-off."
388
It may happen that a case may "work" very well, which is to say
that engrams present themselves and can be run and reduced, without
emotion manifesting itself as part of the content and with somatics
which are dull and not so much pain as simply pressure. If the pain
and emotion shut-offs do not yield at first to repeater technique,
many engrams may have to be run in the basic area without pain or
emotion but only with pressure and word content. In such a case
pain and emotion can eventually be contacted, after which therapy
is more beneficial.
EXTERIORIZED VIEWS
Whenever you find a patient, returned, outside himself and seeing
himself, that patient is off the track. He should not be told so
but the despair charges, which is to say, the painful emotion
engrams, should be found as soon as possible and discharged. This
is something of the same mechanism as the ESP described above.
TELEPATHY
Every few cases some pre-clear may try to palm off telepathy as an
aberrative factor. This is more rainbow chasing. There may be
telepathy but so far as research has shown the foetus doesn't
receive any and even if he receives it, it is not aberrative in any
way.
Exhaustive tests were made on telepathy and ESP and in every case
an explanation was found which did not need to go into mind reading
or radar sight.
When a patient tries to tell the auditor that he is reciting
mother's thoughts received prenatally, be certain that somewhere
around there is an engram in which she says these exact words
aloud. Mothers, especially when
389
aberrated severely and especially when aberrated severely enough to
attempt abortion, have many engrams they dramatize. The power of
the dramatization commonly manifests itself as monologues. Some
mothers have a very great deal to say to themselves when alone. All
of this speech is, of course, transmitted to the child when he is
injured, and he may be injured without mother being injured as in
an attempted abortion. For considerable time after such an injury
the child is usually "unconscious" and in pain; he therefore
records in engrams these monologues (and often the voice is quite
loud). He doesn't hear it: it is simply cellularly recorded. All
such monologuing is aberrative, of course, and produces some
remarkable patterns of insanity and neurosis.
But of telepathy, there is none that is aberrative so far as we
know at this time. So the auditor should not accept telepathy any
more than he would accept ESP.
PRENATAL LIVING CONDITIONS
It is very noisy in the womb. A person may think he has sonic and
yet hear no "womb" sounds, which means that he does not have sonic
but only "dub-in." Intestinal squeaks and groans, flowing water,
belches, flatulation and other body activities of the mother
produce a continual sound.
It is also very tight in later prenatal life.
In a high blood pressure case, it is extremely horrible in the
womb.
When mother takes quinine a high ringing noise may come into being
in the foetal ears as well as her own - a ringing which will carry
through a person's whole life.
Mother gets morning sickness, has hiccoughs and gets colds, coughs
and sneezes.
This is prenatal life.
390
The only reason anybody "wanted" to "return to the womb" was
because somebody hit mother and yelled "Come back here!" so the
person does.
THE ENGRAM FILING SYSTEM
Engrams are not filed in the orderly fashion managed by a cleared
standard bank. Engrams are filed in a way which would defy
Alexander. Hence, it is difficult to know when the proper
consecutive item will appear.
Time, topic, value, somatic and emotion are the methods of filing.
The return from basic-basic may be an apparent orderly progress
into late life. Suddenly a despair charge is triggered and
discharged. The auditor looks back at the prenatal area and finds a
whole new series of incidents in view. Progress is then begun back
to present time, step by step, another discharge is triggered and
another series of prenatals come into sight. These are erased and
progress is made back toward present time when still another
despair charge is released and still more prenatals come to view.
These are erased and so forth and so on.
The engram filing system gives out data by somatic, time, topic,
value or emotion. Usually the file clerk hands out material on the
basis of time and topic. Emotion in the bank keeps the file clerk
from getting at a certain series of incidents; when the emotion is
discharged, the incidents become available and incidents are
brought out until another emotional charge stops the file clerk.
The wit of the auditor is most used, not in getting prenatals, but
in finding these later life emotional charges and discharging them.
All in all the engram filing system is very poor, unlike the
standard bank. But it is also very vulnerable now that we
understand it.
391
The engram filing system data can be erased. Standard bank data
cannot be erased. Pain is perishable - pleasure endures.
ALLEVIATION
The psycho-analyst or general counselor in human relations is
occasionally faced with a type of problem which dianetics, applied
in small quantity, can resolve easily.
It is possible, when a person has been too disturbed by an event of
the day to address himself to the problem at hand to alleviate his
disturbance with a few minutes of work.
A sudden change in the aspect of a patient, a sudden deterioration
of his serenity, generally stems from some incident which has
caused him mental anguish. Although this change of mind has its
source in the restimulation of an engram, the moment of
restimulation, which is a lock, may be addressed and alleviated
with success.
Using reverie or merely asking the patient to close his eyes, the
analyst can request him to return and be in the instant wherein he
was disturbed. That instant may be in the same day or the same week
as the office call. A moment of analytical shut-down will be
discovered wherein some restimulative person or circumstance upset
the equilibrium of the patient. This moment is a lock. It can be
recounted, ordinarily, as an engram and the latest source of
tension will relieve so that work can be continued. The engram
itself, upon which the lock depended, may not be accessible without
a full dianetic address to the problem.
The auditor, finding a patient much disturbed, can often save time
by relieving the lock which caused the immediate disturbance of the
pre-clear.
Locating locks on a wholesale basis is unremunerative
392
from a dianetic viewpoint since there are thousands and thousands
of them in every case. Locating the last lock, which is hindering
work, may be of benefit.
THE TONE SCALE AND REDUCTION OF ENGRAMS
Because it is very important, the mechanism of the reduction of a
late painful emotion engram must be specifically detailed.
The uses of reduction on late engrams are wide and various. When
the auditor gets into trouble with his pre-clear by some violation
of the auditor's code, he can treat the violation as a painful
emotion engram and reduce it, at which moment the effect of his
blunder will be gone in the pre-clear. The auditor merely returns
the pre-clear back to the blunder and runs the error itself as an
engram. When the husband has quarreled with his wife or she has
found out some unpleasant thing about his activities, he can treat
the quarrel or the discovery as a painful emotion engram and
release it with the result of no further worry about it by his
wife. When the little boy's dog has just been run over, the
incident can be treated as a painful emotion engram and released.
When the pre-clear's wife has just left him, treat the leaving as a
painful emotion engram and release it. Whatever the shock or upset,
it can be reduced in an individual by regular reduction technique
and the individual will cease to be troubled by it in the painful
emotion sense. It does not matter whether the engram occurred two
hours or ten years ago, painful emotion can be reduced from it. It
is run exactly like any other engram, beginning at the beginning of
the first shock with the patient returning to it and continuing far
enough along it to adequately embrace its first impact.
393
The aspect of this reduction is a pattern which does not much vary.
If the news struck the individual into apathy, then, as he
recounts, he will, unless there is a severe emotional shut-off
elsewhere, progress through the incident a time or two, perhaps,
before he contacts it properly. Then there will come the tears and
despair of apathy. Another two or three runs should bring up anger.
Then further recounting (always from beginning to end as
re-experience) brings the tone up into boredom. Further recounting
should bring it to Tone 3 or 4, release or, most favorably,
laughter.
This progress of the tones is the clue which led to the
establishment of the tone scale from 0 to 4. A Tone 4 is laughter.
There is sometimes a stage in the Tone 2 area where the patient
begins to be offhand and flippant. This is not Tone 4, it denotes
more data present. He may resist recounting at this point, saying
the incident is released. The auditor must insist on further
recounting whenever he finds the pre-clear unwilling to recount
again, for here is data being suppressed and more charge is
present. The flippancy is generally found to be an escape mechanism
and is sometimes uttered in the very words which are yet concealed.
More recounting (without the auditor insisting any certain words be
found) is then done until the patient reaches Tone 4.
Here we have, in vignette, the behavior of the whole engram bank in
the process of therapy. The entire bank rises from its initial tone
level eventually up to Tone 4, higher and higher as more and more
engrams are erased or reduced. The bank's rise is not, however, a
smooth upward curve for new engrams will be contacted with apathy
in them and some have manics in them. The painful emotion engram,
however, does a rather smooth rise. If it is going to release at
all it will rise up the scale. If it does not rise up the scale -
apathy to anger, anger to boredom, boredom to cheerfulness or at
least no concern
394
- then it is suppressed by an incident with similar content.
An engram may begin at Tone 1 - anger - and rise from there. If it
is found to be in Tone 2 at the start - boredom - it is hardly an
engram.
It may, however, be in a false Tone 2 and suppressed by other data
so that the patient merely appears bored and careless about it. A
few recountings may bring about release of it, at which moment it
will sag instantly to apathy - Tone 0 - and then come on up the
scale of the tones. Or another engram may have to be contacted.
The whole physical being follows this tone scale throughout a
course of therapy. The mental being follows this tone scale. And
painful emotion engrams follow it.
On an erasure down in the basic area or when returning from
basic-basic, two or three runs will erase an engram of whatever
kind unless it is the basic on a new chain of similar incidents.
But engrams which show no emotion anywhere on the track are
suppressed by emotional or feeling shut-offs, late painful emotion
or early engrams which simply shut off the pain or emotion in so
many words.
A case should be kept "live." There must be variability of emotion.
A monotone recounting, which is to say, one which does not vary the
engramic tone but merely reduces, is necessary in the basic area at
times, but anytime a patient becomes orderly and "well-drilled" and
expresses no concern over his engrams as he recounts them, there is
late painful emotion to be tapped or early emotional shut-off.
Conversely, if the patient is too continuously emotional about all
and anything, if he weeps awhile and then laughs hysterically,
therapy is being done but one should be alert for something
engramic in the prenatal area which says he has to be "too
emotional" - which is to say, he has engrams which make him
emotional by their command content.
395
The tone scale is very useful and is a good guide. It will be most
prominent in reducing post-speech engrams, but will also appear
earlier.
Any painful emotion engram can be run. If it is properly reducing
and not suppressed elsewhere, it follows the tone scale upwards to
Tone 4.
IF THE PATIENT DOES NOT WORK WELL
ON REPEATER TECHNIQUE
If, when the patient repeats a line the auditor has given him, the
patient does not move to an incident, three things can be wrong:
first, the patient cannot move on the track; second, the phrase may
be sensibly withheld by the file clerk until such time as it can be
cleared; or third, the phrase does not exist as engramic material.
The patient may also have strong "control yourself" engrams which
manifest themselves by his snatching control from the auditor,
being very bossy or simply refusing cooperation. Repeater
technique, when directed at "control yourself" and "I've got to
operate" and allied phrases, can then work.
The usual reason repeater technique does not work is that the
patient is in a holder. If he is returned but does not shift on the
track when repeater technique is given him, use repeater technique
on the holders.
Remember that a "feeling" shut-off can deny all somatics so that
the patient does not feel them. If the patient seems insensible to
trouble on the track, be sure that he has a feeling shut-off.
A large emotional charge may also inhibit repeater technique.
The somatic strip does not go well into emotional charges - painful
emotion engrams - and repeater technique is therefore indictated.
If repeater technique does not work, although it is seldom
necessary, one may request the patient to imagine
396
"the worst thing that could happen to a baby" and so forth and from
his conversation may be garnered new phrases for repeater work
which will take the patient into an engram.
SINGLE WORD TECHNIQUE
Words as well as engrams exist in chains. There is always a first
time for the recording of each word in a person's life. The whole
common language may lie within the engram bank. The possible
combinations of that common language may well approach infinity.
The ways various denyers, bouncers et al., can be phrased are
always beyond count.
Two "happy" facts exist, however, to reduce the auditor's labors.
First, the dramatis personae of his engrams are at this date
aberrated. Each aberree has standard dramatizations which he
repeats over and over in restimulative situations. The reaction,
for instance, of the father to the mother is repetitious: if he
utters a set of phrases in one engramic situation, he will utter it
in subsequent similar situations. If the mother, for example, has
an accusative attitude toward the father, then that attitude will
be expressed in certain terms and these terms will appear in engram
after engram. The second fact is that where the father or mother is
abusive to the other, the other will eventually begin to suffer
contagion of aberration and will repeat the other's phrases. In a
first-born child, where parental brutality is present, one can
observe the parents through the engrams of the patient and see one
or the other gradually take up the other's phrases either to worry
about themselves or to redeliver them. All this tends to make the
engrams appear in chains of incidents, each incident much like the
next. When one has the basic on each type of chain, the subsequent
incidents on that chain are sufficiently similar to permit many
incidents to be reduced or erased immediately after the
397
first is found. The first incident on the chain, the basic for that
chain, holds the others more or less in place and out of sight;
therefore, the basic of the chain is the goal.
Each word in the bank can be discovered to have been delivered to
the bank for the first time. Words also reduce in chains with the
virtue that each subsequent appearance of the word in the bank
locates automatically a new engram, which, of course, is reduced or
erased as soon as it is contacted or as soon as its basic can be
located.
Single word technique is very valuable and useful. It is a special
kind of repeater technique. On most patients, the repetition by
themselves of one word will cause the associated words to suggest
themselves. Thus, one asks the patient to repeat and return on the
word Forget. He starts repeating the word Forget and shortly has an
associated set of words, making a phrase, such as "You can never
forget me." Here we have a phrase in an engram and the remainder of
the engram can then be run.
When a late engram has had to be contacted to progress a case and
yet will not relieve, it is possible to take each word or phrase of
that late engram and run it back with repeater technique. Thus the
earlier engrams which hold this late engram in place can be located
and reduced, and eventually one will have reduced the late engram
itself. This, by the way, is a common and useful practice.
There is a law about this: When any phrase or word in an engram
will not reduce, the same phrase or word occurs in an earlier
engram. One may have to discharge late emotion to get the earlier
phrase, but ordinarily single word repeater or phrase repeater will
attain it.
There are only a few dozens of words necessary to get almost any
engram. These would be the key single word repeaters. They are such
words as these: forget, remember, memory, blind, deaf, dumb, see,
feel, hear, emotion, pain, fear, terror, afraid, bear, stand, lie,
get, come, time, difference, imagination, right, dark, black,
398
deep, up, down, words, corpse, dead, rotten, death, book, reed,
soul, hell, god, scared, miserable, horrible, past, look,
everything, everybody, always, never, everywhere, all, believe,
listen, matter, seek, original, present, back, early, beginning,
secret, tell, die, found, sympathy mad, crazy, insane, rid, fight,
fist, chest, teeth, jaw, stomach, ache, misery, head, sex,
Anglo-Saxon four letter words of sex and profanity, skin, baby, it,
curtain, shell, barrier, wall, think, thought, slippery, confused,
mixed, smart, poor, little, sick, life, father, mother, familiar
names of parents and any others of household during prenatal and
childhood period, money, food, tears, no, world, excuse, stop,
laugh, hate, jealous, shame, ashamed, coward, etc.
Bouncers, denyers, holders, groupers, misdirectors et al., each
have their common single words and these are few. The bouncer would
contain: out, up, return, go, late, later, etc.
The holder would contain: catch, caught, trap, trapped, stop, lie,
sit, stay, can't, stuck, fixed, hold, let, lock, locked, come, etc.
The grouper would contain: time, together, once, difference, etc.
The single word technique shines nowhere brighter than in the
Junior Case - where the patient carries the name of one or another
parent or grandparent. By clearing out the patient's name from the
prenatal engrams (where it is applied to another person but
misinterpreted by the patient as himself) the patient can regain
his own definition and valence. Always use the patient's first name
and last name (separately) as repeater, Junior or not.
If the engram bank is blank on a phrase, it probably is not blank
on a common word. Any small dictionary will provide an ample fund
for single word technique. Use also any list of familiar first
names, male and female, and you may discover allies or lovers not
otherwise contactable.
399
The painful emotion engram sometimes yields slowly by simply
directing the somatic strip to it. Sometimes the patient finds it
difficult to approach an overcharged area. Single word technique
using the name of the ally, if known, or words of sympathy,
endearment, death, rejection or farewell and the love name of the
patient as a child in particular will often yield swift results.
By the way, in using repeater technique, word or phrase, the
auditor must not stir the case up too much. Get what shows and
reduce that. Reduce the somatic the person manifests when he goes
into reverie and always try to find it for a while, even if you
don't succeed. If you stir up something en route down a chain which
won't reduce, mark it to be reduced when you have the basic.
Using single word technique one often obtains phrases which would
otherwise remain hidden but which come into view when the key word
is tapped. Using "hear" as a single word, for instance, the
following phrases came to light which had thoroughly impeded the
progress of the case. No effort was being made to contact such an
engram in the prenatal area. Indeed, the "fight" chain had never
been suspected since the patient had never dramatized it and
because such a violent prenatal fight chain existed the fact that
his parents fought violently in the home was utterly struck from
the standard banks so that he would have denied such a thing with
shocked surprise had it been suggested. The somatic was unusually
severe, caused by the father kneeling on the mother and choking
her:
Patient repeated "hear" several times, the auditor asking him to
return to an incident containing that word. The patient continued
to repeat and then suddenly sank into a stupor when he reached the
prenatal area. He remained in this "boil-off" for about thirty
minutes and then, the auditor rousing him occasionally to
400
make him repeat the word "hear," manifested a strong somatic.
"Hear" became "Stay here!" The somatic became stronger and "Stay
here" was repeated until the patient could move freely on the
track through the engram. He contacted his father's voice and was
most reluctant to carry on with the engram, due to its intense
emotional violence. Coaxed and edged into it by the auditor, the
engram was recounted.
FATHER: "Stay here! Stay down, damn you, you bitch! I'm going to
kill you this time. I said I would and I will. Take that!
(Intensified somatic as his knee ground into the mother's abdomen)
You better start screaming. Go on, Scream for mercy! Why don't you
break down? Don't worry, you will! You'll be blubbering around
here, screaming for mercy! The louder you scream the worse you'll
get. That's what I want to hear! I'm a punk kid, am I? You're the
punk kid! I could finish you now but I am not going to! (Auditor
suddenly has trouble, patient taking last phrase literally and
stopping his recounting; auditor starts him again) This is just a
sample. There's a lot more than that where it came from! I hope it
hurts I hope it makes you cry! You say a word to anybody and I'll
kill you in earnest! (Patient now running ahead with such an
emotional surge that commands are less active on him. This
command to remain quiet disregarded) I'm going to bust your face
in. You don't know what it is to be hurt! (Somatic lessened by
removal of the knee) I know what I'm going to do to you now! I'm
going to punish you! I'm going to punish you and God is going to
punish you! I'm going to rape you! I'm going to stick it into you
and tear you! When I tell you to do something you've got
401
to do it! Get up on the bed! Lie down! Lie still! (Crack of bones
as she is struck in the face with a fist. Blood pressure coming up
and hurting baby) Lie still! You'll always be here! I'm going to
finish this! You're unclean! You are dirty and diseased! God's
punished you and now I'm going to punish you! (Coitus somatic
begins, very violent, further injuring child) You've got something
terrible in your past. You think you've got to be mean to me! You
try to make me feel like nothing! You're the one that's nothing!
Take it, take it!" (String of sexual banalities screamed for about
five minutes) The patient recounted this three times and it erased.
It was basic-basic! Three days after conception as nearly as could
be judged by the subsequent days to the missed period. It threw
into view almost all the other important data in the case, which
then resolved and was cleared.*
The single word might have landed the patient on some other of the
"hears" in the case. In this event it
* Apropos of this text, it crossed the "fight chain" with the
"coitus chain," occluding both. Wherever this engram originated or
where the engrams which are compounded into it came from, is of
course a matter of antiquity. This was home conduct for Papa, a
character confirmed by the fact that both his wife and child were
almost psychotic. Papa was not "psychotic." He was a "bold,
forceful" and "forthright" man, president of a bank and renowned
for his hard-headedness. The son was a drunkard, a soap-box
atheist, and negated against everything his father represented
including money. The son, while still in therapy, incautiously told
his father of this engram and the father raved wildly against
dianetics for two days and then came down with "rheumatic fever" in
which state he sent for the auditor in the case to clear him, which
was done. Both cases were sonic shut-offs, pain and emotion
shut-offs.
402
would be necessary to pick it up at its earliest moment or the
remainder of the engram might not erase or reduce.
The word "hear" might also have landed the patient later on the
track in which case the engrams would have had to have been traced
back earlier until one was found which would erase, reducing each
one as it was encountered until the earliest was reached when all
would erase.
In using single word repeater as in phrase repeater, the auditor
should not permit a rapid, unmeaning repetition but a slow repeat,
the auditor requesting the somatic strip to return the while and
asking the patient to contact anything else which might associate
with the word.
Caution: if the patient is not moving on the track, do not give him
repeater words or phrases at random as these will pile up engrams
where the patient is stuck. Use only efforts to get the patient
moving on the track by discovering and reducing the phrase that is
holding him.
Caution: basic-basic does not always have words in it, often being
only painful and accompanied with womb sounds. It will,
nevertheless, hold everything in place by its perceptics.
SPECIAL CLASSES OF COMMANDS
There are several distinct classes of commands. They are outlined
here for ready reference with some samples of each.
Aberrative commands can contain anything. The auditor does not much
concern himself with them. Refer back to our young man and the coat
in Book II and there we find, in the guise of hypnotic commands,
some idea of what aberrative commands are. "I am a jub-jub bird,"
"I can't whistle Dixie," "The world is all against me," "I hate
policemen," "I am the ugliest person in the world," "You haven't
any feet," "The Lord is going to punish me," "I always have to play
with my thing," may be very interesting to the patient and even
amusing to the auditor
403
and may have caused a considerable amount of trouble in the
patient's life. Where dianetic therapy is concerned, these all come
up in due course. Looking for a specific aberration or a specific
somatic is sometimes of interest and sometimes of some use, but it
is not usually important. These aberrative commands may contain
enough data to make the patient a raving zealot, a paranoid or a
catfish, but they are nothing to the auditor. They come up in due
course. Working on them or about them is secondary and less.
The primary business of the auditor in any case is to keep the
patient moving on the track, keep his somatic strip free to come
and go and reduce engrams. The moment the patient acts as though or
responds as though he was not moving or the moment the file clerk
will not give forth data, then something is wrong and that
something has to do with a few classes of phrase: there are
thousands of such phrases contained in engrams, variously worded,
but only five classes:
DENYERS
"Leave me alone," which means, literally, that he must leave the
incident alone.
"I can't tell" means he can't tell you this engram.
"It's hard to tell" means it is hard to tell.
"I don't want to know" means he has no desire to know this engram.
"Forget it" is the classic of the sub-class of denyer, the
forgetter mechanism. When the engram simply won't come to view but
there is a somatic or a muscle twitch, send the somatic strip to
the denyer. It is often "Forget it" or "Can't remember" as a part
of the engram. "I don't know what's going on" may be Mama telling
Papa something but the pre-clear's analyzer, impinged, then doesn't
know what's going on.
404
"It's beyond me" means he is right there but he thinks he isn't.
"Hold on to this, it's your life!" makes the engram "vital" to
existence.
"It can't be reached," "I can't get in there," "Nobody must know,"
"It's a secret," "If anybody found out, I'd die," "Don't talk," and
thousands more.
HOLDERS
The holder is the most frequent and the most used since whenever
the pre-clear can't shift on the track or come to present, he is in
a holder. A holder combined with a denyer will still hold: if it
can't be found, look for the denyer first, then the holder.
"I'm stuck" is the classic phrase.
"That fixed it" is another.
"I'm caught" doesn't mean to the pre-clear what Mama meant when she
said it. It may mean to her that she is pregnant but it tells the
pre-clear he is caught on the track.
"Don't move," "Sit there until I tell you to move," "Stop and
think" (on this last phrase, when it is uttered on a first
recounting the auditor may have to start him going again for he
does just that, he stops and thinks and he would stop there and
think for some time: the auditor will see this strange obedience to
this literal nonsense as he works a case).
And thousands more. Any way words literally understood can stop a
person or keep him from moving,
BOUNCERS
The bouncer could best be demonstrated by a curve. The pre-clear
goes back into prenatal and then finds
405
himself at ten years of age or even present time. That's a bouncer
at work. He goes early on the time track: it says come back up.
When the pre-clear can't seem to get earlier, there is a bouncer
ejecting him from an engram. Get a comment from him on what's
happening. Take the comment or some phrase which would be a bouncer
and use repeater technique until he settles back down on the
engram. If he contacts it easily, it won't bounce him again.
"Get out" is the classic bouncer. The patient usually goes toward
present time.
"Can't go back at this point" may mean Mama has decided she will
have to have the baby after all or finish the abortion but to the
pre-clear it means he must move on up the time track or that he
can't get any earlier period.
"Get up there."
"Run a mile" ("Beat it," would not be a bouncer; it would mean the
pre-clear should beat the engram).
"I must go far, far away," so he does.
"I'm growing up," "Blow you higher than a kite," "Batter up." And
thousands more.
GROUPER
The grouper is the nastiest of all types of command. It can be so
variously worded and its effect is so serious on the time track
that the whole track can roll up into a ball and all incidents then
appear to be in the same place. This is apparent as soon as the
pre-clear hits one. The grouper will not be discovered easily. But
it will settle out as the case progresses and the case can be
worked with a grouper in restimulation.
"I have no time" and "Nothing makes any difference" are the classic
groupers.
"Everything comes in on me at once" means just that.
406
"They're all in there together," "Screwed up," "Balled up," "It's
all right here."
"You can remember all this in present time" (a serious auditor
error if he uses this to a suggestible patient, for it will
gloriously foul a case).
"You associate everything."
"I am tangled up," "Jam everything in there at once,"
"There's no time," and thousands more.
MISDIRECTOR
This is an insidious character, the misdirector. When it appears in
an engram, the patient goes in wrong directions, to wrong places,
etc.
"You're doing it all backwards."
"All up now" is a grouper and a misdirector.
"Always throwing it up to me" puts the pre-clear up the track some
distance and from there he tries to pick up engrams.
"You can't go down" is partly bouncer, partly misdirector.
"We can't get to the bottom of this" keeps him off from
basic-basic.
"You can start over again" keeps him from finishing the recounting,
whereupon he goes back to the beginning of the engram instead of
running it.
"Can't go through that again" keeps him from recounting.
"I can't tell you how it began" keeps him starting his engrams in
the middle and they will not then reduce.
There are many such phrases.
"Let's settle down" and all "settlings" make him drift backwards
down the track.
"I am coming down with a cold" puts the aberree in a common cold
engram. This can be counted upon to make every cold much worse.
407
"Come back here" is really a call back but it directs him away from
where he should be. A patient who reaches present time with
difficulty and then begins to go back has a "Come back here" or a
"Settle down."
"Down and out" misdirects him not only away from present time but
to the bottom of the track and off it. This is a misdirector and a
derailer all at once.
"Can't get past me" is a misdirector on the order of a reverser.
"You don't know down from up" is the classic phrase. "I'm all
turned around."
A special case is the derailer which "throws him off the track" and
makes him lose touch with his time track. This is a very serious
phrase since it can make a schizophrenic and something of this sort
is always to be found in schizophrenia. Some of its phrases throw
him into other valences which have no proper track, some merely
remove time, some throw him bodily out of time.
"I don't have any time" is a derailer as well as a grouper.
"I'm beside myself" means that he is now two people, one beside the
other.
"I'll have to pretend I am somebody else" is a key phrase to
identity confusion.
"You're behind the times" and many more.
There is another special case of the misdirector. The auditor says
to go to "present time" and the file clerk throws out a phrase with
"present" in it. It does not matter if the present in the phrase
was a Christmas present, if it is in the prenatal area, the
pre-clear goes there, ignoring what the auditor meant.
"That's all at present," is a vicious phrase, putting everything in
present time.
"It's a lovely present."
And others. "Now" is sometimes confused with present time but not
often. The auditor should not say "Come to now," because if he did
he would find more
408
"nows" than he could comfortably handle. "Present" is a rarer
engramic word and is therefore used. "Now" appears too frequently.
Several severely aberrated persons who had little memory of the
past have been found to be entirely off their time tracks,
regressed into the prenatal area and stuck when the case was
entered. As far as their wits were concerned, they had only a few
months of past from where they were back to conception. And yet
these people had managed somehow to function as normals.
Emotional charges usually hold the person off his track and,
indeed, are the only things which give these engram commands any
power according to current findings.
DIFFERENCES
There are two axioms about mind function with which the auditor
should be familiar.
I. THE MIND PERCEIVES, POSES AND RESOLVES PROBLEMS RELATING TO
SURVIVAL.
II. THE ANALYTICAL MIND COMPUTES IN DIFFERENCES. THE REACTIVE MIND
COMPUTES IN IDENTITIES.
The first axiom is of interest to the auditor in his work because
with it he can clearly establish whether or not he is confronting a
rational reaction. The seven-year-old girl who shudders because a
man kisses her is not computing; she is reacting to an engram since
at seven she should see nothing wrong in a kiss, not even a
passionate one. There must have been an earlier experience,
possibly prenatal, which made men or kissing very bad. All
departures from optimum rationality are useful in locating engrams,
all unreasonable fears and so forth are grist to the auditor's
mill. The auditor, with the above law, should study
409
as well, the Equation of the Optimum Solution. Any departure from
optimum is suspect. While he cares little about aberrations, at
times a case will stall or seem to have no engrams. He then can
observe the conduct of his patient and his patient's reactions to
life in order to gain data.
The second law is dianetics' contribution to logic. In the
philosophic text this is more fully entered. Aristotle's pendulum
and his two-valued logic were abandoned not because of any dislike
of Aristotle but because broader yardsticks were needed. One of
these yardsticks was the spectrum principle whereby gradations from
zero to infinity and infinity to infinity were used and Absolutes
were considered utterly unobtainable for scientific purposes.
In the second axiom the mind can be conceived to recognize
differences very broadly and accurately, in its nearest approach to
complete rationality and then, as it falls away from rationality,
to perceive less and less difference until at last it achieves a
near approach to utter inability to compute any difference in time,
space or thought and so can be considered completely insane. When
this follows one thought only, such as a sweeping statement that
"All cats are the same," it is either careless or insane since all
cats are not the same, even two cats who look, act and sound alike.
One could say, "Cats are pretty much the same," and still be
dealing with rather irrational thought. Or one could recognize that
there was a species felix domesticus but that within it cats were
decidely different not only from breed to breed but cat to cat.
That would be rationality, not because one used Latin but because
he could tell the difference amongst cats. The fear of cats has as
its source an engram which usually does not include more than one
cat and that is a very specific cat of a specific breed with a
certain (or perhaps uncertain) personality. The pre-clear
410
who is afraid of all cats is actually afraid of one cat and a cat
which is most likely dead these many years at that. Thus as we
swing from complete rationality down to irrationality there is a
narrowing of differences until they nearly vanish and become
similarities and identities.
Aristotle's syllogism in which two things equal to the same thing
are equal to each other simply does not begin to work in logic.
Logic is not arithmetic, which is an artificial thing Man invented
and which works. To handle a problem in logic the mind flutters
through an enormous mass of data and computes with dozens and even
hundreds of variables. It does not and never did think on the basis
that two things equal to the same thing are equal to each other
except when employing mathematics it had conceived the better to
resolve abstract problems. It is an abstract truth that two and two
equal four. Two what and two what equal four? There is no scale
made, no yardstick or caliper or microscope manufactured, which
would justify the actuality, for instance, that two apples plus two
apples equal four apples. Two apples and two apples are four apples
now if they are the same apples. They would not equal four other
apples by any growth or manufacturing process ever imagined. Man is
content to take approximations and call them, loosely, exactitudes.
There is no Absolute anything save in abstract terms set up by the
mind to work out exterior problems and achieve approximations. This
may seem to be a stretched conception, but it is not. The
mathematician is very well aware that he is working with digit and
analogue approximations set up into systems which were not
necessarily here before Man came and will not necessarily be here
after he is gone. Logic, even the simple logic of wondering about
the wisdom of going shopping at ten, is handling numerous
variables, indefinites and approximations. Mathematics can be
invented by the carload lot. There is no actual Absolute, there is
only a
411
near approach. Our grammarians alone, much behind the times,
insist, probably in memory of the metaphysician, on Absolute
Reality and Truth.
This is here set down partly because it may be of interest to some
but mainly because the auditor must realize that he has an accurate
measuring stick for sanity. Sanity is the ability to tell
differences. The better one can tell differences, no matter how
minute, and know the width of those differences, the more rational
he is. The less one can tell differences and the closer one comes
to thinking in identities (A = A) the less sane he is.
A man says, "I don't like dogs!" Spot it, auditor, he has an engram
about one or two dogs. A girl says, "All men are alike!" Spot it,
auditor, here's a real aberree. "Mountains are so terrible!"
"Jewelers never go any place!" "I hate women!" Spot them. Those are
engrams right out in broad daylight.
Those engrams which inhibit the analytical mind in differentiating
are those engrams which most seriously inhibit thinking.
"You can't tell the difference," is a common engram. "There is no
difference," "Nothing will ever make any difference to me again,"
"People are all bad," "Everybody hates me." This is insanity bait,
as the auditors say, and puts a man "spin-bin bound."
There is another class of identity thought and that is the group
which destroys time-differentiation. "You don't know when it
happened!" is a classic phrase. "I don't know how late it is," and
others have a peculiar effect on the mind for the mind is running
on a precision chronometer of its own and the engrams can
thoroughly misread the dial. On a conscious level one goes along
fairly well on analytical time. The engrams slide around back and
forth according to when they are keyed-in or restimulated. An
engram may underlie today's action which belonged forty years ago
on the time track and should be back there. It is not remarks about
time difference so much that aberrate, it is the untimed character
of
412
engrams. Time is the Great Charlatan, it heals nothing, it only
changes the environmental aspects and a man's associates. The
engram of ten years ago, with all its painful emotion, may be
encysted and "forgotten" but it is right there, ready to force
action if restimulated today.
The reactive mind runs on a dime-store wrist watch, the analytical
mind runs on a battery of counter-checking chronometers of which a
liner could be proud. The cells think that wrist watch is a pretty
fair gimmick - and it was, it was, back there in the days when
Man's ancestor was washed in by the waves and managed to cling to
the sand.
Thus, a primary test for aberration is similarity and identity, the
primary test for rationality is differentiation and the minuteness
or largeness with which it can be done.
"Men are all alike," she says. And they are too! To her. Poor
thing. Like the fellow who raped her when she was a kid, like her
detested father who said it.
RELATIVE IMPORTANCES
AND "BELIEVE" AND "CAN'T BELIEVE"
The auditor will find himself confronted with two arch enemies in
"you must believe it," and "I can't believe."
The mind has its own equilibrium and ability and it is aided no
more by engrams than an adding machine is aided by a held-down
seven.* One of the most important functions of the mind is the
computing of the relative importances of data.
In discovering and conducting research on dianetics, for instance,
there were billions of data about the mind accumulated throughout
the last few thousand years.
* (Or a five as in the recent case at Harvard where a spot of
solder held down five in an electronic computer, much to the dismay
of the gentlemen who depended upon it for answers.)
413
Now, with a six foot rear vision mirror we can look back and see
that here and there people had expressed opinions or turned up
unevaluated facts which are now data in some of the axioms of
dianetics or parts of its discoveries. These facts existed in the
past, some exist now in dianetics, but with a tremendous
difference: they are evaluated. Evaluation of the data for its
importance was vital before the information was of value. Dr.
Sententious might have written in 1200 A.D. that he believed actual
demons did not exist in the mind; Goodwife Sofie in 1782 was heard
to say that she was certain that prenatal influence had warped many
a life; Dr. Zamba might have written in 1846 that a hypnotized
patient could be told he was crazy and that he would thereafter act
crazy. Dr. Sententious might have said also that angels, not
demons, caused mental illness because the patient had been evil;
Goodwife Sofie also might have said that punk water poultices cured
"ravings"; Dr. Zamba might also have declared that hypnotized
patients needed only a few more positive suggestions to make them
well and strong. In short, for every datum which approached truth
there were billions which were untrue. The missing part of each
datum was a scientific evaluation of its importance to the
solution. The selection of a few special drops of water from an
ocean of unspecial drops is impossible. The problem of discovering
true data could be resolved only by jettisoning all former
evaluations of humanity and the human mind and all "facts" and
opinions of whatever kind and starting fresh, evolving the entire
science from a new highest common denominator (and it is true that
dianetics borrowed nothing but was first discovered and organized;
only after the organization was completed and a technique evolved
was it compared to existing information).
The point here is that monotone importance in a class of facts
leads to nothing but the most cluttered confusion. Here is
evaluation: opinions are nothing, authority is useless, data is
secondary: establishment of relative
414
importance is the key. Given the world and the stars as a
laboratory and a mind to compute the relative importance of what it
perceives, and no problems can remain unsolved. Given masses of
data with monotone evaluation and one has something which may be
pretty but is useful.
The stunned look of fresh-caught ensigns of the Navy when they
first see in the metal the things about which they have so
laboriously read is a testimony to more than the faulty educational
system currently employed: the system seeks to train something
which is perfect - the memory - ; it aligns little or nothing with
purpose or use, and ignores the necessity of personal evaluation of
all data both as to need for it and its use. The stunned look comes
from the overwhelming recognition that whereas they have thousands
of data about what they see, they do not know whether it is more
important to read the chronometer when they take a sextant sight or
use only blue ink in writing a log book. These gentlemen have been
wronged educationally not because they have not been given
thousands of data relative to ships but because they have not been
told the relative importance of each datum and have not experienced
that importance. They know more facts than the less educated but
they know less about factual relation.
More pertinent to the auditor, there are two species of engramic
commands which give monotone evaluation to data. The persons who
have either of these as a major content in the engram bank will be
similarly aberrated even if each manifests the aberration with
opposite polarity.
Every now and then some unfortunate auditor finds a "Can't believe
it" on his hands. This case is extremely trying. Under this heading
come the "I doubt it," the "I can't be sure," and the "I don't
know," cases.
Such a case is easy to spot for when he first comes into therapy he
begins by doubting dianetics, the auditor, himself, the furniture
and his mother's virginity. The
415
chronic doubter is not an easy case because he cannot believe his
own data. The analyzer has a built-in judge which takes in data,
weighs it and judges it right, wrong or maybe. The engramic doubter
has a "held down 7" to the effect that he has to doubt everything,
something much different from judging. He is challenged to doubt.
He must doubt. If to doubt is divine, then the god is certainly
Moloch. He doubts without inspecting, he inspects the most precise
evidence, and he still doubts.
The auditor will return this patient to a somatic which tears half
his head off, which is confirmed by scars, which is confirmed by
aberration, and which is doubted as an incident.
The way to handle this case is to take his pat phrases and feed
them to him in reverie or out of reverie with repeater technique.
Make him go over and over them, sending his somatic strip back to
them. Shortly a release of the phrase will take place. Feed all
doubter phrases which the patient has used in this manner. Then
continue the case. The object is not to make him a believer but to
place him in a situation where he can evaluate his own data. Don't
argue with him about dianetics - arguing against engrams is
senseless since the engrams themselves are senseless.
In ten or twenty hours of therapy such a patient will begin to face
reality enough so that he no longer doubts the sun shines, doubts
the auditor or doubts that he had a past of some sort. He is only
difficult because he requires these extra hours of work. He is
usually, by the way, very aberrated.
The "Can't believe it" finds difficulty in evaluation because he
has difficulty giving credence to any fact more than any other
fact: this produces an inability to compute relative importances
amongst data with the result that he may be as concerned with the
shade of his superior's tie as with the marriage he himself is
about to undertake. Similarly, the "You must believe it" case finds
difficulty
416
in differentiating amongst importances of various data and may hold
equally firmly the idea that paper is made from trees and that he
is about to be fired. Both cases "worry," which is to say they are
unable to compute well.
Rational computation depends upon the personal computation of the
relative importances of various data. Reactive "computation" deals
exclusively with the equation that widely different objects or
events are similar or equal. The former is sanity, the latter is
insanity.
The "Must believe it" case will present a confused reactive bank,
for the bank embraces the most unlikely differences as close
similarities. The "Must believe it" engram command can dictate that
one person, a class of persons, or everyone must be believed, no
matter what is written or said. The auditor, returning the patient,
will find major aberrations held in place by a lock containing only
conversation.
When father is the actual source and is an ally of the patient, the
auditor will discover that almost everything father said was
accepted literally and unquestioningly by his child. The father may
not have been aware of having established this "Must believe it"
condition and he may even be a jocular man, given to jokes. Every
joke will be found to be literally accepted unless the father
carefully labeled it a joke, which meant it must not be literally
accepted. One case folder is to hand here where father was the
source of "Must believe": one day the father took his daughter,
three years of age, down to the seacoast and, through the fog,
pointed to a lighthouse. The lighthouse gave an eerie aspect in the
foggy night. "That's Mr. Billingsly's place," said the father,
meaning that Billingsly, the lighthouse keeper, lived there. The
child nodded faithfully, if a little frightened, for "Mr.
Billingsly" threw around a mane of hair-shadows - glared to seaward
with one eye sweeping the water and stood a hundred feet tall and
"Mr. Billingsly" let out moans which sounded quite ferocious. His
"place" was a ledge
417
of rock. As a pre-clear twenty years later the daughter was
discovered to be frightened of any low moaning sound. The auditor
patiently traced down the source and found, much to the delight of
himself and the daughter, "Mr. Billingsly." Vast quantities of
aberration, peculiar conceptions and strange notions were found to
derive from casual statements the father had made. Being skilled in
his task, the auditor did not bother to try to locate and erase
everything the father had said - a task which would have taken
years and years: he located, instead, the prenatal "You must
believe me" and its engramic locks, and all the non-engramic locks,
of course, disappeared and were automatically re-evaluated as
experienced data rather than "held-down sevens." Of course there is
always much more wrong with a case than a mere "You must believe
me," but the change of viewpoint which the patient experienced
immediately afterwards was startling: she was now at liberty to
evaluate her father's data, which she had not been before.
Because they teach in terms of altitude* and Authority, educational
institutions themselves form a social "You must believe it"
aberration. It is impossible to reduce an entire university
education even if it sometimes appears desirable, but by addressing
the moments when the patient was hammered into believing or
accepting school, from kindergarten forward, many a fact-clogged
mind can again be made facile which was not so before, for the
facts will be re-evaluated automatically by the
* (By altitude is meant a difference of level of prestige - one on
a higher altitude carries conviction to one on a lower altitude
merely because of altitude. The auditor may find himself unable to
gain sufficient altitude with some patients to work them smoothly
and he may have so much altitude with others that they believe
everything he says. When he has too little altitude, he is not
believed; when he has too much he is believed too well.)
418
mind for importances, not accepted on monotone evaluation as is the
case in "formal education."
The "Can't believe it" is a subject so weary and dreary to the
auditor that he may find himself, after a few finished cases,
running adroitly away from one. The "I don't know" and the "I can't
be sure" cases are not as bad as the "I can't believe it." The
prize case in difficulty in dianetics is a patient who is a Junior
named after either father or mother, who has not only shut-down
pain, emotion, visio and sonic recall but also "dub-in" for them on
a false basis, with a lie factory working full blast, who is
uncooperative and who is a "Can't believe it."
Monotone evaluation hinders the "Can't believe it's" acceptance of
all facts. Any case may have a few "Can't believe its" but some
cases are so thoroughly aberrated by the phrase that they
disbelieve not only reality but also their own existence.
The mind has a "built-in doubter" which, unhindered by engrams,
rapidly sorts out importances and, by their weights, resolves
problems and arrives at conclusions. The rational mind applies
itself to data presented, compares it to experience, evaluates its
veracity and then assigns it relative importance in the scheme of
things. This is done, by a clear, with a rapidity which sometimes
requires the splitting of seconds. By a normal the time required is
extremely variable and the conclusions are more apt to be referred
to another's opinion or compared to Authority rather than to
personal experience. That is the fundamental effect of contemporary
education which, through no particular fault of its own and despite
every effort it has made to free itself, yet, through lack of
tools, is forced to follow Scholastic methods. These, by contagion
of aberration, persist against all efforts of advanced educators.
The normal is taught on one hand to believe or else he'll fail and
on the other to disbelieve as a scientific necessity: belief and
disbelief cannot be
419
taught, they must be personally computed. If a mind could be
likened to a general served by his own staff, it could be seen to
have a G-2 which, as a combat intelligence center, collected facts,
weighed them for importance and formed an estimate of a situation
or the value of a conclusion. As the intelligence officer would
fail if he had a signed order to disbelieve everything, so does the
mind fail which has a reactive command to disbelieve. Certainly a
military organization would lose to every puny enemy if it had,
conversely, a command to believe everything, and a man will fail if
he has a reactive mind order to believe all information in the
world around him.
The believe and disbelieve engrams present different
manifestations, and while one cannot be said to be either more or
less aberrative than the other, it is certain that the disbelieve
engram, by and large, seems to make the less sociable man.
Disbelief occurs in various degrees, of course. There is, for
instance, a social disbelief engram which promotes a class of
literature which is as insincere as it is unwitty. Insincerity,
shame of emotional demonstration, fear of praising may stem from
other things than merely a disbelief engram, but a disbelief engram
is most certainly present in the majority of such cases.
The auditor will find, when he is trying to enter a very strong
"Can't believe it" case, that experience is disbelieved, the
auditor is disbelieved, hope of results is disbelieved and that the
most ridiculous and unreasonable insults and arguments may be
presented. The patient may squirm in a veritable snake pit of
somatics and still disbelieve that he is re-experiencing anything.
It is a sadly chronic fact that an aberree has a certain set of
cliches from out of his engram bank. He will repeat these cliches
for all occasions and circumstances. Mother, having an engram bank
of her own and father having his, will be found to be uttering
pretty much the same
420
sort of statement time after time. These are dramatizations. One of
the parents may have had an "I don't know" ready to precede
everything he or she said, which makes a whole "stack" of "I don't
knows" in the engram bank: which much undermines understanding. In
the same way, "You must believe!" or "You can't believe!" may
become "stacked" in the engram bank. Once one has heard a few
engrams from a patient, he knows he will have many, many more
similar engrams from that source. Once an auditor has listened to
the personnel in the patient's engram bank for a very short time he
knows pretty much what he will have in many, many more engrams.
Hence any phrase is liable to be much repeated in the engram bank,
with varying somatics and accompanying perceptics. If Mother is
troubled with high blood pressure, it is raised by Father - to the
intense discomfort of the child and a degree which often produces a
later migraine headache - she is apt to utter, "I can't believe you
would treat me this way." Privately, she must have been hard to
convince (one doesn't convince much against engramic "reasoning"),
for he treated her this way about every three days; and every three
days she was saying, "I can't believe you" or "I can't believe you
would do this to me," or "I can't believe anything you say," or
some such thing.
The "Can't believe" is apt to be rather hostile since "Can't
believe" is often hostile conversation. "You've got to believe me"
is more apt to be a pleading or whining sort of an engram. "Believe
what I tell you, God damn it," is, however, fully as hostile as an
auditor might expect.
An auditor who finds a case intensely and unreasonably skeptical
should expect a "Can't believe" stack in the engram bank. If he
finds a patient incapable of holding an opinion of his own but
weather-vaning to each new person or quoting an Authority (all
authorities get
421
easily identified with father in the reactive bank), he should
suspect a "Must believe" in some form as well as other things.
There are many manifestations of either case. The chronic aspect in
therapy is that the "Can't believe" suspects his own data so
strongly that he alters it continually and the engrams which, after
all, have just one, exact package of content, will not properly
reduce; the "Must believe" takes up every engram he hears about as
his own and that does him little good.
Do not suppose that any case has a standard aspect, however. The
language contains many words and combinations of words, and
aberrees are not unusual who have the entire basic language and all
its idioms securely connected up to some somatic or other. Cases
ordinarily contain "Can't believe" and "Must believe" phrases in
the same bank. Only when these phrases become top-heavy does the
person respond in a set pattern. When the set pattern is of either
species of phrase, then the auditor confronts a patient who must
have had, at best, a most unhappy life. But either case clears.
They all clear, even Juniors.
PHYSICAL PAIN AND PAINFUL EMOTION COMMANDS
Besides visio and sonic, another vital recall to therapy is the
somatic, which is to say the physical pain of the incident. Running
a physically painful incident without a somatic is worthless.
If physical pain is present, it may come only after considerable
"unconsciousness" has been "boiled-off." If the incident contains
pain but the somatic is not turned on, the patient will wriggle his
toes and breathe heavily and nervously or he may have jumping
muscles. The foot wriggling is an excellent clue to the presence of
any
422
somatic turned on or not turned on. Breathing heavily and jumping
muscles and various twitches without pain denote two things: either
a denyer is in the incident and the content isn't being contacted
or, if the pre-clear is recounting, the somatic may be shut-off in
the incident or elsewhere, either earlier by command or late by
painful emotion. The patient who wriggles a great deal or who does
not wriggle at all is suffering from a pain or emotion shut-off or
late painful emotion engrams or both.
There is a whole species of commands which shut-off pain and
emotion simultaneously: this is because the word "feel" is
homonymic. "I can't feel anything" is the standard, but the command
varies widely and is worded in a great many ways. The auditor can
pick up his own book of these from patients who, describing how
they feel or rather, how they don't feel, give them away. "It
doesn't hurt" is a class of phrases specifically shutting off pain,
a class which includes, of course, such things as "There isn't any
pain," etc. Emotion is shut-off by a class of phrases which contain
the word "emotion" or which specifically (literally translated)
shut off emotion.
The auditor should keep a book of all denyers, misdirectors,
holders, bouncers and groupers which he discovers, each listed
under its own heading. In this way he adds to material he can use
for repeater technique when he sees something is wrong with the way
the patient is moving on the track. But there are four other
classes of phrases which he should also study and list: shut-offs,
exaggerators, derailers and lie factories. He can also add to his
classes.
He will discover enormous numbers of commands in engrams which can
accomplish these various aspects. And he should be particularly
interested in the pain and emotion shut-offs and the exaggerators,
which is to say, those engramic commands which give the aspect of
too
423
much pain and too much emotion. There is no reason to give large
numbers of them here. They are quite various, language being
language.
Many combinations are possible. A patient can be found to weep over
the most trivial post-speech things and yet have few or no
somatics. Several things can cause this. Either he had a mother or
a father who wept for nine months before he was born or he has an
exaggerator at work which commands that he be emotional about
everything: "Too much emotion." In combination with this he can
have something which says he can feel no pain or can't hurt or even
can't feel.
A patient who aches and suffers and yet cannot weep would have a
reverse set of commands: he has a "no emotion" command early on the
track or a long chain of them and yet has commands which dictate
pain to excess: "I can't stand the pain," "The pain is too great,"
"I always feel I'm in agony," etc. "I feel bad," on the other hand,
is a shut-off because it says there is something wrong with the
mechanism with which he feels and implies disability to feel.
Both pain and emotion can be commanded into exaggeration. But it is
a peculiar thing that the body does not manufacture pain to be
felt. All pain felt is genuine, even if exaggerated. Imaginary pain
is non-existent. A person "imagines" only pain he has actually
felt. He cannot imagine pain he has not felt. He may "imagine" pain
at sometime later than the actual incident but if he feels pain, no
matter how psychotic he is, that pain will be found to exist
somewhere on his time track. Scientific tests have been carefully
conducted in dianetics to establish this fact and it is a valuable
one. You can test it yourself by asking patients to feel various
pains, "imagining them" in present time. They will feel pains for
you so long as you ask them to feel pains they have had. Somewhere
you will find the patient unable to actually feel the pain he is
trying to "imagine." Whether he is
424
aware of it or not, he has had pain wherever he "imagines" it and
is simply doing a somatic strip return for you on a minor scale.
This aspect of pain is quite interesting in that many patients
have, at one time or another in their lives, pretended to the
family or the world that they had a pain. The patient thought, when
he asserted this "make-believe" pain, that he was lying. In therapy
the auditor can use these "imaginings" for they lead straight to
sympathy engrams and actual injury. Further, these "imaginary"
pains are generally displayed to the person or pseudo-person who
was the sympathy ally present in the engramic moment. Thus, if a
small boy always pretended to his grandmother, and thought he was
pretending, that he had a bad hip, it will be discovered eventually
that sometime in his early life he hurt that same hip and received
sympathy during the engramic moment which is now eclipsed from the
analyzer. Patients often feel quite guilty over these pretenses.
Sometimes soldiers in the recent war have come home pretending they
had been wounded and, when in therapy, are afraid the auditor will
find out or give them away to their people. This soldier might not
have been wounded in the war, but an engram will be found which
contains sympathy for the injury of which he complains. He is
asking for sympathy with a colorful story and believes he is
telling a lie. Without informing him of this dianetic discovery,
the auditor can often flush into view a sympathy engram which might
otherwise have to be arduously hunted down.
"Cry baby" is a phrase against which the pre-clear will negate in
an engram, thus inhibiting tears. It is quite ordinary to find the
pre-clear confusing himself with older brothers and sisters who are
in his prenatal life: their jeers, mother's orders and so forth
then all register. If the pre-clear knows of any older children,
the auditor should look for them in the engrams of prenatal life,
for
425
children are quite active and often bounce up and down on mother's
lap or collide with her. Any childish phrases of derision are then
not always post-birth.
It has been said during dianetic research that if one could release
all the painful emotion of a lifetime, he would have ninety-percent
of the clearing done. However, the painful emotion is only a
surface manifestation of the physical pain engrams and would not be
painful if the physical pain did not co-exist or exist priorly.
When emotion and pain shut-offs exist in a case, the patient is
normally tense of muscle and nervous, given to twitching or merely
tension. When pain and emotion are exaggerated by commands, one has
a highly dramatizing case on his hands.
THE ALLY VERSUS THE ANTAGONIST
It is necessary for the auditor to know the reactive mind's
evaluation of importances. Moronic or not, the reactive mind
distinguishes violently between friend and foe, about the only
piece of differentiation it does.
There is a prime test for an ally. And recall that the ally is a
part of sympathy engrams, the things which are most likely to
produce psycho-somatic illnesses, immaturities and confusion on a
grand scale. As long as it can rebel and negate, the reactive mind
takes care of the enemies so far as it is able. It can, of course,
be twisted by circumstance into the valence of the enemy and so cry
havoc and abreact in general if this was a winning valence. But it
will not ordinarily use the data of the enemy contained in a
contra-survival engram save to negate against it. When the general
tone nears Zone One, of course the reactive mind starts picking up
and obeying antagonistic commands. Thus, if father is the villain
of the piece, an antagonist, father's commands are not the
426
reactively obeyed commands but the commands the aberree will
usually negate against or avoid.
This is not the case, however, with the ally. The ally, the person
from whom sympathy came when the patient was ill or injured, is
heeded and obeyed since his "purpose" is apparently aligned with
the purpose of the individual to survive. If one thing about a
person is right then, according to our moronic little friend, the
reactive mind, everything about that person is right, everything
that person says and does is right and particularly is right
whatever that person said in the engram.
The chronic psycho-somatic illness is ordinarily from a sympathy
engram. This is quite important, for the sympathy engram will be
the last or hardest to reach, being aligned with survival purpose.
A "Must believe" from an ally means that the person must believe. A
"Must believe" from an antagonist ordinarily brings about a
circumstance that the person must not believe.
Here, in the ally and the antagonist, we have the age-old tale of
the hero and the villain, the heroine and the villainess, Mazda and
Ahriman, the cowboy in the white hat and the cowboy in the black.
The Hindu trinity is found, as source, in father, mother and unborn
baby. But the war of "good and evil" is found as reactive data in
the engram bank in the form of the ally and the antagonist.
The very best logic of which the reactive mind is capable is
two-valued, white and black, and two-valued logic finds its
response only in the reactive bank. And the reactive mind works out
all problems in absolutes, bringing about logical monstrosities,
for there is the absolute of good, the absolute of evil and the
absolute of identity thought. Any rational computation demonstrates
an absolute to be impossible from a standpoint of truth or
workability: but the reactive mind never quibbles, it just reacts.
It knows a champion when it sees one (it thinks)
427
and it knows a villain (it supposes). The ally, the champion, is
everybody who has any characteristic of the ally and the
antagonist, the villain, is everyone who has any characteristics of
the antagonist. Further, anything associated with the ally is a
champion and everything associated with the antagonist is
villainous. If the ally is an aunt, then aunts are good. If the
antagonist is a sign painter, then sign painters are all evil.
Further, the dollies Auntie crocheted mean that dollies are good
and that all lacework is good and that anything on which lacework
sits is good and that anything which looks like lacework is good
and so on in the ad absurdum which only the reactive mind can
manage without a qualm. And the signs the painter painted were evil
and where they sit is evil and paint is evil and smell of paint is
evil and brushes are evil so hair brushes are evil so the dresser
on which hairbrushes sit is evil and so on.
There is an axiom here which is well not to slight in working a
patient:
ANY CHRONIC PSYCHO-SOMATIC ILLNESS HAS AT ITS SOURCE A SYMPATHY
ENGRAM.
And another:
A REACTIVE MIND WILL NOT PERMIT AN INDIVIDUAL TO BE ABERRATED OR
CHRONICALLY PSYCHO-SOMATICALLY ILL UNLESS THE ILLNESS HAS SURVIVAL
VALUE.
This does not mean that the individual has a power of choice
analytically. It does mean that the reactive mind, working quietly
and hitherto hidden so well, chooses, on identity computation,
physical and mental conditions to match any circumstance even
remotely similar to any concept in the engram bank.
There is such a thing as necessity level. This rises and keys-out
engrams and can key out the control of the reactive mind itself.
Necessity level often rises. The individual can force it to rise
analytically whether or not actual cause exists. A person may have
no engram about
428
going to the electric chair for murder and yet have an engram about
murdering people. Necessity level rises and analytically overwhelms
all impulse to kill for the analyzer knows all about electric
chairs. When the necessity level cannot rise, then one is dealing
with a low dynamic individual. An artist, terribly aberrated about
his work through the kind efforts of obligingly caustic critics,
can yet boost himself by his necessity bootstraps to do another
piece of work and damn the aunt who said he gave her too many chins
in her portrait and ripped the work to shreds or damn the critics
who said he was too new and his work too swift. Necessity level can
soar above the reactive mind by, as the marine sergeant said,
"Sheer guts." Given too many current restimulators, used too hard
by life, an individual, caught in the dwindling spiral of
reactivated engrams, may come at last to a point where he cannot
longer remain well. If this is his first serious sag and if the sag
is deep, a psycho-somatic illness will appear and become more or
less chronic and, this is important, it will stem directly from a
sympathy engram.
All psycho-somatic ills carry with them, if less obvious,
aberrative commands which mean that a person suffering from
psycho-somatic illness, whether he relishes the idea or not, is
also suffering from the aberration which is part of the same
engram.
If the auditor wants to find the real holders, the real reasons his
case appears to resist getting well, the real aberrative factors
and illnesses, he will look to the ally or allies, for any case may
have many. He will exhaust from them the painful emotion of loss or
denial and backtrack immediately to find the underlying engrams.
Remember too that the reactive mind is not bright enough to realize
that two sides of the same person are the same person. Hence we can
have Mother-the-white-angel and Mother-the-howling-harridan. As the
white angel she is implicitly followed, as the harridan she is
429
negated against. Father may be Father-the-beneficent and
Father-the-baby- killer. And so with all allies. But only the pure,
the absolute, the never changing ally who, resolute and firm,
stayed the cold sharp hand of death and placed tenderly in the
expiring hand of the wistful child the strong and flaring torch of
life (or at least said, "Poor baby, you feel so bad; please don't
cry,") is the model, the paragon, the gold-footed idol with free
access to the gods. (This was grandpop: he drank too much and he
cheated at cards, but the reactive mind doesn't see it that way
because grandpop hauled baby through pneumonia and was darned sure
baby got well: good acts if he hadn't been so melodramatic about it
and if he hadn't talked so much while the poor kid was
"unconscious.")
Question the patient adroitly about Father and Mother: if he isn't
much disturbed by their deaths (if they are dead) or if he is
simply careless of them or if he bares his teeth, they are
antagonists; the allies are elsewhere. If the mother and father are
indifferently or angrily or propitiatively regarded, be very sure
then, that the patient had a rough time of it between conception
and birth and later and be sure, if this is the case, that there
will be allies in plenty for the child will have sought them out in
every scrape or injury. But you will not find the allies, usually,
by mere questions. The reactive mind considers them to be pure gold
even if the engrams in which they appear have somatics enough to
wreck a person for life. It hides allies. The auditor has to look
for them through discharging painful emotion. The death, departure
or denial by an ally is a certain painful emotion engram. One way
or another, working at it from later painful emotion or earlier
physically painful engrams, the ally will eventually uncover and
can be entered as memory in the standard banks and erased as
illness out of the engram bank.
The solution of chronic psycho-somatic ills lies largely in the
field of sympathy engrams. These will not erase early, however, for
they are the inner bastion behind
430
which the reactive mind crouches and observes the storming of the
outer defenses by antagonists. The painful emotion of ally losses
masks, at times, not only allies but antagonists as well. The
sympathy engram is not the only source of psycho-somatic illness by
far, but it is the source of the chronic psycho-somatic ill.
By the way, nothing in this dissertation about allies should be
construed to mean that one should not show love to a child.
Observers in the past have jumped at questionable conclusions when
they felt that demonstrated affection aberrates a child. Lack of
affection may kill him, but the reverse is not true. The only way
an ally can aberrate a child is by talking to and sympathizing with
a child who is very ill or "unconscious" from injury. If he does
this he alloys the child's personality with his own, creates an
eventual possibility of psycho-somatic illness and aberration and
may generally disable the child for life (except for dianetics, of
course). Love a child best and do for him best when he is well. Do
anything you please with him when he is well, say what you please.
When he is sick or hurt, it is best, as the bosun said, "Patch him
up and keep God-damned quiet!"
TOKENS
The tale of the magic amulet, the lucky talisman, the belief in the
charm and the long catalogue of fetishes, the objects and
mannerisms which one keeps as sakes are the "dearly beloveds" of
the reactive mind.
There is nothing wrong with a man keeping llamas in the parlor or
wearing purple and green suspenders or rubbing fire plugs for luck,
nor is there anything wrong with sighing over a stolen lady's
slipper or smoking Pittsburgh stogies. Any Rights of Man should
provide for such eccentricities. But the auditor can use this data
to detect vital information.
431
In dianetics, the term token is defined to embrace the objects and
habits which an individual or society keeps by not knowing they are
extensions of an ally.
By identity thought there are associative restimulators for every
restimulator in the environment - these things connected with the
restimulator. Being blank on the subject, the analytical mind,
apprised by physical reaction that a restimulator of something is
nearby, then picks up the associative restimulator but does not
select the actual restimulator. (In Book II, the young man's signal
to remove his coat was a touch of the tie: he did not cite the tie
in his complaint, the nearest he came to it was the person and
clothing of the hypnotic operator. These were associative
restimulators.)
A restimulator for a contra-survival engram might be an electric
light; the aberree looks to the shade, the pull chain, the room or
the person under the light to be a source of annoyance, and not
only does he not know that a restimulator is present but supposes
that the associated objects have some evil in themselves.
The associative restimulator for a contra-survival engram needs no
name other than that, associative restimulator. The pain is the
thing, the things associated in any way with the thing are the
thing, are other things, etc. is the reactive equation which fills
the world of the aberree full of fear and fills him full of
anxiety. Leave a child in a place or a room where he has been
unhappy and he may become ill, for he is confronted with some
restimulator and he can at best explain, like the adult, his fear
in terms of things not rationally connected to the restimulator.
This is the mechanism of engramic restimulation.
It is mostly terribly uncomfortable to any aberree who, try as he
might, cannot say why he does not like some person or object or
locale and who cannot connect any of the three with the actual item
which is the restimulator and does not know he has an engram about
it. This method of detecting engrams leads nowhere quickly since
one cannot select objects, persons or locales and know
432
they are restimulators. They may be only associative restimulators
to the actual restimulator item in the environment. (Words
contained in engrams, by the way, and any other precise
restimulator can "push-button" the aberree into action or apathy if
they are used upon him. In words it has to be the exact word; for
instance painted will not do when painter is in the engram. What is
painted, however, may be an associative restimulator and the
aberree may declare he does not like it; that he does not like it
does not mean that it will "push his buttons" and made him cough or
sigh or get angry or get sick or whatever the engram containing the
word dictates he should do.)
The token is a very special kind of restimulator. While the auditor
may not find much use for the associative restimulator as applied
to contra-survival engrams, he can employ the token as a means of
detection to locate allies.
The token is any object, practice or mannerism which one or more
allies used. By identity thought the ally is survival; anything the
ally used or did is, therefore, survival. The valence of the ally
is that one most frequently employed by the aberree. While the
clear can shift himself into valences he imagines or beholds at
will and convenience and out of them at will and can stabilize in
his own at will, the aberree skids around into valences without his
knowledge or consent and is most likely to be in any valence but
his own. The person who seems to be a different person every time
he is met or a different person to each person he meets, with
special valences manifesting here and others manifesting there, is
shifting into various winning valences; interfered with in his
shifts, he goes into secondary valences; if forced into his own
valence he becomes ill. It is understood, of course, that all
valences manifest something of himself.
Shifting into ally valences is the fundamental practice of the
aberree. He will feel most at ease when his own valence is alloyed
to some degree with an ally valence. So
433
long as the ally or the pseudo-ally is not available, the aberree
reminds himself of the ally valence with tokens. These tokens are
the things the ally possessed, practiced or did.
An aberree will often inextricably associate himself with a
pseudo-ally, as in marriage, and then make the astonished discovery
that he is not partnered with the optimum ally conduct. (Mother was
an ally, Mother baked bread; wife is pseudo-Mother though neither
she nor he knows it; wife does not bake bread: Mother frowned on
lipstick, wife wears lipstick; Mother gave him his way, wife has a
bossy attitude; wife is pseudo-Mother because she has similar voice
tones only.) The aberree then reactively and unknowingly attempts
to coax wife or partner into the ally valence by assuming that the
moment of the sympathy engram is present time - a mechanical shift
caused only by the restimulation of the sympathy engram because of
voice tones or some such thing - and proceeds to manifest the ghost
of the engram illness or injury or operation as a psycho-somatic
sickness. The computation of the reactive mind is simple - just
like Simple Simon - one forces the ally into being by manifesting
the somatic with which the ally sympathized. This can also be an
effort to turn a partner in which the reactive mind thinks it has
discovered an ambivalent friend-enemy into the sympathy valence.
Wife is cruel. Mother was cruel until the injury, then she was
nice. Manifest the injury as a chronic psycho-somatic illness and
wife will be nice. Actually wife isn't nicer, so the computation
gets stronger, the illness gets stronger, and down into the dizzy
dwindling spiral we go. The psycho-somatic illness is also a denial
of dangerousness, a plea of helplessness - a shade of opossum
playing, fear paralysis: "I'm no menace to you. I'm sick!"
The aberree goes into his own valence of the time of the sympathy
engram in his bid for sympathy and his
434
denial of his own dangerousness. The valence of himself, of course,
is complicated by the age-tab and somatic of the engram in which he
was immature and not well.
The psycho-somatic illness is, as well, a token, which is to say it
is a reminder of a time when he once had love and care and was told
so. He needs it about as much as he needs to be atom bombed, of
course, but this is good, solid reactive mind "survival" and the
reactive mind is going to make it so he can survive if it kills
him.
This is all mechanical and is actually merely restimulation of an
engram, but it is better understood as a low order computation.
In the absence of an ally, and even in the presence of the ally, he
uses reactive mimicry. Conscious mimicry is a wonderful way to
learn. Reactive mimicry is most alloying to the personality.
Reactively, he once had an ally and imitates the ally. Consciously
he may not even recall the ally or the habits of the ally.
The ally, remember, is somebody who has entered the interior world
of the mind when the analyzer was shut down by illness or injury or
an operation and gave forth sympathy or protection. The ally is
part of the sympathy engram. If a child had grandparents he liked
and was lucky enough not to be ill around them or be talked to by
them in sympathetic terms when he was ill or injured, the
grandparents would still be much loved. In dianetics an ally is
only some one who has offered sympathy or protection in an engram.
We don't have to have engrams to be loved or to love: quite the
contrary, one is better loved and loves more without engrams.
The token applies, dianetically, only to the ally and is an object,
practice or mannerism similar to an object, practice or mannerism
of the ally.
The ally smoked Pittsburgh stogies, so the aberree may smoke
Pittsburgh stogies no matter what they do to his throat or his
wife. The ally wore bowlers, the lady
435
aberree dotes on riding habits but has never ridden a horse. The
ally knitted, the aberree specializes in wearing knit things or a
lady at least makes a pretense of knitting and sometimes wonders
why she ever took it up, she is so bad at it. The ally used
profanity, the aberree uses the same profanity. The ally wipes his
nose on his sleeve and picks his nose, the aberree wipes his nose
on a dinner jacket and fiddles with his nostrils.
The token may be a reminder of pure ally or it may be a reminder of
the friend side of an ambivalent friend-enemy. And it may be a
winning valence that was also ambivalent toward the aberree. The
token is never an associative restimulator in the meaning that it
reminds of some antagonist, for associative restimulators are
abhorred.
The most chronic token, the most constant habit, practice or
mannerism of the pre-clear is a direct arrow to the pure ally. And
the pure ally is the one the reactive mind will guard to its
highest level of the beset donjon keep. And that is the target of
the auditor. He may have to relieve the majority of the engram bank
before he can erase the engram which is most likely to aberrate the
individual, to saddle him with strange practices and to make him
chronically ill.
Observe your pre-clear and see what he does and says that are
strange to his personality, things he does but does not much seem
to enjoy. See what he uses and what his mannerisms are. Amongst
this collection you may, by asking discreet questions, jog an ally
into his memory which he had forgotten and so jogging, reach
swiftly toward the sympathy engram in which that ally is contained
or reach toward, for an emotional discharge, the painful emotion
engram of the loss of that ally, his illness or incidents
concerning him.
Another but special token is that which stems from a "die if you
don't" command. Fathers, for instance, suspicious of paternity,
sometimes claim while trouncing or
436
upsetting mothers that they will kill the child if it isn't just
like Father. This is a very unhappy type of token to say nothing of
being, usually, a bad engram; it can go to the extent of remodeling
structure, of making noses long or hair absent; it may compel an
aberree into a profession he does not admire and all out of the
engramic command that he must be like the parent. As this type of
command is usually given before birth it is often addressed,
unknowingly, to a girl, fathers not being gifted ordinarily with
clairvoyance; in such a case it will bring about a most remarkable
structural change in a woman and form some unusual mannerisms,
"ambitions" (like the dog that gets whipped if he doesn't fetch the
duck) and some habits which, to say the least, are astonishing.
Father, post-birth, to accomplish the reactivation of such an
engram, must be quite ambivalent so that the friend-enemy compute
comes into being. Not to be like father is to die: to force father
into his sympathy engram self the reactive mind must manifest the
token of illness. Token and likeness is the answer to such a
computation. And recall, all such computations are not simple but
are made further complex by the addition of dozens of other
engramic computations.
The friend-enemy is rather easy to find as an enemy, not too hard
to find as a friend. Standard technique with its repeater and
return et al. would in themselves at last locate any engram and
erase the bank so that it properly refiles. The use of the token
facilitates the auditing.
In the case of the pure ally, the champion of the right, standard
technique also at last arrives. But here how smooth the use of the
token sometimes makes the road! For the token may be as alarmingly
strange as an elephant in a bird cage. It takes a real ally to keep
some of these odd habits around.
Measure the pre-clear against his environment and education and his
society and profession. See what doesn't seem to belong amid the
things he uses, the
437
objects he adores and the mannerisms his friends find so strange.
Then find out if he or the spouse knew of anyone who did those
things or liked those things.
Do not suppose from all this that our clear has jettisoned all
strange mannerisms. Self-determinism is individuality in the
extreme; personality is inherent and revealed by clearing, looms up
high above the aberree. The engrams compress a man and make him
small and afraid. Released his power comes into play. The sympathy
engram is to a man like a crutch when he has two sturdy legs. But
oh, the pre-clear sobs where he loses old Uncle Goston, whose habit
of spitting on the floor, as transplanted, so astonished our
pre-clear's friends and business associates. But the grief is
brief, usually the half-hour it takes to run the sympathy engram
out. Suddenly the pre-clear recalls Uncle Goston, recalls a
thousand things Uncle Goston and he used to do, for the engram had
Uncle Goston occluded and amongst those missing from the sight of
"I." Although it might have said in the engram, "All right, there,
there, there, Billy. I'll take care of you. Don't thrash around so.
You'll be all right. There, there, there. Poor little fellow. Poor
little fellow. What a terrible rash you've got. How feverish.
There, there, there, Billy. You'll be all right as long as I am
here. I'll take care of my Billy. Go to sleep now. Go to sleep and
forget it." And Billy was all the time "unconscious" and never
"knew" about it. Afterwards he got a partner who looked like Uncle
Goston (but happened to be a fool), and when bankrupt somehow
developed a rash and a chronic cough and got very "feverish" about
his business affairs. He took to spitting on the floor no matter
where he was; and his health got worse and he got worse: but if you
had asked him about any uncles before he went into therapy, he
would have been very vague. "Give me a flash reply," says the
auditor. "Who used to spit on the floor? "Uncle Goston," answers
the pre-clear. "Gosh, that's funny (hawk, spit), I hadn't thought
of him for years. He was never around much, though (not
438
more than ten years constantly, the auditor may discover). Don't
suppose he's important. Let's take up Mrs. Swishback, that teacher
I had - " "Let's return now to the time Uncle Goston helped you,"
says the auditor, "The somatic strip will now go back to the time
your Uncle Goston helped you." "I feel like my skin's on fire!"
complains the pre-clear. "This must be - hey, it's my allergy! But
I don't see anybody. I don't - Wait, I get an impression of
somebody. Somebody - Why, it's Uncle Goston!" And he runs it and
the rash goes away. But maybe the auditor had to get a hundred
engrams before he got this one. And then the pre-clear suddenly
remembers about him and Uncle Goston and the time - but get on with
therapy.
Complete remembering seems to be a synonym for complete sanity. But
don't suppose that just because a clear gets rid of his Uncle
Gostons and his habit of spitting on the floor that he will not now
indulge in any eccentricity. The difference is, he is not compelled
into eccentricity without his consent. Good Lord, what a cleared
mind can think up to keep itself from being bored!
WHAT TO DO IF A CASE STOPS PROGRESSING
Even in the easiest cases there will come times when progress seems
to stop. Here is a list of possibilities of why:
1. The pre-clear is not moving on the track despite appearances,
but is being subject to one of the five types of commands which can
inhibit his free motion or information. The commonest of these is a
holder and the pre-clear may be found to be in an engram and in a
strange valence.
2. There is an emotional or pain shut-off. These can always be
detected even at the beginning of a case. The patient's muscles
will tremble or twitch when he is in an
439
engram but he will not feel the somatic: this is inevitably a pain
shut-off. Out of therapy the patient may be very tense, his neck
muscles in particular may be tight: this is often an emotional
shut-off. Either of these conditions can be observed in many
aberrees before beginning therapy. If they appear while therapy is
in progress, look for pain or emotional shut-offs.
3. There is an exaggerator of emotion and a pain shut-off so that
the patient weeps over anything but wriggles and twists when asked
to approach pain. He is feeling emotion without feeling the pain.
4. There is an emotional charge in some area which has not been
discharged but which is ready to discharge. Or, conversely, if you
have been trying to get an emotional discharge in a late painful
emotion engram and have had no success, there is a feeling shut-off
early in the prenatal area.
5. The Auditor's Code has been broken. Change auditors or reduce
the moments when the code was broken.
6. There is an emotional upset in the patient's life current with
therapy. Question him closely and remove the charge, if possible,
of the emotional upset as an engram.
7. The auditor has missed an important point in this book. Study
it.
IF A CASE "REFUSES" TO GET WELL
It has long been a popular idea, if an erroneous fact, that people
desire to retain their neuroses. In any case which "resists"
therapy, you may be certain that the engrams are resisting, not the
patient; do not, therefore, attack the patient but the engrams.
There are many computations which give the appearance of
resistance. The commonest of these is the ally
440
computation, which derives from engrams containing allies who seem
to plead that the patient is not to rid himself of anything. An
ordinary situation is one in which some relative or friend of the
mother's is advising the mother against aborting the child. The
ally is pleading, "Do not get rid of it!" The pre-clear knows this
person to be a friend of his of the highest order. The pre-clear
may interpret this to mean that he is not to get rid of his
engrams.
Another computation is the stupidity computation, wherein the
pre-clear begins to believe he will be stupid or lacking a mind if
he gives up engrams. This stems, for example, from the mother
saying she will lose her mind if she loses the child: she calls the
child "it." A whole chain of these may appear in a case, giving the
pre-clear the idea that if he parts with any engrams, he will lose
his mind. This is the primary reason why past schools believed that
the mind was composed of neuroses instead of an inherent
personality. The engrams, even though unknown, appeared very
valuable, which they are not - none of them.
Yet another computation is one of secrecy. It seems to the
pre-clear that his life depends upon holding some secret. This is
common in a case where the mother has had a lover. Mother and the
lover both enjoin secrecy. The pre-clear, obeying engramic
commands, believes that he has much to lose if he tells this secret
even though those who enjoined it were not even aware that he was
present, or if they knew, that he was "listening." One secrecy
computation stems from the mother's fearing to tell the father that
she is pregnant: if the mother is an ally of the child, then the
child will be extremely tenacious of this type of engram.
All cases have one or more computations which inhibit a delivery of
engrams. Some have all the above and more. This is no great worry
to the auditor for, by repeater technique, he can open the engram
bank.
441
DRUGS
The so-called hypnotics have no great use in dianetics except, on
occasion, when a patient is psychotic and narco-synthesis is
employed. By hypnotic is meant such preparations as phenobarbital,
hyacine, opium and so on. These sleep-producing drugs are
undesirable save only as a sedative and would be administered as
sedatives by a medical doctor. Any patient who needs a sedative
already has a medical doctor whose business it is. The auditor
should not, then, concern himself with hypnotics or anything
producing sleep. Some pre-clears will beg to be given sleeping
drugs to "facilitate therapy" but any such drug is an anesthetic
and shuts down somatics, inhibiting therapy. Further, none but the
insane should be worked in amnesia trance, particularly a drug
trance, for the work is longer than necessary and the results slow,
as elsewhere explained. Dianetics wakes people up; it does not try
to drug them or hypnotize them. Hence, the hypnotic drug is
worthless to the auditor.
Patients who wish to be knocked over the head with lead pipes or
otherwise put into a deep trance should not be allowed to have
their way even when they humorously present their own lead pipes.
The trick is to put "I" in contact with the file clerk. All
hypnotics work to shut-down "I." While the file clerk can be
reached and sonic and visio are available and even while, with much
labor, a clearing can be so effected, even the most "hopeless" case
is better worked in contact; the work is faster, more satisfactory
and less troublesome.
When one discovers the science of mind, he inevitably discovers
numerous other things not properly in his province. Amongst these
is the confusion which has unwittingly existed about hypnotics.
Those things labeled "hypnotics" as named above are not hypnotics
at all but
442
anesthetics. And those things labeled anesthetics are not
anesthetics but hypnotics. This will become brilliantly clear to
the auditor when he finds himself tangling with his first
"anesthetic" nitrous oxide engram in some pre-clear. Perhaps there
will have been another engram wherein morphine was administered for
days and even weeks, leaving the patient in a stupor which, by the
definition "hypnotic" should have been a trance: the aberrative
material will be there but it will be found to be slight - compared
to a chloroform or nitrous oxide engram.
Ether, chloroform and nitrous oxide, the "anesthetics," place the
patient in a deep hypnotic trance: the reactive bank is wide open
and all reception is sharp, clear and aberrative in the extreme. Of
the three, nitrous oxide is easily the worst, being no anesthetic
which would dull pain at all but a first class hypnotic. In nitrous
oxide the pain is filed and the content is filed with high and
brilliant fidelity. Some years ago some investigator wondered if
nitrous oxide did not make the brain decay. Fortunately brains do
not decay that easily; but nitrous oxide does bring into being
particularly severe engrams. The serious late-life engrams which
the auditor will encounter may include, at the list's top, a
nitrous oxide dental or surgical or obstetrical engram. Nitrous
oxide engrams are particularly bad when they involve exodontistry;
they often form the most severe late-life engram. Aside from the
fact that all exodontists have in the past talked too much and have
offices which are far too noisy with street sounds, running water
and flapping drill belts, nitrous oxide is not at all anesthetic
and sharpens rather than dulls pain.
In reverse, nitrous oxide makes an excellent hypnotic for
institutional therapy. It is far from the best obtainable from the
chemists, that is certain, for some brilliant chemist will
certainly be able to bring out a good gas hypnotic now that
dianetics is known and the need of it in institutions is realized.
443
There are some drugs which assist reverie, however. The commonest
and most easily obtainable is plain, strong coffee. A cup or two of
this occasionally alerts the analyzer enough so that it can reach
through deeper layers of "unconsciousness." Benzedrine and other
commercial stimulants have been used with some success,
particularly on psychotic patients. These bring the mind enough
awake to permit it to overcome engramic commands. Such commercial
stimulants have the disadvantage of exhausting a Q quantity in the
mind.
This Q quantity has not been much studied. It is as though the
brain burns a certain amount of Q when it is exhausting engrams.
For instance, therapy every day may bring results more rapidly but
it will also bring some stale sessions. Therapy every two or three
days produces the best results as observed. (Therapy once a week
permits the engrams to sag and slows a case, one week being too
long.) Benzedrine burns up Q. After a few sessions with benzedrine
the current stock of Q is exhausted and the work has been observed
to deteriorate either until a higher dosage was administered - and
there is a close limit to that - or until more Q was manufactured.
Here, with all this, must be included an important and vital fact.
It should be on a page by itself and underscored. All patients in
therapy should be given a dosage of vitamin B1 orally or by
injection at the minimum of 10 mg. per day. Reducing engrams
exhausts Q which seems to depend in some measure on B1. You can be
absolutely certain of nightmares in a patient who is not taking his
B1. Taking liberal doses of that, he will have no nightmares. DT's
are probably caused by a similar exhaustion of Q quantity. DT's are
best treated by B1 and dianetics. Something like DT's on a very
minor scale have been observed to develop in occasional patients
who were negligent about their B1. With it, in therapy, they
thrive.
Alcohol is rarely an assist to the auditor. In fact, alcohol is
rarely an assist to anyone. A depressant, classifiable at best as a
poison, alcohol has the single virtue of
444
being highly taxable. All alcoholics are alcoholic because of their
engrams. All alcoholics, unless they have injured their brains -
which case is cited only because it is possible, not because
research in dianetics demonstrated any real evidence of it - can be
released. Alcoholism is engramic. It has become, in some very
understandable way, a class of contagious aberration whereby the
reactive mind confuses alcohol and "being a good sport" or "having
fun" or "forget your troubles." Some of these things can also be
obtained by strychnine and cyanide. Alcohol has its uses: one can
put specimens of frogs and such in it: one can clean the germs off
needles with it: it burns well in rockets. But one would not
consider preserving his stomach in a glass jar and, unless insane,
does not think of himself as a needle. While some drunks think they
act like rockets, few have been observed to reach an altitude of
more than the floor. It is not only a poor stimulant-depressant, it
is also an hypnotic in the finest sense: what is done to a drunk
becomes an engram.* The chronic alcoholic is physically and
mentally ill. Dianetics can clear him or even merely release
him without too much trouble for alcohol is apparently not
physiological in its addictive effect. With the whole range of
chemistry to choose stimulants and depressants from, why the
government chooses a superiorly aberrative and inferiorly
stimulative compound to legalize is a problem for the better
mathematicians, possibly these who deal exclusively in tax income
problems. Opium is less harmful, marijuana is not only less
physically harmful but also better in the action of keeping a
neurotic producing, phenobarbital does not dull the senses nearly
as much and produces less after effect, ammonium chloride and a
host of other stimulants are more productive of results and hardly
less severe on the anatomy: but no, the engrams, contaging
unpleasantly along from the first crude
* I am not being paid by the WCTU to write this; it is only that I
have had to clear too many alcoholics.
445
brew which made one of our ancestors drunk, decree that alcohol is
the only thing which is to be drunk if a person wants to "forget it
all" and "have a good time." There is really nothing wrong with
alcohol save that it depends mainly on engrams and other
advertising for its effect and is otherwise remarkably inferior in
performance: that it makes such aberrative engrams is probably its
main claim to fame and infame. Making one drug immoral and another
one taxable is a sample of the alcohol engram in society. However,
although it is immensely legal, it is doubtful if the auditor will
find any use for it in therapy.
And speaking of drugs, that three thousand cycle note in your ears
came either from a nitrous oxide engram or mother taking lots of
quinine before you were born in the hope that she would not be a
mother, saying the while, "It makes my ears ring so: it just keeps
on and on and on and will not stop!"
AUTO-CONTROL
Since the beginning of dianetics research eleven years ago,
patients have, in the majority, had some belief that they could run
their cases in auto-control.
Not understanding that an auditor is only interested in what has
been done to, not done by a patient, some shyness or imagined guilt
often prompts this vain hope that one can accomplish therapy alone.
It cannot be done. That is a flat statement and it is a scientific
fact. The auditor is necessary for a large number of reasons. He is
not there to control or order the pre-clear about, but he is there
to listen, to provide insistence, to compute the trouble the
pre-clear is having and remedy it. The work is done on these
equations:
446
The dynamics of the pre-clear are less than the force in his
reactive bank.
The dynamics of the pre-clear plus the dynamics of the auditor are
greater than the force in the pre-clear's reactive bank.
The analytical mind of the pre-clear is shut down whenever he
reaches an engram and he is then unable to pursue it and recount
it enough times to discharge it without auditor assistance.
The analytical mind of the pre-clear plus the analytical mind of
the auditor can discover engrams and recount them.
(There is another equation, not elsewhere mentioned, but germane to
the auditor's code, which demonstrates mathematically the necessity
of that code:
The force of the pre-clear's engram bank plus the force of the
auditor's analytical mind is greater than the analytical mind and
the dynamics of the pre-clear.
This explains the necessity of never attacking the pre-clear
personally. It also explains the behavior of the aberree under
attack in usual life and why he grows angry and apathetic, for this
equation overwhelms his analyzer.)
These equations demonstrate actual natural laws.
Auto-control finds the pre-clear attempting to attack something
which has never been overcome by his analyzer although his analyzer
has never been trying, interiorly, to do anything else but attack
that bank so long as the analyzer would operate. The fact that the
pre-clear's analyzer shuts down whenever he comes into an area of
"unconsciousness" was why the engrams could take him over and use
him as a puppet when they were restimulated - they simply shut down
the analyzer.
447
Many efforts by many patients have been made to put dianetics on an
auto-control level. They have all failed and thus far it is
believed to be utterly and completely impossible. The pre-clear in
auto-control reverie may be able to reach some locks: he can
certainly reach pleasant experiences and achieve data recall by
return: but he cannot attack his own engrams without a standard
auditor-pre-clear arrangement.
Aside from dianetic reverie, some pre-clears have been foolish
enough to attempt auto-hypnosis and thus reach their engrams.
Hypnotism in any form is unwarranted in dianetics. Auto-hypnosis
used in dianetics is probably as close to fruitless masochism as
one can get. If a patient places himself in auto-hypnosis and
regresses himself in an effort to reach illness or birth or
prenatals, the only thing he will get is ill. Of course, people
will try. None are ever convinced until they have tried once they
begin to agitate about auto-control. But be sure to have a friend
and this book handy so that he can audit away the headaches and
such that suddenly turn on.
Dianetic reverie, which means with an auditor present, is not
dangerous or severe. Auto-control is often very uncomfortable and
often fruitless. It should not be attempted.
The clear alone can auto-control his whole time track back to
conception and does when he wants specific data from anywhere in
his life. But he is clear.
ORGANIC MENTAL ALTERATIONS
There are several things which can happen to the nervous system
including the brain which can cause structural change. These are
called in dianetics, organic mental alterations. They are not
called "organic neuroses," or "organic psychoses" because the
alteration of
448
structure does not necessarily produce aberrations. There has been
a confusion in the past between behavior caused by organic
differences and behavior caused by engrams: this confusion came
about because the engram bank and the reactive mind were not known.
Any human being with an organic mental alteration also has engrams.
The behavior dictated by the engrams and the action caused by
alteration are different things. Engrams carry dramatizations,
delusions, tantrums and various inefficiencies with them.
Alterations establish inabilities to think or perceive or record or
recall. For instance the radio set may have new filters and
circuits added to it which change and vary its performance and
reduce it from optimum; these would be engrams: the radio set might
have original tubes or circuits deleted from it or it might have
some of the wires crossed; this would be organic mental alteration.
The sources of organic mental alteration are as follows:
1. Variation of the blueprint of structure by reason of a changed
gene pattern. Some parts of the body would grow too much or too
little to establish any alteration of structure. This is usually
so gross a change that it is obvious. The feeble-minded and so
on may suffer either from engrams or an altered blueprint, but
usually both.
2. Alteration of the nervous system by disease or growths which
divides into two classes:
(a) Disease destruction as in paresis.
(b) Additional construction as in the case of tumors.
3. Alteration of the nervous system by drugs or poisons.
4. Alteration by physical disorder as in the case of a
"paralytic stroke" wherein certain tissues are inhibited or
destroyed.
5. Physical change in structure due to injury as in the case of a
head wound.
449
6. Alteration of structure by surgery as a necessity to remedy
injury or disease.
7. Iatrogenic alterations (caused by doctors) undertaken under a
misapprehension of brain function.
These can be divided into two classes:
(a) Surgical, to include such things as the trans-orbital
leukotomy, pre-frontal lobotomy, topectomy and so forth.
(b) Shock "therapies" of all kinds including electric shock,
insulin shock, etc. etc. etc. etc. etc. etc. etc. etc. etc. etc.
etc. etc. etc.
The first six sources of organic mental alteration are much less
common than has been supposed. The body is an extremely hardy
mechanism and its repair facilities are enormous. If an individual
can be made to speak or follow orders at all, it is conceivable
that the techniques of dianetics can be applied to reduce the
engrams in the engram bank, bringing about considerable improvement
in the condition and mental ability of the individual. When these
various sources are so severe that they inhibit any use of therapy,
and when it is certain that no recourse to therapy is possible and
that it is utterly impossible to reach the engram bank by standard
technique, hypnotism or drugs, such cases can be considered beyond
help of dianetics.
Category 7 presents another problem. Here we have selective
experimentation at work and it would be flatly impossible to
conceive, without months of study of their experimental subjects,
how many brands and varieties of operation have been performed and
how many odd and bizarre shocks have been used.
All iatrogenic alterations of the nervous system can be considered
under the heading of "reduced ability," in other words, inability.
In each case something has been done to reduce the ability of the
individual to perceive, record, recall or think. Any of these
complicate a case for dianetics, but they do not inevitably bar
dianetics from working.
450
In shock cases, such as electric shock, tissue may have been
destroyed and the memory banks may in some way have been scrambled,
the time track may be altered and other conditions may exist.
In all such iatrogenic alterations, the results of dianetics must
be considered equivocal. BUT IN ALL SUCH CASES, PARTICULARLY THOSE
OF ELECTRIC SHOCK, DIANETICS SHOULD BE USED IN EVERY POSSIBLE WAY
IN AN EFFORT TO IMPROVE THE PATIENT.
All shocks and operations should be picked up for what they are -
engrams.
NO PERSON WHO CAN PERFORM ROUTINE TASKS OR WHOSE ATTENTION CAN BE
ATTRACTED AND FIXED SHOULD FEEL DESPAIR OR BE CONSIDERED HOPELESS.
Any person who has been subjected to such treatment may not be able
to reach optimum mental efficiency but he may be able to reach a
level of rationality even yet in excess of the current normal. The
thing to do is try. In spite of what has happened or what has been
done, in the large majority of cases there may be a chance of
excellent recovery.*
ORGANIC DERANGEMENT
A standard class of prenatal engrams has as its content the worry
of the parents that the child will be feeble-minded if not now
aborted in earnest. This adds an emotional overload to such engrams
and it adds, as importantly, an aberrative condition in the now
grown patient
* Attempted abortion sometimes may do strange things to a brain.
This can be considered under the heading of injury. Most sonic
recalls can be recovered. If various recalls cannot be recovered
engrams can still be removed. Intelligence in such cases will rise
and is often already extremely high.
451
that he is "not right," "all wrong," "feeble-minded," and so forth.
The difficulty of aborting the child is nearly always
underestimated: the means used are often novel or bizarre: the
worry because the child has not come out of the womb after the
abortion attempt is acute, and the concern that he is now damaged
beyond repair all combine to make severely aberrative engrams and,
because of their content, engrams which are difficult to reach.
The aberrative quality of the "feeble-minded" species of remark is
of course, high. The worry that the child may be born blind or deaf
or otherwise incapacitated is common. The former class of engramic
remarks can bring about actual feeble-mindedness; the latter
concern over blindness and so on bring about, at best, impaired
visio and sonic recall.
The shut-off of the recalls is occasioned as well by an engramic
belief in the society at large that the unborn child is blind,
unfeeling and not alive. This belief is introduced into AA
(attempted abortion) engrams by people's self-justification remarks
while attempting an abortion: "Well, he can't see, feel or hear
anyway." Or, "It doesn't know what's going on. It's blind, deaf and
dumb. It's a sort of growth. It isn't human."
The greater part of all sonic and visio recall shut-off has as its
source the remarks made at such times or by painful emotion and
other engramic data. Hundreds of hours of therapy may pass before
these recalls turn on.
The bulk of all shut-offs will turn on in the course of therapy.
There are thousands of engramic remarks and emotional situations
which will deny the pre-clear his recall and that recall can be
expected ordinarily to restore.
A very low dynamic patient (for people have various native
strengths of the dynamic) may have recalls shut-off rather easily.
A high dynamic patient would require much more aberration before
the recalls are closed down.
452
These recalls can be turned on simply by running out the physically
painful and painful emotion engrams.
It must not pass unremarked, however, that the abortion attempts
actually can, if rarely, derange the brain and nervous mechanisms
beyond the foetal ability to repair. The result of this is actual,
physiological disability.
Children and adults now classified as feeble-minded may then be
separated into two groups: the actual, physiological class and the
aberrated class. Further, recall shut-offs must be classified into
two classes as well, regardless of the dynamic and intelligence of
the individual: those occasioned by brain damage received during an
attempted abortion and those which are solely aberrational and
derived from engramic commands and emotion.
The ability of the foetus to repair damage is phenomenal. Brain
damage can ordinarily be repaired perfectly regardless of how many
foreign substances were introduced into it. Just because the brain
was touched in an attempted abortion is no reason to suppose that
the recall shut-off has this as a source, for this is the rarer of
the two causes.
It is understood that this is being read by many with recall
shut-offs and it is understood that it may well produce a
considerable upset. But remember this, sonic and visio recall are
not vital to a nearly full release. This comment about organic
damage does not mean that a release cannot be effected which will
leave the person more competent and happier, for this can always be
done regardless of the recalls. And remember this, recalls almost
always turn on even if it takes five hundred hours or more. This
condition is only remarked because it will be found in some few
cases.
The "tests" and "experiments" with human brain vivisection in
institutions are not, unfortunately, valid. For
453
all the pain and trouble and destruction caused by these
"experiments," they were done without a proper knowledge of
aberration and mental derangement. None of such data is of any
value beyond showing that the brain can be cut in various ways
without entirely killing the man. For the patients used responded
both to engramic disorder and the physical disorder caused by the
psychiatrist, and there is no way to differentiate between these
after the operation except by dianetics. Conclusions drawn from
this data are then invalid conclusions, for the response of the
patient after the operation might have stemmed from a number of
sources: engramic, the engram of the operation itself, attempted
abortion damage early in life, brain disability on account of the
operation and so forth. Hence, draw no conclusions that impairment
of conceptual thinking, for instance, results only when a part of
the brain is removed, that recall is shut off only when the brain
is vivisected and so on. From a scientific standpoint no such
"findings" were conclusive of anything except that the brain can be
damaged late in life without entirely killing a man and that
surgery of any kind often brings about a mental change in the
patient. True, it may have been discovered that this or that
portion of the switchboard called the brain, when removed, removed
also some ability to perform.
DIANETIC FIRST AID
It will be of interest to those associated with emergency hospital
work particularly that the healing and recovery of any patient can
be enormously benefited and the term of illness shortened by
removing the engram occasioned at the moment of injury.
The accident case sometimes dies, in a few days, from shock, or
does not recover and will not heal swiftly. In any injury - a burn,
cut, a bruise of whatever kind - a trauma lingers in the injured
area. The moment of the
454
injury created an engram. This engram inhibits the release of the
trauma. The fact that the injured part still hurts is an organic
restimulator which depresses the ability of the patient to recover.
Using reverie or merely working the patient with his eyes closed,
and working the patient as soon after the injury as possible, the
doctor, nurse or relative can return the injured person to the
moment when the injury was received and usually recover and exhaust
the incident as a usual engram. Once the engram of the injury is
reduced, the general mental tone of the patient improves. Further,
the injured area is no longer inhibited from healing.
Some experimental work on this demonstrated that some burns would
heal and disappear in a few hours when the engram which accompanied
their reception was removed. On more serious injuries tests showed
definite and unmistakable acceleration of the rate of healing.
In operations, when anesthetics have been used, dianetics is useful
in two ways: (1) as a preventive measure and (2) as a recovery
measure. In the first, no conversation of any kind should be held
around or with the "unconscious" or semi-conscious patient. In the
second, the trauma of the operation itself should be recovered and
relieved immediately afterwards.
A PROBLEM IN MUTUAL THERAPY
R and his wife C cleared each other in eight months with dianetics,
working four hours a night four nights a week, each of them
auditing the other for two hours of the four. This mutual
arrangement had been complicated by the fact that whereas R was
very eager to be cleared, his wife was quite apathetic about the
work: he had managed only after much persuasion to get the cases
started.
455
He was a high dynamic case with much emotion encysted; she was an
apathy case who entirely neglected her troubles (black panther
mechanism). He was troubled with a chronic ulcer and anxieties
about his job; she was troubled with a general allergic condition
and a chronic carelessness in domestic affairs. They were not to
any great degree mutually restimulative, but they had problems
about tacit consent, avoiding the subjects which had most upset
them while together, such as a miscarriage she had had and the loss
of their home by fire many years before, as well as other shocks.
Further they were faced by R's intensity on the one hand and his
introversion, which caused him to slight her therapy, and C's
apathy on the other hand, which at once aided R's effort to take
more time as the pre-clear than she and which made her less
interested in being a good auditor.
Further complication took place because C did not understand the
auditor's code or its use and on several occasions had become angry
and impatient with R when he was in session and returned, an
attitude which tended to force R into an anger valence.
Along this uncertain course therapy had been continuing. R was then
informed of tacit consent and told he had better release some of
their mutual painful emotion. He thereafter addressed the engram of
the burning home and suddenly found himself able to audit some
early sympathy engrams of his wife's which had not heretofore been
available. It was discovered that her allergies stemmed from a
father sympathy compute and that R was the pseudo-father. This
resulted in a marked improvement in C's case. She began to suffer
less from her allergies and a chronic heart pain she had had so
long that she no longer heeded it vanished as well. She became
interested in being a good auditor and studied the subject. She
became slightly annoyed with R when he demanded more than his share
of therapy time. (This increase of interest is always true of any
apathy case which began with neglect of engrams.)
456
R, however, was much inhibited by her periods of anger and found
that he now operated almost exclusively under auto-control, a
condition wherein he decided what should be run and what should not
be run in himself. This auto-control is, of course, useless, since
if he knew about his aberrations and the data in his engrams, they
would not be engrams. He, therefore, started on a period of
refusing to display any emotion since she had mocked him about it,
would not follow her directions and was, in short, obeying the
engrams which she had given him when angry with him during past
sessions. C was advised to pick up the moments of anger she had
displayed as an auditor during therapy and when these were reduced,
it was found that R worked well again and cooperated.
His ulcer stemmed from an attempted abortion. His father, an
extremely aberrated individual, had sought to abort the baby when
it was seven months in the womb. The mother remonstrated that the
baby might be born alive. The father said that if it were alive
when born he would kill it as soon as it came out. He had said,
further, that the mother had to hold still while he operated. On
another occasion the father had said that he would lock the mother
in a closet until she decided to abort the child. (This case was
much complicated because the mother had been afraid to tell the
father and had pretended not to be pregnant for three months,
giving the husband the belief that the child, seven months along,
was actually only four months along. Therefore, there was much
secrecy in the case, much confusion and conflicting data.) This
meant that R had a severe holder in the prenatal area: he was held
by the engram which included a penetration of his stomach. This was
the key engram, which is to say other engrams, by the mechanism of
similar somatic and content, had gathered around it to suppress it.
This was the tangle of incidents which C was confronting
unknowingly: it had become more tangled by her anger. R would now
cooperate but his time track had wound into a ball around the
holder
457
engram, the key. Two exodontistries for the removal of wisdom teeth
with nitrous oxide anesthesia were also suppressing the prenatals.
C worked for some time trying to get at the late extraction
engrams, which contained an enormous amount of conversation between
the dentist and his assistants and R's mother, who, unfortunately
for his sanity, had accompanied him to the dentist's office.
R was made intensely uncomfortable by the continual restimulation
of engrams which yet could not be reached. He was no more
uncomfortable than he had often been in the past and his discomfort
would have been absent had C understood and followed the auditor's
code. The case made no progress for several weeks.
C's therapy was progressing. It was intensely restimulative to R to
work upon her and increase his discomfort, but the more he worked
on her the better auditing she did and the more intelligent she was
(her I.Q. went up about fifty points after five weeks of therapy).
C desired to know how she could break the impasses in his case and
was informed that she was now practicing tacit consent, for she had
many times been needlessly thoughtless of R long before therapy was
undertaken and she now realized what she had done to him and yet
could not bring herself to face the fact that she was a responsible
party to so much of his unhappiness - she had quite ordinarily used
angry language to him which she well knew would "push-button" him
into doing something or into retreating from a quarrel, which
language had been restimulative to him long before therapy.
C thereupon entered into painful emotion engrams late in R's life
and, by working early physically painful engrams which said R could
"feel nothing" alternately with late engrams when he was feeling
intensely on an emotional plane but could not exhibit it, began to
release the emotion in the case. R then showed steady improvement.
Late painful emotion was released and early prenatals
458
would show to be reduced, at which more late emotion would be
visible for reduction.
It was suddenly disclosed in the case that the reason R was so
easily upset by C lay in the person of a nurse who had attended R
during his tonsillectomy when he was five years of age. C had some
similarity of mannerism to this nurse. This was a sympathy engram,
and when it was released the time track began to straighten out and
the abortion engrams could be more easily contacted.
It so happened that R had been well off his time track most of his
life, his memory occluded, his recall in poor condition. This was
found to lie in the hidden key engram, the abortion attempt wherein
his father had vowed to kill him if he came out and had added that
the child could not see, feel or hear anything anyway, engramic
material which was demonstrated by R's inability to move on his
time track.
The moment the key was found - two hundred and eighty hours of
therapy had elapsed - R came back on the time track, could move on
it, and the erasure of his engrams proceeded in an orderly fashion.
C had been cleared about two months before R reached the final
engram. C's allergies, however, disappeared long before her case
was cleared completely and R's ulcer and some other psycho-somatic
difficulties also vanished well before his case was finally
cleared.
A PROBLEM IN A RESTIMULATED CASE
G was cleared in ten months of sporadic sessions. His case had the
initial diagnosis of non-sonic, non-visio, pain and emotional
shut-off, permanent light trance, permanent "regression" at the age
of three years. This is to say that the instant he went into
reverie he was startled and frightened to find himself in a dental
chair, three years old, and having a tooth pulled, an engram in
which
459
he had been situated, unknowingly, about half of his ensuing life.
It had been the partial cause of his chronic tooth decay and his
inability to sleep as negation against the anesthetic. The
situation was obvious since he immediately began to wrestle about
and lisp, which condition was instantly remedied by running the
engram so that he could come to present time, which he did.
He had had considerable difficulty in life, was a high dynamic but
manifested apathy. It was discovered after seventy-five hours, at
which time release took place, that his wife was sometimes his
pseudo-grandmother and also, by ambivalence, was his pseudo-mother.
As his sympathy computation demanded that he be ill so that his
grandmother would stay with him and as his contra-survival engrams
demanded that his mother was only nice to him when he was ill, the
reactive computation added up to the fact that he must be ill
continually, which demand had been obeyed by his body for
twenty-three years. All this was recovered and remedied, of course,
only by reducing engrams.
The erasure began to take place at the end of about two hundred
hours of therapy and was proceeding when the case suddenly stopped
all progress. For fifty or more hours of therapy, few engrams could
be located, those which were located could not be reduced, no
painful emotion could be reached and whatever engrams were reached
and reduced were located and treated only because the auditor in
this case used highly skilled forcing techniques which are almost
never necessary and should not be employed save in psychotic cases.
Such endeavor had not been necessary at the beginning of the case.
Something was obviously wrong.
On close questioning it was discovered that G's wife was violently
opposed to dianetics, that she never lost any chance of leveling
the most scathing attacks against it to G and particularly when he
was in the company of friends. She derided him as being psychotic.
She sought
460
a lawyer to give her a divorce (announcing it after he had entered
therapy but actually having had continual consultation on it with a
lawyer for two years past) and generally agitated and disturbed G
to such an extent that he was continually receiving painful
emotional engrams even though he did not display any emotion
against her.
They had a child, nine years of age, a boy. G was very fond of the
boy. The child had had an unusual number of childhood illnesses and
suffered from eye trouble and chronic sinusitis; he was backward in
school. The wife was somewhat sharp with the child. Anything he did
made her nervous.
The auditor in the case, on learning the facts about her attitude
toward her husband in general and dianetics in particular, held a
conference with her about her husband. She was found to be
unopposed to therapy for herself. Shortly after the conference, G
and this woman had a brief quarrel in which G made the remark that
she must be aberrated. She took intense affront at this and said
that he must be the one who was crazy since he was interested in
dianetics. He countered with the fact that of the two he must be
the least aberrated since he was taking steps to do something about
it. Further, he pointed out that she must be aberrated or she would
not be as quarrelsome with the child as she was, a fact which
definitely indictated that she must have a block on her second
dynamic, sex.
The following day he came home from work and found she had
withdrawn the money from the bank and gone to another town, taking
the boy with her. He followed and found her staying with some of
her relatives. She had told them that he beat her and had gone so
crazy that he had to have therapy. The truth of the matter was that
he had never touched her brutally in his life. In this meeting,
before witnesses, she began to rave and revile any "system of
psychiatry" which believed in pre-speech memory. He pointed out to
her that many schools of the past had
461
believed in pre-speech memory, that the whole background of
psychiatry had long talked about "memories of the womb" without
knowing what they were, and so forth.
Her relatives, seeing him so calm about it, forced her to return
home with him. En route she made a dramatic gesture, although in no
way threatened, of committing suicide by leaping out of the car.
The auditor in the case had a private conversation with her on her
return. He had somewhat belatedly deduced the fact that there was
something in her life which she was afraid her husband would find
out and that, confronted with a science which could recover all
memory, she had become wildly emotional about it. She at length
admitted under close questioning, that this was the case, that her
husband must never know. She was so disturbed that the auditor,
with her consent, gave her a few hours of therapy. It was instantly
discovered that her father had many times threatened to kill her
mother and that her father had not wanted her. Further, it was
found that her father's name was Q and that her engram bank was
strewn with remarks such as "Q, please don't leave me. I will die
without you." Additionally, when she was no longer in session, she
suddenly volunteered what was to her a hysterically humorous fact
that all her life she had been having affairs with men named Q no
matter what their shape or size or age. This was far from a release
but in view of the fact that his other patient, G, was jeopardized
by all this unnecessary hubbub and that therapy was being stalled,
the auditor further questioned her. She divulged that she had tried
many times to abort their son because she was terribly frightened
that he would be a blond whereas she and her husband had dark hair.
Further, the engrams of that child, she knew, contained data which
she considered incriminating beyond mere abortion; while pregnant
she had had intercourse with three men other than her husband.
462
The auditor pointed out to her that this guilt feeling, no matter
how real, was still engramic in her and that it was doubtful if her
husband would kill her on receipt of these tidings. He told her
that she was condemning a child to a second-rate existence and that
she was reducing her husband to apathy by her fears and causing the
auditor far more work than was necessary. In her husband's and the
auditor's presence she confessed her infidelity and learned with
some amazement that her husband had known about it for years. He
had not known about her attempts on their child.
She was requested to study a therapy manual and clear the child
which, with her husband's help, she did. The auditor continued G on
to clear, who then cleared his wife.
ADVICE TO THE AUDITOR
The hidden source of human aberration was hidden for a number of
very specific reasons. The auditor will encounter all of these and
although with these techniques, the ability of the reactive engram
bank to deny him is precisely nil, he should know the nature of the
beast he has under attack.
The mechanisms of protection which the engram bank had - although
they are not very good now that we know how to penetrate this armor
of insanity's cause - are as follows:
1. Physical pain.
2. Emotion in terms of captured units.
3. "Unconsciousness."
4. The delayed character of the key-in.
5. Delay between restimulation and illness.
6. Utter irrationality.
Of the physical pain we know much - that the mind, in memory,
sought to avoid it just as the mind in life seeks
463
to avoid it as an outside source: hence, memory blockage.
Emotion of loss piles up to make a buffer between the individual
and the reality of death.
"Unconsciousness" is not only a mechanism of hiding data, it is
also a block to memory which cannot jump the gaps of past moments
when the fuses were blown.
An engram might slumber for the better part of a lifetime and then,
given the correct set of restimulators in the right moment of
physical weariness or illness, manifest itself, making an apparent
cause of insanity or lesser aberration many years after the actual
incident had taken place.
Another aspect of the bank protective mechanism was the
restimulator lag, which is to say that when a keyed-in engram was
restimulated it often required two or three days for action to take
place. (Example: say a migraine headache has as its restimulator a
rhythmic bumping sound; that sound is heard by the individual who
has the engram; three days later he suddenly has a migraine.) Given
this lag, how could one locate the cause of a specific
restimulation of a sporadic illness?
The utter irrationality of an engram, the ultimate in
irrationality, that everything equals everything else in the engram
and that these are equal to things in the exterior environment
which are only vaguely similar is a feat of idiocy which any
sentient man might be expected to overlook as a "thought process."
Man has been looking for this source for some thousands of years;
but he was looking for something which was complicated on the
grounds that anything which could be so harrowing, so destructive,
so vicious and so capable of producing complex manifestations must
therefore have a complex source; on examination it is remarkably
simple.
The auditor will have very little to do with trying to draw a line
between sanity and insanity, they are such relative terms. He will
be asked to compare dianetics
464
with old standards such as the complex classifications of
Kraepelin: it can be done but it has the usefulness of Aristotelian
natural history, of interest only to the historian.
If an individual is incapable of adjusting himself to his
environment so as to get along with or obey or command his fellows,
or, more importantly, if he is incapable of adjusting his
environment, then he can be considered to be "insane." But it is a
relative term. Sanity, on the other hand, closely approaches, with
dianetics, a potential absolute meaning for we know the optimum
mind. Modifications of education and viewpoint may make the
rational action of one person appear irrational to another but this
is not a problem of sanity, it is a problem of viewpoint and
education, with which the auditor will have but small concern.
Thus the patients the auditor will encounter will fall into the
three general dianetic classes of non-sonic recall, imaginary
recall and sonic recall. The question of sanity does not arise: the
question of how difficult or how long the case may be is fairly
well determined by the degree of these three conditions.
However, the auditor will find that he may have in his hands a
truly "insane" case, one which is "psychotic." The treatment of
such a case depends on which of the three above classes the
psychotic patient may be entered. The problem is to de-intensify
the engrams of the patient as swiftly as possible.
The conditions and mechanisms which hide the engram bank do not
vary: they are uniformly present in every patient, in every human
being. The techniques of dianetics may be improved upon - and what
scientific technique, particularly in its first few years of
existence cannot be - but they also do not perform selectively but
are applicable to all individuals.
Hence, if we have an "insane" patient, the fundamental problem does
not change and dianetic technique
465
works as in any other case. The task is to reduce the intensity of
charge in the case so that it can be resolved by standard
technique.
Insane patients are often found stuck on the time track, in which
case a holder is fed to them, one kind after another, until they
are moving again. If the patient is regressed, he has become so
thoroughly stuck that he has lost touch with the present time. Any
patient can begin to relive instead of merely return and the
auditor, as the remedy for this, merely snaps at them that they can
remember this, which places them in a returned status again. Insane
patients are often found listening to one engram over and over, in
which case it is again only necessary to fix attention and feed
them holders until they are once more moving on the track. Insane
patients are sometimes discovered completely off the time track,
listening to demons or seeing illusion. The problems are always the
same; use repeater technique when, by one means or another, their
attention has been fixed and then either get them moving on the
track or get them back on the time track. The schizophrenic is
usually a long way off his time track.
The best way to de-intensify a case so that it can be entered in
routine therapy is to discover and discharge painful emotion
engrams. If ordinary means fail, get the help of a medical doctor,
place the patient under nitrous oxide or sodium pentothal and reach
a deep level of trance where the patient will be found, ordinarily,
to be capable of moving on his track even though he was off his
track when awake. Find a late despair engram and discharge it as
described in the chapter on emotion. The technique for deep trance
is no different except that very cautious safeguards must be taken
to say nothing which will aberrate the patient further but to limit
all conversation to therapy patter, being very careful to include
the canceller.
The insane patient is obeying some engramic command, perhaps many,
no matter what he is doing. That
466
command may dictate, by the patient's misinterpretation, some
strange action; it may dictate demons; it may dictate anything. But
diagnosis merely consists of observing the patient in order to
discover, by his actions, what the engramic command might be.
This volume does not cover Institutional Dianetics beyond these few
remarks, but an auditor who knows the fundamentals in this volume
and with any understanding can bring about a "sanity" in patients
in a short time which the boards of these institutions normally
consider a miraculous recovery. The patient, however, is very far
from a release, and many more hours should be spent in discharging
further painful emotion and reducing engrams before an auditor
should consider it safe to permit him to leave therapy.
The auditor should be extremely cautious, at least for the next
twenty years, about any case which has been institutionalized, for
he may be getting a case with iatrogenic psychosis - caused by
doctors - in addition to the patient's other engrams. Dianetics may
help a mind a little in which the brain has been "ice-picked" or
"apple-cored," but it cannot cure such insanity until some clever
biologist finds a way to grow a new brain. Electric shock cases are
equivocal: they may or may not respond to treatment, for brain
tissue may have been burned away to a point where the brain cannot
function normally. In entering any such case, the auditor will be
perplexed by the scrambled condition of the standard bank, to say
nothing of the circuits by which he should be able to reach the
engram bank. Syphilis and other brain erosions should be similarly
classified and should be approached or undertaken only with the
full knowledge that dianetics may not be able to help the
dismembered machine at all. There have been many thousands of these
brain "operations" and hundreds of thousands of electric shock
treatments: thus the auditor should be alert not to engage upon
what may be a hopeless cause when there exist so many cases which
can better be helped. Any case which
467
has been institutionalized should be suspected. And if anything
unusual in the way of memory scramble or lack of coordination is
observed, searching inquiry may reveal hidden institutionalization.
Further, an auditor called upon to assist a case which is about to
be institutionalized should always be wary. The case which is being
sent to an institution may be a case which has been in one before,
regardless of the protestations of relatives or friends that such
is not the circumstance.
Similarly combat exhaustion cases should be warily undertaken, for
the case was probably processed before quitting the service, at
which time electric shock or brain operation or narco-synthesis may
have been applied without the knowledge or consent of the patient.
These warnings are given not because the auditor will be in any
particular physical danger - patients seldom do anything but
cooperate, sane or insane, when dianetics is applied, even if they
snarl about it - but because much work may be expended only to
discover that the entire mental machinery has been wrecked beyond
repair.
If the auditor undertakes an electric shock case, he should address
his primary attention to the release of that shock as an engram,
for there is all manner of careless chatter contained in these
institutional engrams, which may further inhibit treatment. This is
aside from the fact that any electric shock, anywhere in the body,
has a tendency to derange the engram bank and bind it so that its
incidents are more than usually snarled.
For no other reason than the advance of dianetics, and the
conservation of an auditor's time, it should also be remarked that
the third degree methods of some police departments and general
police abuse of criminals or ordinary citizens may have to be
released in a case before it can be further treated. Prison terms
may contain large despair charges sufficient to derange the mind
and yet may be hidden by the patient under the mistaken idea
468
that the auditor is interested or will be disappointed in his
"character."
Various other things enter into the engram bank which would not be
suspected as obstacles to therapy unless mentioned. Hypnotism can
be extremely aberrative and may hold up a case. An auditor should
have some working knowledge of it so that he can release the
engrams it makes, not so he can work dianetics. Hypnotism is the
art of implanting positive suggestions in the engram bank. Here
they may append themselves to engrams and become locks on those
engrams. As most engram banks contain a sample of most common
words, hypnotism is almost certain to be aberrative. The reduction
of analytical power by artificial means places the subject in an
optimum condition for the receipt of an engram. The hypnotist uses
the forgetter mechanism with most of his suggestions and most
people have similar engramic remarks which make it impossible for
the hypnotist's suggestion to release. Hypnotism can be considered
as a "high-powered" lock and may be a serious obstacle in the
patient's engram bank. With clearing, the suggestions having no
anchors of pain below them in engrams, vanish as locks. But
hypnotic suggestions may have to be found and cleared before a case
can proceed. Hypnotism is very commonly used in this society and it
is very often the case that, with the forgetter mechanism, the
patient is unable to recall whether he had ever been hypnotized or
not. Return technique will discover it, repeater technique, making
the patient return with repetition of hypnotic patter (by the
patient) such as "Go to sleep, go to sleep, go to sleep," can be
depended upon to locate it.
Not all hypnotism is in the parlor. Perverts quite commonly use it
despite the fact that the "moral" nature is supposed to rise in a
hypnotized subject. Incidents even with people of repute have been
found in patients when examining their childhood. These incidents
were often
469
entirely occluded to the patient, so thoroughly cowing were the
commands contained in the hypnotic suggestion.
Dianetics and hypnotism can be combined, but so can dianetics and
astronomy. The auditor will find himself working with hypnotic
patients and will have to be very careful with patter in order to
install minimal words of his own in the engram bank so as not to
turn dianetics into hypnotism.
Any benefit derived from hypnotism is in the field of research or
the installation of a temporary manic engram. The latter has far
more harm than value. Hypnotic anesthetic is vastly overrated. And
hypnotism as a parlor game is a thing which no society should
tolerate, for it may be sufficiently destructive to cause the
engrams to restimulate to a point of insanity. And the hypnotist
never knows the content of the engram bank. Any good hypnotist, if
he can conquer his desire to talk, should make a good auditor: but
if he tries to combine dianetics and hypnotism he will find himself
with a very thoroughly sick patient on his hands. Never install a
positive suggestion of any kind in a patient no matter how much he
may beg for one. It has proven nearly fatal.
An entire case can be worked in deep amnesia trance. It is often
possible to waken a sleeping person into a deep trance simply by
speaking to him quietly several nights in succession at the same
hour and finally getting him to respond to the invitation to talk.
Dianetic therapy can then be entered upon and pursued and will
succeed particularly if the auditor is not careless enough to
artificially restimulate a late physical pain engram, treating in
the post-birth life mainly engrams of painful emotion. If the
person on whom the therapy is being done is aware of the action, he
can be put into reverie so that earlier data can be reached, "I"
being more powerful than the weak if wise attention units which
constitute basic personality. He is alternately worked in amnesia
trance and
470
then in reverie. The case will resolve eventually even if reverie
is not used. But there are grave responsibilities with amnesia
trance: a canceller must always be installed and used in every
session. Minimal conversation must be employed. All auditor desires
should be stated as questions if possible, as these are not
aberrative to the degree that commands are. This method has been
successful and can be used, but reverie, even if it appears slower,
even if sonic is not present, is far more satisfactory for the
excellent and incontrovertible reason that the patient recovers
more swiftly and recovers on a steady upgrade whereas amnesia
trance may incapacitate him for days together, when incidents are
apparently lifted in deep trance but nevertheless "hung up" in the
awake state. Amnesia trance is definitely not advised: it has been
subjected to much research and has been found to be both
uncomfortable for the patient and harassing to the auditor.
However, if other methods cannot be used for one reason or another
(and none of those reasons include the desire of the pre-clear who,
if the auditor would let him, might crave drugs, hypnotism and
positive suggestion in an effort to escape his engrams and who, if
allowed, would have himself a wonderfully messy case for the
auditor to unsnarl), amnesia trance can be employed, but always
with the greatest caution and always with the full knowledge that
the patient's recovery is retarded by as much as a factor of three,
for working on a level with the engram bank leaves the analyzer
circuits unused in the discharge. Reverie is best.
EXTERNAL PROBLEMS WITH PATIENTS
It may happen that a patient who has made progress suddenly ceases
to make further progress. The answer may lie elsewhere than
therapy. The environment of the pre-clear may be so intensely
restimulative that he is
471
distracted, always in restimulation and thus works slowly. It may
be discovered, in such a case, that the pre-clear (as in one case)
has made a bargain with a wife or husband who desires divorce that
he or she wait until the pre-clear is cleared. Other situations of
a life nature can place an environmental value on not being
cleared. The auditor has no business with the private lives of his
pre-clears, but in a case where therapy itself is made difficult by
existing situations the auditor, with his time at stake, has every
right to discover the reason. All these reasons will compute into
some environmental advantage in not being clear. Removing the
pre-clear temporarily from his home, for instance, may change his
environment and advance therapy. The auditor has a right to ask
that, clear or not, the patient resolve the problem on his own
initiative. It is common with pre-clears that they do not realize
that they are releases for so glittering is the goal of clear that
they cease to compare themselves to the normal which they have
already overpassed.
A patient can commonly be expected to introvert to a very marked
degree in the course of dianetic therapy. As the case progresses
this introversion reaches an acute stage about three-quarters or
thereabouts through and thereafter recedes. Ambiversion is a marked
characteristic of the clear. When introversion has been marked, a
fairly good gauge of the advance of the case is in the pre-clear's
interest in exterior things.
Nearly all pre-clears talk a great deal about their engrams up to
the point when they are very solid releases. If they don't or won't
talk about their engrams in common conversation, the auditor can
suspect something highly protected in the engram bank concerning
the necessity to hide something: the auditor can act accordingly.
Although the auditor may weary of such conversation, it
nevertheless reveals much new material to him if he observes the
phrases which the pre-clear uses about engrams.
472
It is very, very true that aberration is caused by what has been
done to not what has been done by the patient. The actions of the
patient in dramatizing, in committing crimes and so forth are not
aberrative to the patient. Therefore the pre-clear's activities
need be no concern whatever of the auditor's. Whole cases have been
completed without the auditor's knowing what the pre-clear did for
a living. While responsibility for his actions is necessarily
demanded of him by an aberrated society, antisocial activity is the
resuit of engrams which dictate it. The patient is not responsible
for what he himself has done. Cleared, the matter is different. A
clear can be considered entirely responsible for his own actions,
for he can compute rationally on the basis of his experience. But
the aberree has little or no real control over his actions.
Therefore, the auditor should make it plain that he does not care
what the aberree who becomes a pre-clear has done in life. The
problem on hand between the auditor and the pre-clear is an engram
bank which contains, exclusively, what other people have done in
life and what has been done to the pre-clear in moments when he
could not protect himself. This approach is not only truth, it has
a therapeutic value, for in so explaining himself an auditor can
often obtain cooperation which would otherwise be denied.
The auditor should never violate the auditor's code with a patient.
Extended terms of therapy inevitably result from such violations.
RESTIMULATION
The mind is a self-protecting mechanism - but so is dianetics. A
science of thought which works would so closely approximate the
working principles of the mind that it would follow in parallels
the injunctions and provisos of the mind itself. Such is the case
with dianetics:
473
the mind is diagnosed by its reaction to therapy, therapy is
improved by the reactions of the mind to it. This is a working
principle of great value since it explains much observed phenomena
and predicts most of the remainder. Part of this parallelism is the
self-protection feature.
It is almost impossible to injure a mind: it is an extremely tough
organism. Of course, when one begins to hew and saw upon it with
metal or poison it with drugs or bacteria or throw its natural
armor aside as with hypnotism, unfortunate things can occur.
Charlatanism is almost impossible where dianetics in any of its
principles is being practiced. One either practices all dianetics
and gets results or practices himself into a decline: that is a
mechanical, scientific fact. Dianetics, as a self-protecting
science, demands practice by clears or at least good releases. A
clear very closely follows in all his conduct the better aspects of
the auditor's code: his ethical level is very high. Hence, anyone
starting a practice of dianetics is going to find himself, no
matter what his original intention, thrust toward the goal of being
a clear.
There is an excellent reason for this. There is a principle known
as restimulation of the auditor. We have an understanding now of
what makes an engram come into restimulation. When it comes into
restimulation, it forces the pain or the action of the engram into
being in the organism. The observation of some percept in the
environment which approximates a recording, sound or sight or
organic sensation, in the engram brings the engram into greater or
lesser play. Similarly, when an auditor is not cleared himself or
when he is not in therapy himself working toward the goal of a
clear, he becomes restimulated. He is, after all, listening
constantly to engramic material in a patient. This engramic
material is the very stuff of which insanity is made. Anyone has
engrams: sooner or later a patient is going to start going
474
over an engram of his own which will approximate the auditor's own
engrams. This leads to great discomfort for the auditor unless the
auditor is in therapy and can have the discomfort so brought forth
released. So long as one is merely working late locks, this is not
so much the case and has made it possible for practitioners and
mental healers of the past to escape much of the penalty of their
own aberrations, but when one deals with the root material of these
aberrations, a constant hammering by restimulators can bring about
a serious condition. This is the mechanism which causes people in
asylums to fall prey themselves to psychoses, although one must
have had them in the first place for them to have been
restimulated.
The auditor may run one or two cases without any serious
repercussion: indeed, no matter what the repercussion, it can be
eliminated by dianetics. To save his own comfort, however, he
should himself be cleared or released as soon as possible. He can
work as a release without too much trouble, and this makes it
possible for him to make a mutual compact where he is worked on
while he is working the other. A condition can then come about
where two pre-clears are each auditors. This alternation between
the couch and the auditor's chair will usually work very well.
Two persons, however, after they have begun work, may discover that
they are mutually restimulative - which is to say each is a
pseudo-person in the other's engrams or one is restimulated (voice
tone, incidents) by the other. This should be no bar to therapy. It
has been overcome and therapy has gone forward despite the most
severe restimulative circumstances. A common avoidance technique on
the part of a subject is to claim the auditor restimulates him: it
is not sufficiently important to stop therapy. It may be, however,
that two people can enter a third into the chain and by one
clearing the next
475
considerably ease the tension. The triangular work plan, where no
person is working on the person who is working him, is quite
successful.
A husband and wife who have quarreled long and often may find it
too restimulative to clear each other. It is possible to do if
other arrangements cannot be made and it is often done: but if
therapy does not go well, he should find a therapy partner and so
should she. Mothers who have attempted abortion on their children
or otherwise maltreated them can accomplish therapy on those
children, but in any case of restimulative circumstance such as
this, the greatest precaution must be taken by the auditor to
adhere severely to the auditor's code - to do otherwise might bring
much more stress into therapy than is necessary. In such a case,
the mother had better herself have at least a release accomplished
upon her before she attempts to clear her children - and she should
not touch those children until they are at least eight.
The subject of auditor-restimulation, where the auditor
restimulates the pre-clear or the pre-clear restimulates the
auditor, does not include the routine aspect of therapy that the
pre-clear is always being artificially restimulated via standard
therapy. An engram can be restimulated by being touched several
times and so it will lift. The auditor-restimulation problem is a
specific one where the auditor is a pseudo-enemy, a similarity to a
person who has harmed the patient. Wild antagonism on the part of a
patient to an auditor is usually traced to this. Some patients have
such a hatred of men that only women can work them, some have such
a hatred of women that only men can work them. But even when there
is a wild antipathy, if there exists no other auditor or person who
can be trained quickly as one, therapy can proceed anyway: and it
will accomplish results.
476
REBALANCING A CASE
Any case dropped out of therapy will rebalance itself in a few
weeks, which is to say, it will settle to a new high for the
individual. Unless drug hypnotism or some other dianetically
illegal method is used, all cases will so rebalance, much
benefited. Restimulations can be expected to die down if they are
due to therapy. The patient will gradually find his own level in
the released state. Cases do not have to be carried forward to
clear if auditor time is short, but it is, of course better if they
are and, indeed, the majority of patients will insist that they be.
WORKING TIME IN THERAPY
The usual period of a dianetic treatment is two hours. In these two
hours, with the usual patient, everything is going to be
accomplished which can be accomplished on that day. Working every
day is not necessary, but working every two days or every three
days is desirable. Working with periods a week apart is not
optimum, for the case tends to rebalance. Further, there is a "sag"
in a case, usually every fourth day when it is not worked in
periods as short as three days. The fourth day "sag" is a natural
mechanical thing: an engram, keyed-in, when it is restimulated in
life, takes about four days to cut in sharply. In therapy, three
days is sometimes required to "develop" an engram. This does not
mean that three days have to elapse before it is available and it
does not mean that work has to stop for three days, but it does
mean that engrams, not being memories and articulate as such, take
three days, sometimes, to come to the surface.
To be more clear, an engram can be asked for on day one and will be
found on day three. Meanwhile the
477
auditor is getting other engrams. This process is so automatic that
it requires no attention and will not come to notice except in
cases that are being worked once a week. The engram is asked for on
day one, is ready to reduce on day three, sags on day four and is
rebalanced by day seven.
The three day aspect is interesting in another sense. This time of
three days is just an observation of the average behavior of
pre-clears. Precision investigation may fix it at 2.5 days or 3.6
days (it varies in individuals), but three days is close enough for
our purposes. When one is doing just a release on a case, he will
sometimes find that it is necessary to take a late engram and run
it: the physical pain engram of later life (post-birth) will appear
to rise, will remain constant for three days and then will "sag."
When it sags, the auditor will have to go back to it and run it
again. Taking out these "sags" will eventually make the later life
engram stay in a recessed state.
Euphoria often sets in on a case when the auditor touches an engram
which contains a manic. The patient will then go around saying how
wonderful dianetics is because he is now in magnificent condition
and is so happy. Watch out. In three or four days this manic will
have sagged back to a depressive state. Be wary if somebody
experiences one of these sky-rocket "recoveries" for it is about as
permanent as the fire of a burning match. It goes out and leaves
very cold ashes. The auditor, seeing this euphoria, had better
enter the case again and reduce the engram it contains more
thoroughly or get a more basic engram.
The length of time it takes to clear a person is quite variable. By
blowing despair charges and working a few early engrams, an auditor
can get a better state of being in the patient than in any past
therapy in twenty or thirty hours: this is a release. It compares
to two or three years of past therapeutic work. The length of time
it takes to
478
get a clear cannot be compared to any past standard because a clear
is something no past standard ever dreamed about.
In a sonic case, where recall is in good condition, a clear can be
obtained in a hundred hours. In a case which has thoroughly shut
down recalls, anything can happen up to, in extremity, a thousand
hours. Similarly, the imaginative case which has things which never
happened, may be long.
Look at it this way: we can get the results of two or three years
of psycho-analysis in a score or two of hours of dianetics and what
we accomplish with dianetics does not have to be done again, which
is not true with psycho-analysis. This is the release. He can go
about his business in a far more competent fashion, his emotional
charges being largely freed. In the clear we are attempting and can
achieve a supernormal state of mind. Thousands and thousands and
thousands of hours were spent in the education of a man: the
expenditure of two or even ten thousand hours of work to make him
rank about what would formerly have been possible for him is work
well spent. But we do not have to spend anything like this amount
of time. People have been cleared in anything from thirty hours,
when they had sonic and little volume, to five hundred hours when
they had shut-down recall plus imaginary recall. What an auditor
can do with his first few cases by way of time is a question mark.
He will get to the clear eventually and certainly in less than
twelve hundred hours in a severe case. All the time he is working
toward a clear he is achieving a higher and higher release which,
after at least fifty hours, rises well above the current norm and
keeps right on soaring. Improvement is such that from week to week
the charge is physiologically noticeable and psychologically
startling. If one thinks the reach for clear is a short jump and a
small gain, then he has no conception of just how high that goal
is.
479
Most auditors will try for release at first and are wise if they
do. When their own case is finally cleared, only then will they
suddenly realize that the state was worth far more time than was
expended to attain.
It is impossible to forecast, with a new auditor, just how much
time he will consume in making errors, learning his tools,
attaining skill. It is therefore impossible to estimate for him how
long it will take him to gain a clear in a patient. A well trained
auditor never takes more than eight hundred hours with the worst of
cases: five hundred is high.
DATA FROM RELATIVES
The auditor will always be plagued by the anxiety of the patient to
get data from relatives or friends. The request for this data
itself is restimulative both to the pre-clear and the relative.
Mothers have been made very ill by being given the restimulators of
their own past illnesses by the child who has "suddenly found out."
It is a uniform experience that the data obtained from relatives,
parents and friends by the pre-clear is absolutely and utterly
worthless. Here we are depending upon an aberree's memory when we
have at hand, with dianetics, a reliable source of accurate
material. Auditors have had cases progress very smoothly and then
suddenly stop progress: on inquiry it is discovered that the
pre-clear has been running around to his parents and relatives for
material and they, wanting nothing more than that he forget all
about what they have done to him, throw him red herrings which have
to be carefully eliminated. These are the villains of the piece,
the people who have done the things to the pre-clear which made him
an aberree. If one expects accurate data from them, one might as
well expect the moon to be green cheese.
480
If the auditor wants data from these people and requests it,
by-passing the pre-clear, he may get somewhere. But any data so
received has a value which, in intelligence, is used to label
"Incompetent Source - Improbable Material."
Warn a pre-clear not to bother his relatives and parents and
explain to him that he can make them ill by asking for data, on
the restimulator principle. If we want confirmation of the data
received, the only way to get it is put the parent or relative
in therapy. At such time, we shall get the basic dramatization
sources: in the prenatal life and childhood of the parent. This
is a problem of research, not of therapy.
If the auditor has Mama available, he can run off the child's birth
and then Mama giving birth, keeping the two apart, and get his
check on the accuracy of therapy. And there are other data that
can be so compared, using proper safeguards.
The subjective reality, not the objective reality, is the important
question to the auditor. First, last and always, does the patient
get well?
STOPPING THERAPY
The woman scorned has a violent rival in the pre-clear on whom
therapy has been stopped by the auditor's decision.
Keeping the pre-clear in therapy, no matter how seldom are the
sessions, satisfies in some measure the effort his basic
personality makes to fight clear of the aberrations.
The basic personality, the file clerk, the core of "I" which wants
to be in command of the organism, the most fundamental desires of
the personality, may be considered synonymous for our purposes.
There is an enormous
481
surge of this basic self - which is really the individual himself -
to conquer the engrams. The engrams, borrowing life from their
host, appear as things which do not want to be conquered. As
mechanistic as all this actually is, the auditor will often find
himself wondering at the resistance the engrams can make and
marveling at the efforts of the basic personality to conquer the
engrams. He works with the basic personality, the individual
himself, and ignores the engramic efforts to interfere. But there
is a situation in which the basic personality seems to give free
play to the engrams in an effort to accomplish therapy.
In work, a "patient" might have been skeptical, sarcastic or even
vicious to the auditor. Or the patient may have been thought to be
completely neglectful of his engram bank. Or the patient may even
rage that he hates therapy. For some of these reasons the auditor
may injudiciously decide to cease working the patient. The patient
is so informed. For a short while, perhaps, the patient may
manifest no reaction but in a few minutes, a few hours or a few
days, basic personality, denied a route out, may begin to use every
weapon to hand to compel the auditor to resume therapy.
Disturbed by cessation of therapy, even though he may have insisted
upon its being stopped, the ex-patient may begin either to rapidly
decline or to attack to his face or behind his back the auditor and
even therapy itself. The woman scorned has rarely made such
thorough upsets as ex-patients who have been refused continuance of
therapy. Auditors have been personally reviled, have had other
pre-clears searched out and undermined by violent attacks upon
therapy itself, have been targeted by all manner of accusations and
whispering campaigns and have been made most uncomfortable by
pre-clears who have had further therapy denied to them before a
release had taken place. Even solid, legitimate releases, whose
psycho-somatic ills have disappeared and who should be
482
quite cheerful, have been observed to create turbulence when the
auditor would not take them through to clear. Any number of
mechanisms may be used by the ex-patient. as many mechanisms as men
use to force other men into action. One of the mechanisms is a
resumption of apathy and a "swift decline." Another is wild
campaigning against therapy. Another is personal attack of the
auditor. Each has, as its provable intention, the resumption of
therapy.
The mind knows how the mind works. And the mind which has tasted a
way out of pain and unhappiness may be expected, if that way is
blocked, to use all methods to cause therapy to be resumed.
No matter how thoroughly disagreeable the ex-patient has been, the
moment the auditor starts therapy upon him again, the attitude
alters. No further destructive efforts are made against the auditor
or therapy but all is almost as well as it was before the cessation
was declared.
Do not suppose, however, that the pre-clear, if he has been
neglectful, recalcitrant or generally uncooperative before, will
now embrace therapy as chastened patient. Far from the case, he is
now at least as difficult to work as he was before plus some
additional antagonism engendered by the cessation order.
In such a case the auditor is damned if he does and double-damned
if he doesn't. But there is a way out of this. The phenomenon of
"transference," where the patient simply transfers his griefs to
the practitioner, is not the mechanism here at work; transference
is a different thing, bred of a thirst for attention and a feeling
of needed support in the world. Transference can be expected to
keep up forever if permitted; the patient of a doctor, for
instance, may go on and on having illnesses just to keep the doctor
around. Transference may occur in dianetic therapy, the patient may
lean on the auditor solidly, beg the auditor for advice, appear to
hold out engrams in an effort to keep the auditor working hard
483
and available and interested; all this is the resultant of a
sympathy computation and is aberrated conduct. The clever auditor
will not give advice or attempt to run anyone's life, for a person
works well only as a self-determined organism. In dianetic therapy,
no matter what the attitude of the patient, no matter how great his
"desires to be ill" or his transference of burden, no matter about
even his vicious remarks to the auditor during sessions, the
condition cannot obtain forever. Basic personality is trying to get
through; "I" is trying to integrate self. Even indifferent work
will eventually release enough charge from a case and reduce enough
engrams to bring a higher stability to the patient. Basic
personality gets stronger and stronger and therefore more
self-reliant. The introversion occasioned by continual effort to
reach the interior world of the engram bank de-intensifies and
extroversion comes more and more into being as the case advances.
The way out is to work the patient smoothly and well and one day he
will be well released or clear. But meanwhile, if you stop therapy
on anyone, don't be surprised at anything that happens; you can
only remedy it by resuming the case.
AUDITOR EVALUATION
The auditor must do much evaluation to himself. He does not
evaluate or force upon his pre-clear any computation. If the
pre-clear computes that this was what was making him ill, then this
is what the auditor accepts. Explaining to the pre-clear what it
was in the engram which affected him so and so is not only a waste
of time but also makes the pre-clear confused. The reason an
auditor evaluates is to make sure he is not accepting imagined data
or incomplete data as engrams.
An incident will not lift unless the data in it is correct: this is
automatic. Change just one syllable in the incident
484
and it will stick. Or, if it seems to go away, it will be back. So
there is no fear that any incident which decreases with recounting
is incorrect. The data in it must be more or less correct or it
would not so reduce. Thus the auditor who challenges incidents,
data or otherwise plays god is going to have a thoroughly fouled up
case on his hands before he goes very far, and he is going to have
a subject who is not progressing. If the subject begins to run an
engram where Mama is having intercourse with five Eskimos, let him
run it and never, never, never, never tell him that you feel it was
untrue. If you tell the subject you think he is imagining things,
you may give him a serious set-back. Tell him you think Mama had
her reasons and you have sided with the opposition: you are not
attacking the engram, you are helping Mama attack the subject. To
criticize, correct or otherwise judge the pre-clear has no
slightest part in dianetics and will do more to slow up a case than
any other single action. An auditor who challenges the material
given him may be practicing witchcraft or Chinese acupuncture or
shamanism or voodoo, but he is not practicing dianetics. And he
will not get results. One remark to the subject such as, "I think
that you are mistaken in believing your mother would try to abort
you," or "I feel that you are imagining it" may set your pre-clear
back fifty hours. The auditor does not criticize or judge the
pre-clear, nor does he evaluate for the pre-clear that person's
material.
Auditing is all done privately and to oneself. If the patient has
just recounted his fifth prenatal train wreck, you may be sure you
have run into a lie factory in some engram. The wrong way to go
about correcting this is communicating it to the pre-clear. The
right way to go about it is to find the lie factory, an engram
containing such a remark as, "Tell me anything! Tell me anything. I
don't care so long as you say something. But for God's sakes don't
tell me the truth, I can't stand it!" Or, "You can't tell him the
truth. It would hurt too much." There
485
are a thousand forms of lie factory. And they are not too uncommon.
Never tell the pre-clear why you are looking for anything. If you
say you want a lie factory, the lie factory will make up a lie
factory. If you say you want an emotional charge, you will inhibit
any emotional Charge from discharging. Simply make a quiet estimate
of the situation, reduce everything which seems valid and keep on
trying to get the reason why the case is not functioning as well as
possible.
The test for validity of an engram is not plot. Plot is worthless.
Engrams are just collections of remarks contained in periods of
"unconsciousness." It makes no difference whatever whether these
remarks agree with the way the auditor thinks a life should be run
or the way a pre-clear should look up to his parents. Plot is
something writers put in stories. Auditors have nothing to do with
it. An engram is basically illogical and irrational; don't try to
read rationality into one! If the parents were known to be fine,
upstanding members of the community and the engrams seem to
indictate that Mama nightly played the prostitute, accept the
engrams.
Validity is very simply established. Ask these questions of the
engrams:
(1) Does it have a somatic?
(2) Does the somatic undulate, which is to say, undergo a running
change?
(3) Does it reduce? (If it does not, the content the pre-clear is
running is wrong or the engram is way up the chain and has others
before it.)
(4) Does the engramic content agree with the patient's aberration?
(5) Does the somatic agree with psycho-somatic ills the patient is
known to have had?
(6) Does it bring relief to the patient? And this last is more
important than all the rest.
486
Because mental healers of the past have grandly said, "Oh, this
does not fit with my idea of how life is run" is no reason an
auditor should run dianetics off the rails. Mental healers of
yesteryear did not get results. Dianetics gets results: and one of
the most important reasons why dianetics gets results is that it is
not trying to warp life to fit dianetics but is applying dianetics
to life. Many new and startling things will come to the notice of
the auditor. His motto, as seen on an ancient English crest where a
ninety-foot raven stood upon a castle, could read, "Be surprised at
nothing."
The Kinsey report did not begin to tell the story you, as an
auditor, will get in dianetics. Because the mother, by herself, is
neither the face she showed Junior nor the face she showed society
and because mother and father, by themselves, do not conduct
themselves as they might be supposed to have done in society is
insufficient reason to force a pre-clear to go on being an aberree.
Continually in the psychiatric texts we come upon patients who
tried to tell psychiatrists about prenatal life and who were told,
with droll solemnity that the incidents were imaginary. Patients
who had been given up on all fronts by all existing schools because
their data was not tailored to fit the belief of those schools have
recovered fully and achieved optimum mental condition, well above
that of their former mentors, with dianetics, partially because
dianetics does not set itself above the facts of life. He not only
requires the patient to face reality by running the engrams but he
also requires himself to face reality by accepting the fact that
whatever the content, if it fits any of the above conditions
listed, it is valid in therapy.
Auditing means to listen; it also means to compute. Computing on a
case consists of establishing where the patient departs from
optimum rationality in his conduct of life but, more important,
where physically painful and
487
painful emotion engrams exist and how they can be approached and
reduced.
Patients discover some astonishing things about their parents and
relatives when they are in therapy. Often they discover, like one
patient who had believed he had daily been beaten by his father,
that life was actually much better than it had seemed.
Pre-marital conception cases are very common, with the patient yet
unborn discovering himself at his parents' wedding. And these cases
are often very difficult to resolve since they contain so much
secrecy in their engrams.
The lie factory mechanisms will often try to give Mama extra lovers
and try to make Papa into a raving beast, but a lie factory is very
easy to detect: the incidents brought forth do not run like
engrams: the second time over their content is widely changed, they
do not have somatics and their content is not aberrative.
In short, the test is whether or not one has an actual engram, not
whether or not the engram makes sense. For father could well have
been a raving beast in a boudoir and mother could well have had
coitus with the boarders: and father could well have been a tame
lamb for all the reputation mother gave him post-birth and mother
could well have been a frigid prude despite the wild tales the
pre-clear might have heard. The truth will come out in the
reduction but its truth is no concern of the auditor's beyond
getting up engrams.
First, last and always, get engrams, get them as early as possible
for pain, later for emotion, get them, erase them, discharge them,
clear them! That they did not compute as true data was what drove
the aberree into being an aberree. Leave plot to writers: our task
is therapy.
But don't "buy garbage": ask for the somatic, see if it varies as
the pre-clear utters the words. Test for engrams. And devil take
the plot.
488
CHAPTER X
Dianetics - Past and Future
THE HISTORY OF DIANETICS
The history of dianetics would be the history of a voyage of
discovery, of an exploration into new and nearly uncharted realms,
Terra Incognita, the Human Mind, a land which lies an inch behind
your forehead.
The voyage has taken twelve years and the labor has been long, but
we have charts now and can go and return at will.
Observations of savage and civilized races in this and far climes
formed the foundation for the anthropological research: the
writings of a few men in the last four thousand years formed the
scholarly pilots. The ancient Hindu writings, the work of the early
Greeks and Romans including Lucretius, the labors of Francis Bacon,
the researches of Darwin and some of the thoughts of Herbert
Spencer compose the bulk of the philosophic background. Inevitable
absorption from our current culture provided much unnoticed
information. The remainder has been what the navigator calls, "off
the chart."
In 1935 some of the basic research was begun: in 1938 the primary
axioms were discovered and formulated. For the next several years
these axioms were tested in the laboratory of the world. The war
interrupted the work, as wars will, being chaos, but shortly after
the cessation of actual hostilities, research was renewed. Within a
year the fundamentals of this science as they applied to the human
mind had been integrated. They were tested on a long series of
random patients and each test further refined the work, but each
application brought specific results.
489
Five years after the initial resumption of labor, in 1950, the work
was prepared for release, all tests having brought forth the
conclusion that dianetics is a science of mind, that it does
disclose hitherto unknown laws about thought and that it has worked
on every type of inorganic mental and organic psycho-somatic
illness. Further, in the refinement of form attained, it was proven
possible for the work to be used easily by people not lengthily
trained.
The goal we have here reached is a science which is workable and
which can be worked with success by briefly taught individuals.
This goal has not hitherto been attained or even approached.
Once one has gained a foothold on unknown lands, more things become
known to him and with each new datum his horizon further widens,
including broader bodies of knowledge. Dianetics cures, and cures
without failure. And there are further goals.
Education, medicine, politics and art and, indeed, all branches of
human thought, are clarified with dianetics. And even so that is
not enough.
Dianetics has, as yet, a brief history: it has a strong youth: it
forecasts a better tomorrow. Before it is much older it will have
included even more within its scope. The history of dianetics is
scarce begun.
Plan A included the perfection of the science, its testing on
patients of all kinds and, finally, the dissemination of dianetics
as pertaining to therapy. That plan ends with the release of this
book.
Plan B includes a further research into life force, an attempt at
resolution of some of the ills not yet embraced such as cancer and
diabetes, and the perfection of techniques discovered and their
dissemination. That will end Plan B.
Plan C includes an effort to discover a higher echelon of universal
origin and destination, if the problem is one of origin and
destination, and the factors and forces involved to the end of
securing a better understanding
490
and useful application of the knowledge so gained, if gained, and
if so gained, its dissemination.
A portion of Plan B is the organization of a foundation so that the
research can be more swiftly accomplished.
The history of dianetics has just begun. What other things begin
with the origin of a science of mind only tomorrow can tell.
JUDICIARY DIANETICS
This brief summary of Judiciary Dianetics is included in this
present work as an aid to the auditor.
JUDICIARY DIANETICS covers the field of adjudication within the
society and amongst the societies of Man. Of necessity it embraces
jurisprudence and its codes and establishes precision definitions
and equations for the establishment of equity. It is the science of
judgment.
Jurisprudence and its adjudications are constructed on the
cornerstones of right and wrong, good and evil. Definition of these
is inherent in dianetics: by these definitions a correct solution
can be reached with regard to any action or actions of Man.
The fundamental test of rationality is the ability to differentiate
right from wrong. The fundamental factors in establishing censure
are good and evil. Without precision definition of these four
factors any structure of law or judgment is rendered forceless and
becomes involved through its introduction of arbitrary factors
which seek to adjudicate by introducing errors to nullify errors.
Penal codes which will answer all needs can only be written when
precision, scientific definition exist for the four factors, and
civil equity which will not lead to injustice can only then be
established and formulated.
The problems of jurisprudence and, indeed, all judgment, are
inextricably interwoven with the problems of behavior.
491
An ideal society would be a society of unaberrated persons, clears,
conducting their lives within an unaberrated culture: for either
the person or the culture may be aberrated. The aberrations of the
culture enter into the equations of conduct as irrational factors
both from the door of education and of social customs and
jurisprudence. It is not enough that an individual be himself
unaberrated, for he discovers himself within the confines of a
society which itself has compounded its culture into many
unreasonable prejudices and customs.
The establishment of actual source for wrong and evil is a
fundamental problem of all jurisprudence. The actual source
unfortunately lies in the irrationalities of those in past
generations who, working with limited knowledge and oppressed by
their environs, sought solutions with equations which contained
false and indefinite factors. These generations, long entombed,
cannot be brought to bar. We are the heirs to all the ages of the
past and that is good: but we are heirs as well to all the
irrationalities of the past and that is evil. Under such
circumstances and in the absence of broad reason, adjudication by
the auditor of the pre-clear as relates to evil or wrong actions
cannot be performed with accuracy. The criminal and the insane, the
hypochondriac and the wife-beater, the merciless dictator who seeks
to shake the world and the street cleaner who only sits and weeps
are all, each one, gripped and driven by their own sources of
unreason, by the world which has entered into the hidden depths of
their pain-wracked minds and which, in the form of social
aberration, pounds against them from without.
The auditor is interested in what has been done to, not done by his
patient; for whatever the patient has done is forever beyond recall
and was not the source but was only the manifestation of his
griefs.
Given a society of unaberrated persons, given a culture from which
has been deleted all unreason, then and only then can Man be truly
responsible for his acts, then and
492
only then. But we must take the shadow of the responsibility now
for the fact of it. A man does not have to surrender to his
engrams.
Perhaps at some distant date only the unaberrated person will be
granted civil rights before law. Perhaps the goal will be reached
at some future time when only the unaberrated person can attain to
and benefit from citizenship. These are desirable goals and would
produce a marked increase in the survival ability and happiness of
Man.
Even now the codes of jurisprudence can be reformed and it can be
ascertained with precision whether the act which brought the
individual before law was an aberrated act, or stemmed from an
aberration of culture, or was an act which was committed to the
detriment of another or of society. Surely the process of
punishment can be refined so as to sentence the individual not to
further aberration as a prisoner or a ruined man but to a higher
plane of reason through the deletion of the aberration.
The past acts of an individual who has been cleared should be
stricken from his record even as his illnesses have been, for with
the cause removed there can be no point in retribution unless
society itself is so aberrated that it desires to operate on
sadistic principles.* There is more than idealism here for it can
be shown that aberration in individuals and the society rise in
progressive ratio to the amount of punishment employed.
Efforts to resolve problems of jurisprudence which yet did not
embrace precision definitions for right and wrong, good and evil,
had recourse only to a principle known in dianetics as the
Introduction of an Arbitrary.
* Our present society is not aberrated in this respect: the insane
man is not held guilty or responsible for his acts. Lacking
definition of a precise scientific nature for insanity and failing
to recognize that all irrational acts are temporary insanity, the
society has not been able to carry out its fundamental intention.
493
Broad, unchangeable rules were thrust into problems in an effort to
resolve them and yet each new rule further drove reason aside so
that more rules were needed. An arbitrary structure is one in which
one error has been observed and an effort has been made to correct
it by introducing another error. In progressive complexity, new
errors must be introduced to nullify the evil effects old errors. A
culture, to say nothing of jurisprudence, grows complex and
unwieldy in progressive ratio to the number of new evils it must
introduce in an effort to nullify old evils. At last there can be
no reason; there can be but force and where there lives no reason
and yet lives force, there is naught but the maelstrom of an insane
rage. Where there dwells an insane rage, still unresolved, there
must at length come apathy; and apathy, dwindling down, inevitably
reaches death.
We are here at a bridge between one state of Man and a next. We are
above the chasm which divides a lower from a higher plateau and
this chasm marks an artificial evolutionary step in the progress of
Man.
The auditor is at that bridge; when cleared he will be at its
higher end. He will watch much traffic cross. He may see customs,
laws, organizations and societies attempt to avoid the bridge but,
being swept along, tumble into a nothingness below.
In his attitude toward his pre-clears or toward society at large,
he can gain nothing by reprimanding and judging past error in the
light of current sentience. Not only can he gain nothing but he can
inhibit progress. It is a remorseless fact that the attack upon
unreason has begun. Attack unreason, not the society or the man.
DIANETICS AND WAR
The social organisms which we call states and nations
494
behave and react in every respect as though they were individual
organisms. The culture has its analytical mind, the combined
sentience of its citizens in general and its artists, scientists
and statesmen in particular. The social standard memory bank is the
data accumulated along the generations. And the social organism has
as well its reactive mind as represented by the prejudices and
irrationalities of the entire group. This reactive mind is served
by an engram bank wherein lie past painful experiences and which
dictates reactive action on certain subjects whenever those
subjects are restimulated in the society. This, all too briefly, is
an analogy used in Political Dianetics.
The social organism behaves in a manner which can be graphed on the
tone scale; it has its survival dynamic and its suppressors, its
internal suppression due to engrams and its urge toward an infinity
of optimum duration. Criminals, traitors, and zealots constitute,
for instance, internal engrams which suppress the survival
potential on the tone scale.
There is a precision definition for each social level as related to
the tone scale. A free society, working in complete cooperation
toward common goals would be a Tone 4 society. A society hindered
by arbitrary restrictions and oppressive laws would be a Tone 2
society. A society managed and dictated to by the whims of one man
or a few men would be a Tone 1 society. A society governed by the
mystery and superstition of some mystic body would be a Tone 0
society. The potential of survival in each case can be seen
anywhere in history. Any Golden Age is a Tone 4. Oppressive
practices, individual greeds and miscalculation in general reduce
the society by introducing into it dissatisfied elements. To cope
with these, in the past, further oppression has been used. The
survival of the society reduced further. With more oppression came
495
new engrams and so down the tone scale slipped the chances of long
survival. And with this reduction of potential came pain as the
lower zones were entered.
Societies rise and fall on the tone scale. But there is a danger
point below which a society cannot go without reacting as would an
individual so suppressed: the society reaches a break point and
goes mad. This point is around 2.0.
The quarrel of society with society, nation with nation, has many
causes, all of them more or less irrational. There have been many
times when one society was forced to crush another less sentient
than itself. But with each clash, new engrams were born both in the
international scene and within the societies themselves.
War is an international Tone 1. It is no more rational than any
individual who, reaching a general and chronic Tone 1, is placed in
an institution or, temporarily Tone 1, commits some crime and is
thereafter imprisoned. But there is no jailer to societies, there
is at this time only death and so they die and so they have died.
Before this time no tool could be employed by a nation but force
when faced with another nation gone mad. By contagion of
aberration, both nations then went mad. No nation ever fully won a
war. No nation ever finally triumphed by force of arms. No nation
ever averted war by posing threat or exhibiting defense.
Man is now faced, by these pyramiding hatreds, with weapons so
powerful that Man himself may vanish from the earth. There is no
problem in the control of these weapons. They explode when and
where Man tells them to explode. The problem is in the control of
Man.
There is no national problem in the world today which cannot be
resolved by reason alone. All factors inhibiting a solution of the
problem of war and weapons are arbitrary factors and have no more
validity than the justified explanations of a thief or murderer.
496
The farmer of Iowa has no quarrel with the storekeeper of
Stalingrad. Those who say such quarrels exist lie.
There are no international concerns which cannot be resolved by
peaceable means, not in the terms of supra-national government, but
in the terms of reason.
Jockeying with indefinable ideologies, playing with mass ignorance,
non-existent entities like nightmares march the world in the form
of the Gods of Ism.
No self-interest can be so great as to demand the slaughter of
Mankind. He who would demand it, he who would not by every rational
means avert it, is insane. There is no justification for war.
Behind the curtains of language and different customs populaces are
taught to recognize no kinship with other populaces. Taught by
their own terrors and governed by their own aberrations leaders
hold up other isms as detestable things.
There is no perfect political state on earth today, there is not
even a good definition of a perfect political creed. States are the
victims of internal and external aberrations.
Dianetics addresses war because there is in fact a race between the
science of mind and the atom bomb. There may be no future
generation to know which won.
Rationality alone can guide Man past these threats to his
extinction.
Insanity does not exist without a confusion of definitions and
purpose. The solution to the international problem does not lie in
the regulation or curtailment of weapons nor yet in the restraints
of men. It lies in the definition of political theory and policy in
such terms that there can be no mistaking the clear processes; it
lies in the establishment of rational goals toward which societies
can collectively and individually work; and it lies in an
inter-social competition of gains so great that none become
dispensable to any other.
497
Man's primary fight is not with Man - that is insanity. Man's
primary fight is with those elements which oppress him as a species
and bar his thrust toward high goals. Man's fight is with the
elements, with space and time, and with species which are
destructive to him. He has hardly begun his conquest. He is just
now armed with tools enough and science enough to make good his
conquest of the Universe. He has no time to bicker and indulge in
tantrums and yah-yah across back fences about atom bombs.
The harnessing of atomic power puts other worlds within his reach.
Why haggle for this one? The late discoveries in the field of
photo-synthesis bid fair to feed and clothe him royally even though
he number a thousand times his present two billions on earth. For
what reason can he quarrel? Why?
Two rational men will enter into a contest of gain and worth and
production. Are these mighty nations, these powerful, fearful,
thundering "giants," actually small and poorly educated, barely
sane little boys screaming insults at each other over the
possession of a dead cat? What of armies? Armies die. If might
makes right, then Rome still rules the world. Who fears now this
archeological curiosity that was Rome?
There is a higher goal, a better goal, a more glorious victory than
gutted towns and radiation-burned dead. There is freedom and
happiness and plenty and a whole Universe to be won.
He who would not see it is far from worthy to rule. He who would
indulge his hates is too insane to advise.
How much can Man conquer? He loses if he conquers Man. He wins if
he conquers his own fears and conquers. then the stars.
Attack the natural enemies of Man, attack them well, and war of Man
with Man cannot thereafter be a problem. This is rationality.
498
Dianetics is not interested in saving the world, it is interested
only in preventing the world from being saved. One more time would
be fatal! Dianetics is not against fighting; it defines what may be
fought. Those things include the sources of Man's travail within
the individual, within the society and the enemies of all Mankind.
Man, bewildered, has not known his enemies. They are visible now;
attack!
THE FUTURE OF THERAPY
In twenty or a hundred years the therapeutic technique which is
offered in this volume will appear to be obsolete. Should this not
prove to be the case, then the author's faith in the inventiveness
of his fellow man will not have been justified. We have here
something which has not before existed, an invariably working
science of Mind. The application methods cannot but be refined.
All sciences been with the discovery of basic axioms. They progress
as new data is discovered and as the scope of the science is
widened. Various tools and techniques rise up continually, improved
and re-improved. The basic axioms, the initial discoveries of
dianetics are such solid scientific truths that they will be
altered but little. The data discovered by those axioms is already
large and daily expanding. The techniques of using that data as
represented in this volume will, before much more time elapses, be
modified and improved. Their virtue just now is that these
techniques work and produce good, solid, scientific results.
Once upon a time somebody set up the basic principles which had to
do with fire. There had not been controlled fire before. Cooking,
heating and finally metallurgy made a new culture. The basic
principles of fire are not much altered. The techniques employed in
handling fire
499
soon after it was discovered by Man would be considered somewhat
obsolete to us now. We have matches and lighters and fuels today,
but just after fire was understood and began to be used, the
bow-drill fire-maker and flint and steel would have been considered
marvelous inventions: even so Man was already using fire and had
been using it with profit for some time both as a weapon and as a
household utility when the bow-drill and flint and steel were
discovered or invented.
In the case of the wheel, basic principles were laid down which
have not altered to this day. The first workable wheel must have
been a rather unwieldy affair. But compared to no wheel, it was a
miracle.
Thus with dianetic therapy. The basic principles, axioms and
general discoveries of dianetics form an organization not before
possessed by Man. Not unlike the first fires and the first wheels,
the therapy technique can be enormously improved. It works now; it
can be used now with safety and effectiveness.
There are two definite drawbacks to this present technique. It
demands more skill of the auditor than should be necessary and it
is not as swift as it could be. The auditor should not be required
to do any computing whatever and indeed, a therapy technique could
be envisioned where no auditor at all was necessary, for he is
vital at the present time. A complete clear should take but a
handful of hours. The problems here are those of improvement in
terms of less skill required and less work.
One might say that it is an imposition upon a mathematician and
philosopher to require him to resolve all the problems himself and
to put forth all improvements. Indeed, it is an imposition that he
be required to develop any technique of application at all, for
there should be in any society an apportionment of labor.
When the basic axioms and computations were finished, it was
impossible to release them for there were
500
none to whom such research could be released for application. Thus
the work had to be carried out to its furthest extent of not only
experimentation but the development and proof of the techniques of
application.
One might here use an analogy of bridge engineering. Let us suppose
that two plateaus exist, one higher than the other, with a canyon
between them. An engineer sees that if the canyon could be crossed
by traffic, the hitherto unused higher plateau, being much more
fertile and pleasant, would become the scene of a new culture. He
sets himself the task of building a bridge. It has been supposed
that no bridge could be built across the canyon and indeed, since
those on the lower plateau could not see the higher level, the
existence of the higher plateau itself was denied. The engineer, by
evolving new principles of bridge building and discovering new
significance in his materials, manages to throw a bridge across the
canyon. He himself crosses and he inspects the plateau carefully;
others cross over his bridge and examine the new terrain with
delight. Still more and more cross the bridge. The bridge is solid
and, if not wide, can yet safely be negotiated. It has not been
built for heavy fast traffic. But it contains the basic principles
and axioms by which the canyon can be spanned again and again. Many
people begin to approach the canyon and look up.
What sort of an opinion would you have of the society on the lower
plateau if they but moaned and wept and argued and gave no hand at
all in the matter of widening the bridge or making new bridges?
In this handbook we have the basic axioms and a therapy which
works.
For God's sake, get busy and build a better bridge!
501
Appendices
APPENDIX I
The Philosophic Method*
Science seems always to advance, while philosophy seems always to
lose ground. Yet this is only because philosophy accepts the hard
and hazardous task of dealing with problems not yet open to the
methods of science - problems like good and evil, beauty and
ugliness, order and freedom, life and death; so soon as a field of
inquiry yields knowledge susceptible of exact formulation it is
called science. Every science begins as philosophy and ends as art;
it arises in hypothesis and flows into achievement. Philosophy is a
hypothetical interpretation of the unknown, ... or of the inexactly
known ... it is the front trench in the siege of truth. Science is
the captured territory; and behind it are those secure regions in
which knowledge and art build our imperfect and marvelous world.
Philosophy seems to stand still, perplexed; but only because she
leaves the fruits of victory to her daughters the sciences, and
herself passes on, divinely discontent, to the uncertain and the
unexplored.
Shall we be more technical? Science is analytical description,
philosophy is synthetic interpretation. Science wishes to resolve
the whole into parts, the organism into organs, the obscure into
the known. It does not inquire into the values and ideal
possibilities of things, nor into their total and final
significance; it is content to show their present actuality and
operation, it narrows its gaze resolutely to the nature and process
of things as they are. The scientist is as impartial as Nature in
Turgenev's
* Reprinted from THE STORY OF PHILOSOPHY, by Will Durant (Simon and
Schuster, New York, 1926) with special permission from the author.
505
poem: he is as interested in the leg of a flea as in the creative
throes of a genius. But the philosopher is not content to describe
the fact; he wishes to ascertain its relation to experience in
general, and thereby to get at its meaning and its worth; he
combines things in interpretive synthesis; he tries to put
together, better than before, that great universe-watch which the
inquisitive scientist has analytically taken apart. Science tells
us how to heal and how to kill; it reduces the death rate in retail
and then kills us wholesale in war; but only wisdom - desire
coordinated in the light of all experience - can tell us when to
heal and when to kill. To observe processes and to construct means
is science; to criticize and coordinate ends is philosophy: and
because in these days our means and instruments have multiplied
beyond our interpretation and synthesis of ideals and ends, our
life is full of sound and fury, signifying nothing. For a fact is
nothing except in relation to desire; it is not complete except in
relation to a purpose and a whole. Science without philosophy,
facts without perspective and valuation, cannot save us from havoc
and despair. Science gives us knowledge, but only philosophy can
give us wisdom.
Will Durant
506
APPENDIX II
The Scientific Method
The Scientific Method is based solidly on definite rules, but is
none the less, like the American Way of Life, something that must
be lived to be fully understood. The United States has a
Constitution, but the American Way of Life is far more than that;
so the Scientific Method is, while based on certain readily cited
rules, far more than those rules.
For one thing, the Scientific Method implies zestfully, gleefully
attacking, with every available weapon of logic, every possible
logical loophole in - your own structure of logic and theory. It
requires that a man tear into his carefully built theory with the
vim, vigor and spite of his worst enemy. It implies that a
scientist's best friend will review his work starting with the
premise that it's all wrong and do his best to prove it's wrong.
For the intellectual triumph, the warm glow of victory in science,
comes not from producing a new theory - but from producing a new
theory that stands up, and is useful, even when the most knowing
make deliberate attempts to find a flaw.
The Scientific Method is behind the testing of Navy armor plate.
The production of a perfect piece of 16-inch armor plate is routine
and gives no special satisfaction. But the production of a slab of
16-inch armor plate with a 16-inch armor-piercing projectile with
its nose buried in that armor, a plate bulged, distorted, but
unpierced and unbroken - that is triumph and satisfaction. We don't
test the 16-inch plate with machine-gun fire, or with 6-inch
projectiles. Test it with the heaviest, deadliest weapons you've
got; then, and only then, do you have something to be proud of.
507
So with a theory.
There are rules for argument that lead to the building of a theory;
they can be condensed to three key, critical points, the sense of
which is clear. The problem in application is the subtlety with
which violations of those rules can creep in. The critical rules
are:
1. Argument by appeal to authority is of no value whatever.
2. The observation, not the observer's report, are the important
data.
3. No theory, however well-established or long-held, can stand in
the face of one relevant, contradictory fact.
The first of those rules is the one that is most often violated,
usually quite unintentionally and without realizing it. Everybody
knows that appeal to authority is no sound way to argue a case,
even if the authority happens to be right. Yet so subtle can appeal
to authority be that, it is exceedingly easy to miss noticing its
insertion; the preceding sentence, for instance, deliberately
exemplifies one type of very easily missed "appeal to authority,"
actually the most common of all such appeals. "Everybody knows,"
"of course," "naturally" and similar phrases are the slipperiest
customers in that respect. "Everybody knew" the world was flat for
a long, long time, and "of course" the Sun went around the Earth,
as any fool could plainly see. And common clay and the precious
ruby have nothing in common - nothing, that is, except the same
elements in somewhat different proportions.
But even the less subtle appeal-to-authority that is stamped with
the Great Name is a source of immense amounts of trouble. It was
not Aristotle's fault that, for nearly a thousand years, science
was stopped still by consistent appeal to Aristotle; he didn't
claim he knew all the answers - the scholastic arguers did. Even
today, in an age which has some understanding of the scientific
method, Great Name arguments show up - except, of
508
course, that the Great Name himself has become a Great Name by most
carefully refraining from using that method! The sentence,
"Einstein says that nothing is faster than the speed of light; it
is theoretically impossible," contains two arguments by appeal to
authority, and sounds so learnedly scientific that anyone might be
taken in by it. Saying a thing is "theoretically impossible" is,
actually, appeal to the authority of present theories. But a theory
is not a fact - it's an intelligent set of opinions, and no more,
as any scientist realizes. So far as the Great Name argument goes,
those are easy to spot, and their value comes into focus very
quickly if you simply substitute the arbitrary name "Joe Doakes"
for the Great Name. The corrected, scientific-method sentence above
- so far as argumentative value goes - would read, "Joe Doakes says
nothing is faster than the speed of light; in his informed opinion
it appears impossible."
Scientifically, there is no difference whatever between the two
statements, so far as evidential value goes. The evidence-statement
on the subject would read, "Einstein suggested, and physical
experiment appears to prove, that nothing is faster than the speed
of light; current physical theory, which seems to fit most of the
observed data, indictates it is impossible."
That is, admittedly, a much less solidly satisfying sort of
statement. It sounds weak, uncertain of itself or anything else.
And it is the sort of statement - the sort of thinking - that went
from the first small scientific evidence of the atomic theory in
1800 to atomic fission in less than a century and a half. It is the
scientist - who operates on the principle that he doesn't already
know all the answers - who is out looking for new and better
answers. A man who thinks in terms of "This is the answer. I know
this is true. That is impossible, because it disagrees with what I
know," does not have to do research. He already knows the answers.
He is in no danger of making new and disturbing discoveries that
might upset his certainty of mind. The scientist, on the other
509
hand, operates with the certain knowledge that he is uncertain; he
is never disappointed, for new data is constantly being found -
he's looking for it - that shows that he was, indeed, a bit
mistaken.
The non-scientist, who likes to work with Truths and Certainties
and think in Absolutes, the method of uncertainties and
probabilities seems stifling, an impossible method of operation. It
is so impossible that it produces, in a single century, electric
light and power, radio, television, atomics, the entire science of
organic chemistry ranging from dyes to synthetic drugs,
automobiles, airplanes - practically an entirely new civilization.
By realizing that no theory is final, complete, or perfect, a new
concept is admitted: a theory is good so long as it is useful. It
is, naturally, a very pleasant thing if the theory also happens to
be true, but that (shocking though the thought may be to the
layman) is not at all necessary. The really important question is
not, "Is it true?" but "Does it work?" If it works, we can use it
and pretend it's true; if it is true, that's an added bonus.
This reasoning, which seems to some specious and downright
dishonest, is the only method so far found that produces results.
Look about you: every product that has been touched by machines in
its production is a demonstration of the observed fact that, by
provisionally assuming a theory is true, concrete, useful results
can be obtained. And that by maintaining a willingness to discard
or modify that theory at the first sign of failure, progress is
made.
For if a theory is good only when it works, then the first time it
fails to work - the first fact it encounters which does not fit -
the theory must be discarded, and a new and better one found. Only
someone who insists that a theory is Truth would hesitate to
discard a theory that didn't work. And a scientist never insists
that a theory is Truth; only that it is useful.
When an apparent contradiction appears, however, the most careful
checking must be instituted. First:
510
check the interpretation of the theory. The basic concepts of the
theory might be right, and the application of those concepts wrong.
The reinterpretation of the theory may explain the new fact.
Second, and actually simultaneously, remember that the observation,
not the observer's report, is the datum, and repeat the
observations. The observer may have been wrong. Men can't see
beyond the violet or below the red; quinine makes a man's ears
ring, so he hears sounds that aren't there, and no man can hear
sounds above 20,000 cycles when they are there. Under ultraviolet
light, the human eyeball glows slightly, so that one sees a mist of
light that isn't there, but since we can't see ultraviolet light
itself, an observer will not see the source of ultraviolet that is
there. Always check the observations; the observer may be wrong.
But actual observations, tacts, are never wrong.
One source of a lot of misunderstanding is the difference between
theoretical impossibility and factual impossibility. That is best
illustrated, perhaps, by the old story of the man who telephoned
his lawyer, explained a legal contretemps, and was told, "Don't
worry about it; they can't put you in jail for that!" The client
replied, "I'm calling from the jail."
A slight change on that might demonstrate reverse aspect. Make the
troubled caller a circus owner; this time we'll say the lawyer
replies, "That's serious. I'm afraid they can put your elephant in
jail for that."
In each case, theory is in conflict with physical fact; in each
case, as it invariably must by the very nature of things, theory,
not fact, breaks down.
But all of this is, in essence, a discussion of the scientific
method of argument, of thought. There is, at the root of it all,
the scientific technique, the final test and proving ground of all
scientific thinking. Ideally, the scientific method follows seven
steps:
1. Make a series of careful observations.
A. These observations must be repeated, and are
511
acceptable as observations only if many people following the
prescribed techniques can duplicate the results.
B. Variations of the prescribed techniques must be tried to
eliminate the possibility that the observed results might be due
to a factor other than that intended. As a gross example, suppose
it is reported that a magnet will attract objects. Demonstration
show it does attract and lift iron balls; that is Step A above.
Now variations of the experiment show that the magnet attracts
iron but not copper, silver, etc. The observed effect -
attraction - is real. Variation of the original experiment is
needed to show the actual limits of the effect.
2. Combining all relevant data, from all relevant experiments,
formulate a hypothesis.
A. The hypothesis must explain all observed data.
B. It must not demand as a consequence of its logical development,
the existence of phenomena that do not, in fact, exist.
C. But it should indictate the existence of real, hitherto
unobserved facts.
3. Using the hypothesis, predict new facts.
A. A logical structure broad enough to explain all observed,
relevant phenomena will necessarily imply further phenomena that
have not yet been observed. Use this mechanism to predict the
existence of something which, under previous theories, would not
exist.
4. Perform an experiment and make observations on these
predictions.
5. As a result of the experiment, discard the hypothesis, or
advance it now to the status of "Theory."
6. Make further predictions, further experiments, and collect more
observational evidence until a contradictory relevant fact is
found.
512
7. Discard the old theory, take the new total of observational
data, and form a new hypothesis.
8. See Step Three.
This process seems, at first glance, a completely circular,
going-nowhere system. It isn't; the 50-passenger airliner flying by
just overhead testifies to that. Notice that each time round that
cycle the new hypothesis shows how to get new data, new
experimental evidence, new information. The process is not
circular; it's an expanding spiral, and each sweep around it covers
a broader and broader field of understanding.
But the most important step of all - the one that took men longest
to make once the idea of organized knowledge was started - is Step
Seven. "Discard the old theory ... and start all over again." It's
hard for men - who are basically conventional, status-quo animals!
... to give up the comfortable familiarity, the nice, easy routine,
of that Old Time Theory, to embark on a completely new system that
calls for a total revision of all their thoughts. It's so easy and
comfortable to believe that the old theory is Truth, and doesn't
and won't ever need changing, even if it doesn't work all the time.
Like an old pair of shoes, it is comfortable, and familiar, even if
the holes are apparent.
The true scientist is in a somewhat different position. He starts
off with any theory and finds it useful only so long as it works.
If it no longer works, it should be discarded, and a new, better
one fashioned.
And that is an old, comfortable familiar theory that you can settle
down into, and stick with for life. Expect change; you can be sure
you won't be disappointed.
John W. Campbell, Jr. Nuclear
Physicist, Author of The
Atomic Story
NOTE: Formulation of this Scientific Methodology was contributed in
part by the engineers of "Ma Bell", the Bell Telephone research
laboratories - to whom thanks are extended.
513
APPENDIX III(A)
Mind Schematic
The mind schematic is a block diagram illustrating analogically the
observed operation of the mind in the organism. It may be likened
to the schematic diagram of an electrical circuit, in which the
position and relationship of elements derive from the connections
to them and not from their placing on the page. The connecting
lines represent paths for the transmission of messages which
control activity. In this activity we can trace three separate
behavior patterns.
First is the basic cycle of automatic physical adjustment,
involving only the Life Function Regulator as it regulates the life
processes of the Organism. This cycle involves the continuous
metering of body conditions, such as heart rate, temperature,
digestion, with the issue of orders through the automatic nervous
system to correct untoward conditions as they develop. Here lies
control of circulation, respiration, perspiration, endocrine
secretion and all other body fluid flow, and hence control of
metabolism itself for each part of the body and for the whole. The
Life Function Regulator, like the governor of an engine, balances
the life processes against each other and against the environment
of the Organism, through the simple cycle of measure and correct,
measure and correct, measure and correct.
It is to be noted that the Life Function Regulator in operating to
regulate the Organism regulates the physical aspects of the
Analyzer, the Standard Memory, the Reactive Mind and the Learned
Motion Pattern Responder, all of which are parts of the Organism.
The functions of these parts are described at suitable points
515
in the development of the behavior patterns involving them.
Second is the cycle of reasoned behavior. The phases of this cycle
are the receipt of percepts by the Analyzer, the comparison of
these percepts with the contents of the Standard Memory and the
selection of relevant data, the computation of possible actions and
the choice of action to be taken, and the transmission to the
Organism of orders which result in that action. These orders are
ordinarily converted from relatively simple to complex patterns in
the Learned Motion Pattern Responder, whose function is commonly
attributed to the spinal cord. Reasoned behavior is rarely
recyclic, because each act changes the relationship of the Organism
to its environment, thereby changing the percepts, so that the next
act differs in a progressive pattern.
The Standard Memory, on which the Analyzer depends fur data, is a
tremendous file of recordings covering every sight, sound, smell or
other perception of the individual's life, awake or asleep. The
only exceptions are that it does not record pain and that it does
not receive data when the Gate is closed during "unconsciousness."
Such data are recorded in the Reactive Mind, to be discussed later,
and cannot be transferred automatically to the Standard Memory
after consciousness is restored, because the recordings of pain and
unconsciousness with them prevent access by the Analyzer. For the
same reason they are not available for conscious recall. The
contents of the Standard Memory are complete and detailed,
including shades of colors and timbres of sounds, and are indexed
accurately by time, by topic, and by value to the Organism.
The Analyzer is a calculating machine arranged to analyze each
situation in the light of available data and to determine and
direct the next acts of the Organism so as best to enable the
individual, his progeny, associates,
516
and environment to survive. Except for bias toward survival, which
is essential to the continued exercise of its faculties, the
Analyzer is self-determined, and is the seat of choice in the human
being. Its ability is so highly developed that it can handle
several problems at once, involving procedures whose basic patterns
are compare-select-act or
compare-select-combine. This computing is ordinarily carried on
below the level of awareness, not in language but in concepts, with
only the premises and solutions appearing.
In emergencies which raise the necessity level the Analyzer not
only orders the voluntary kind of behavior but also assumes control
of the Life Function Regulator in order to quicken the whole
performance of the bodily machine. By this means it suppresses the
behavior of the Reactive Mind.
Third is the cycle of reactive behavior. This cycle compasses
automatic, or stimulus-response, behavior of such elaborateness
that it is often mistakenly supposed to be volitional and
deliberate. The phases of this cycle are the receipt of percepts by
the Reactive Mind, where they stimulate reactions, the transmission
of these reactions to the Organism as commands, the physical
response of the organism to these reactive commands, and new
percepts arising from the physical activity. This cycle of perceive
and react, perceive and react, may occur once, may repeat in a
spiral of increasing vigor, or may develop a series of cycles
progressively varied in their nature. Each of these response
patterns will contain emotion, speech, motion and psycho-somatic
disturbances in varying proportions.
The exact nature of reactive behavior will follow precisely,
congruently, the content of memories in the Reactive Mind. These
memories cover only perceptions received and recorded during
"unconsciousness" and in the presence of pain. They therefore cover
events or
517
groups of events in which the individual has been a passive
participant, but include data from all the senses.
Reactive Mind memories are restimulated, or triggered, by percepts
which are at least fragmentarily congruent with them, such as a
word or group of words, a smell, a scene or a blow. The effect of
repeated or extensive restimulation is to increase the sensitivity
of the stimulus-response cells in which these memories may be
conceived to be held, so that smaller and smaller restimulations
suffice to trigger reactive behavior. Conversely, in the absence of
restimulators these cells become less and less sensitive, so that
strong, extensive or repeated restimulation becomes necessary to
produce reactive behavior. It is to be noted that this threshold is
lowered by illness, injury or fatigue, as we often see in when
people go "all to pieces" in a state of over-fatigue. The variation
of sensitivity with degree of restimulation is independent for each
memory of an event or group of events deriving from a separate
period of "unconsciousness." It is apparent, however, that if
portions of two or more such memories are identical, they will have
common restimulators and will restimulate each other through their
dramatization in reactive behavior.
Since Reactive Mind memories contain pain and "unconsciousness," it
follows that these will appear to some degree in the dramatizations
of these memories in reactive behavior, through action on the Life
Function Regulator. The dramatization of pain, with its concomitant
life function disturbances, can interfere seriously with organic
function, particularly by affecting all kinds of body fluid flow.
This mechanism is at the root of psycho-somatic illness. The
dramatization of "unconsciousness" can interfere with rational
behavior by causing temporary or partial Analyzer shutdown, with
the filing of additional memories in the Reactive Mind instead of
the Standard Memory. Through this mechanism the content of the
Reactive Mind can multiply itself in the presence
518
of chronic restimulators until the behavior of the individual
becomes mostly or entirely reactive and the person is judged
insane.
The three cycles of activity described may be followed readily on
the diagram, where each forms a closed loop. The tempo of the whole
is determined by the Life Force of the individual, which manifests
itself physically as tenacity in life and mentally as vigor and
persistence. This Life Force is not to be confused with physical
vigor, which depends also on health, or with "energy," which
depends in part on the content of the Reactive Mind. The Life Force
should not be looked on as the fuel for the engine, but rather as
the ignition.
519
APPENDIX III(B)
Analyzer Schematic
This schematic diagram is a device which enables us to resolve the
Analyzer into components with an arrangement capable of explaining
analogically its observed behavior as the conscious computing,
counselling and control agency of the Organism. The schematic does
this by placing the various elements conveniently and
interconnecting them with circuit pathways to show the flow of
signals and messages.
The key to understanding the Analyzer is the idea of multiple
attention. It possesses a considerable number of units of
attention, perhaps a score, and can devote them to a large or a
small area of activity. Each of these units may be considered to be
a separate computer circuit capable of compare-choose-combine or
compare-select-act calculations. The input, or attention, end of
each of these computers may then be considered to be one of the
lines of an attention switchboard. The incoming trunks from any
area of activity to which attention is paid will carry in all
perceptions, data from the Standard Memory and, when necessary,
output data from the computers themselves.
Complementary to the attention switchboard we must postulate an
action switchboard which can direct the results of thought to the
Organism as action orders, to other computers for further thought,
or to the Standard Memory for filing or for delayed action.
The diagram shows these two switchboards with the computers between
them, the incoming and outgoing trunk lines, and a group of
interconnecting trunk lines
521
which handle information being routed back from output to input fur
further use. It also shows separately a control center and a
consciousness monitor, which must be described carefully in order
to avoid errors in using such words as "awareness" and
"consciousness."
The control center monitors all circuits and orders attention and
action by acting as switchboard operator. It is thus another and
more elaborate compare-select-act computer, exercising the function
of personality. The diagram shows the connections for monitoring
and control, and also the Life Force connection through which the
whole Analyzer is animated. It is important to note that the
control center operates continuously (but in varying degree of
alertness), whether the individual is awake or asleep, going
entirely out of operation only during complete unconsciousness.
The consciousness monitor is that element which defines our
conscious awareness, our continuity of past, present and future,
our ability to look out of our eyes and say, "This is I, looking
out of here." While the control center is aware as a normal part of
its operation cycle of perceive, judge and act, the consciousness
monitor is more than aware; it is aware of being aware. It
integrates the pattern of perception, not on a calculator basis,
but on a display basis, producing a unified outlook. It is partly
like the display panel in the control room of a large machine,
which, when a button is pressed, shows in moving light the inner
working of the machine, whose processes go on whether the button is
pressed or not.
The consciousness monitor, however, goes out of operation when the
curtain of sleep is drawn. And with it there go out of operation
the first group of computers, all of which it monitors. The second
group of computers, which it also monitors, do not necessarily
cease operation at this time. In a light sleep the individual
retains these attention units alert. As sleep deepens, however,
they go out of operation one by one until in deepest sleep only the
522
lowest group of computers, which are unmonitored, remain in
operation.
These unmonitored computers provide the attention for a watchman
function, to waken us when peril looms. They also provide creative
imagination for the solving of problems while we sleep, and for the
fabrication of airy structures in dreams. Less spectacular but
equally important is their day-labor of scanning the Standard
Memory for relevant data for every daily computation in the
moment-by-moment recalculation of the Organism's position with
respect to survival and its next move to further that end.
(Survival is here considered a spectrum, from self at one end to
all life at the other.)
One trunk is shown entering the attention switchboard which existed
but was unknown and unused save as a dream channel before
dianetics. It is that from the Reactive Mind, and the Analyzer is
unable to connect to it in its normal operation. With outside help,
during therapy, however, a large number of units of attention may
be directed along this trunk for the recovery of engrams from the
Reactive Mind.
D.H. Rogers
523
APPENDIX IV
Advice to the Pre-clear
Certain facts should be made known to the pre-clear. It is not
vital that he know anything at all about the technique of
processing or that he understand dianetics; all this is inherent in
him and he will respond and work as desired by the auditor. In
short, the auditor need not explain anything except those items
listed below.
1. The pre-clear should take vitamin B1 while in therapy. It
requires a certain mental energy to carry through with therapy and
B1 is intimately connected with that energy's generation. If he
doesn't take B1 he may have nightmares now and then. Ten to twenty
milligrams a day are sufficient.
2. The pre-clear can in no way be damaged by dianetic technique. It
is not hypnotism in any remote sense of the word; in the process he
remains entirely awake and is able to pull himself out of any
situation he feels he cannot face.
3. The auditor is not interested in anything the pre-clear has
himself done. The data may be of some aid, of course, but it is not
at all vital to a resolution of the case. The auditor is interested
in what has been done to not what has been done by the pre-clear.
Hence wild efforts to cover up material in the belief that the
auditor will discover something bad in the pre-clear's life are all
wasted, for the auditor doesn't want to know about it anyway.
Further, the pre-clear can save a lot of an auditor's time by
simply going into therapy without large preambles about guilt or
sorrows. The auditor will ask for the personal relationships he
needs such as attitude
524
toward father and mother, grandparents and friends as well as the
current environment. The auditor knows what he wants to know and
the pre-clear doesn't. Therefore, just answer the questions. If the
pre-clear is a junior (named after a relative) or if he was raised
in a family which spoke some foreign tongue he should volunteer
this information immediately. He should also tell the auditor if he
has ever had any shock treatment or brain operations. Beyond that,
random self-revelation has no use and only wastes time which could
be better expended in work.
4. If the pre-clear has had some therapy such as psycho-analysis,
he may tend to carry a "remembering" habit into dianetic process.
Remaining in present time and "remembering" does no good. Dianetics
has no relationship with past mental treatment. It is entirely
mechanistic and works with engineering precision.
5. The pre-clear sometimes feels a vanity in a knowledge of some
study of mental healing. It will not be of great use to him in
dianetics. Arguing about dianetics with the auditor will not
accomplish any therapy. If the pre-clear wants to know about
dianetics, the auditor can tell him where he can buy a copy of the
handbook. The auditor's time is wasted by endless argument over
whether or not this or that is a fact. Entered into actual therapy,
only then can the pre-clear understand the validity of dianetics.
Without studying or experiencing at least as much as a
demonstration run on the time track, the pre-clear can know little
about dianetics. Short of knowing, the arguer has no data and all
urge to argue thus proceeds from prejudice; there is no substitute
for knowledge.
6. The pre-clear should know that the total process of therapy is a
complete recall of his life and complete refiling of engrams
(moments of actual "unconsciousness") as experience and memory. The
pre-clear is not
525
being asked to get rid of anything nor is he being asked to believe
anything.
7. The pre-clear should understand that any attitude of antagonism
or skepticism or even apathy or a "desire" to neglect his engrams
is derived wholly from the engrams themselves and that these
dictate his attitudes in a large measure. If he does not like the
auditor personally, then the auditor has some counterpart in an
engram. Other auditors can be found, but this is not a good enough
excuse to shift auditors.
8. Bombarded by his engrams, the pre-clear is apt to conceive the
idea that he talks and acts only from those engrams and that he is
never thinking analytically. Repeater technique tends to give this
conception. It is not a fact, however, that the pre-clear operates
only on engrams. The best and most effective portions of his life,
all his rational acts, concerns and conclusions, are analytical.
During therapy he has a tendency, at first, to believe everything
must be engramic but this is not true. His analytical mind is
powerful and active and as therapy progresses he is more and more
in command of his actions and words.
9. At first, in therapy, the pre-clear is apt to introvert
markedly. This is a temporary condition, usually, but may extend
for some distance into therapy. Gradually he begins to extrovert.
Finally he is no longer interested in his engrams, though he may be
interested in those of others.
10. There has long been an incorrect theory that neurosis is the
source of mental vigor and ambition. This is emphatically false. If
the pre-clear believes that his engrams are of any assistance to
him let him go hit his hand hard with a hammer and then argue that
he will now be better at his profession because he has a bruised
skin. No engram has any value. The engram is a parasite, regardless
of its pretension that it aids the individual. Anything the
pre-clear does with engrams he can do far better without engrams.
It is true and valid that experience
526
plays a major role in educating a man and determining his
ambitions. Engrams are not experience; they are hidden commands.
Only when they have been processed by dianetics can their content
be properly used in thought and classified as valid experience.
Knowledge of the exact content of his engrams makes a man wiser,
but until he knows what they contain they can only drive him and
hound him with pain and reduce his general health and ability to
think.
11. Once he knows, in the most general sense, that he has engrams,
a man can raise his necessity level to a point which will overcome
them. He does not have to obey his engrams.
12. If the pre-clear is being audited by one who is engaging his
first case and has lately studied dianetics, no apprehension need
be felt. No damage can result, even if a large number of mistakes
are made. The brain cannot be damaged by dianetic therapy. Engrams
may be restimulated which contain such a phrase as "Stop it, you
are taking my mind away, piece by piece!" or "You will be well as
long as I am with you," but these are just engrams and their actual
effect may well have been to make the individual quite ill. Have
confidence in your auditor. He will become skilled with practice
and the skills of dianetics themselves will carry you through. If
he is clever and experienced, your auditor may bring about a
quicker clear and a more comfortable passage through therapy. If he
is not experienced, you and he may have some interestingly involved
times. But no damage can be done.
13. If the pre-clear finds his auditor becoming angry with him, the
pre-clear should refer to the Auditor's Code. It is there mainly to
accelerate therapy and to protect the auditor, but it is of
considerable use to the pre-clear who, by every right, should
insist that it be observed. The engrams, when the pre-clear is
returned to an early place on the time track he follows in therapy,
often dictate irrational statements. The auditor should
527
understand this. While engrams give the pre-clear no license to
abuse an auditor when the pre-clear is not in session, in actual
work the pre-clear should maintain his rights in the code to be
treated fairly no matter what he does or says.
14. The pre-clear should not expect the auditor to shoulder all his
burdens. The end of therapy is to make the pre-clear much less a
"push-button" machine, pushed around at the whim of the world which
uses his aberrations. The sooner the pre-clear asserts his own
self-determinism and exercises his power of decision in his own
affairs, the faster therapy will advance. Self-determinism comes
about automatically. It can be artificially induced by the
pre-clear himself who, raising his necessity level to act with
entire self-determinism, can meet the end half-way. The auditor is
there to audit, not to be an adviser in the pre-clear's conduct of
existence.
15. If the pre-clear catches himself lying to the auditor, he
should know that he is only slowing therapy. If one has pretended
war wounds never received or a glittering past, dianetic therapy is
no place to carry out the illusion. Such pretenses stem from
aberrations and a clear is not responsible for his own errors in
the past once he is cleared, though society may for some time
attempt to dictate, aberratedly, otherwise.
16. If the pre-clear is being audited by a marriage partner with
whom there have been many quarrels, the way of therapy may be
difficult. Either be as forbearing as possible or persuade some one
outside the home to audit. Wrangles over therapy between marriage
partners markedly slow therapy.
17. If the pre-clear is a child and is being audited by a parent,
the child should be advised to express what he feels in therapy,
not argued into different or false attitudes from some mistaken
parental idea of respect. The parent is already restimulative to
the child, being contained in many of the child's engrams; it is
therefore
528
possible for the parent to reactivate engrams by being overbearing.
The child as a pre-clear should have every right of an adult
including recourse to the Auditor's Code.
18. It is usually worthless for the pre-clear to seek data from
relatives. The data is being sought from a source not necessarily
unaberrated, with memory occlusions, and which has a personal
interest in making everything in the past as creditable as
possible. Such a relative may have great power over the pre-clear,
being a part of the pre-clear's engrams. The seeking of data is
always an effort to avoid confronting the engrams themselves and
use the relative's account as a by-pass memory. Experience has
taught that even when such a relative knows the data and remembers
it, some personal interest may be served in delivering a distorted
idea to the pre-clear. If the pre-clear wants his data checked by
mother or father, be sure that mother or father has inflicted pain
on him and is a source of much trouble in the engram bank, no
matter what the pre-clear thinks. If the pre-clear wants a
confirmation, take it after therapy is completed.
19. Should the pre-clear discover that anyone is attempting to
prevent him from starting or continuing dianetic therapy, the fact
should be communicated immediately to the auditor for this is a
useful datum. Anyone attempting to stop an individual from entering
therapy either has a use for the aberrations of that individual -
on the "push-button" order - or has something to hide. In the
former case, a fear may exist that when the individual becomes
stronger he cannot be handled easily by the complainant or that he
may take revenge upon the complainant for past acts. In this case,
it is true that the clear has no puppet strings and the fear is
well-grounded. As for revenge, the clear, being free from the fears
and commands in his engrams, holds no grudges: his understanding
combines with his strength; a person is only a menace as long as he
is aberrated and he poses no insane
529
threats when he ceases to be aberrated. When the complainant
against the undertaking of therapy fears the disclosure of
information, this is the very data which the auditor most needs and
which he can obtain through standard therapy. No matter how
wonderfully logical are the arguments a wife or a relative may
advance against therapy, it has its root in either fear that their
control over the patient will be slacked or fear that data exists
in the patient's engram bank which is detrimental to them. There is
a further extension of this case: wives with children may have a
fear that therapy will eventually be applied to the children, in
which case much information might come to light which the husband
or society "should never know." In any case, the aberrations of the
person arguing against the undertaking of therapy choose
self-interest rather than the welfare of the pre-clear. There is no
altruistic motive in any attempt to stop therapy.
20. The pre-clear should not regard himself as neurotic or insane
merely because he wishes to undertake dianetic clearing. The
greatest majority of those who will be processed will be "normal"
people. The end of dianetic therapy is not to relieve subnormality
but to create the optimum individual. Its concern is not with
mental derangement but with the creation of mental freedom. Should
anyone infer that the pre-clear engages to be cleared because he is
"crazy" and that the critic scornfully does not need such a thing,
the pre-clear need only point out that one of the ancient tests for
insanity was whether or not the person boasted of his sanity. The
average person today contains scores of major engrams. The
pre-clear need only indictate that he must be the more sane because
he is doing something about his engrams and is attempting to gain a
more rational plane of existence. Psychiatry and psycho-analysis in
specializing in neurosis and psychosis have fostered a public
belief that when anyone does anything about his mind he must
530
be neurotic or psychotic. Education is also doing something about
the mind and yet none would declare all children in schools were
neurotic and psychotic. Dianetic therapy specializes in creating
the clear and though as a matter of course it resolves mental
derangement, a clear is to a current normal person as the current
normal person is to the insane - such are the gulfs.
21. The pre-clear may find himself begging for amnesia trance,
hypnosis, drugs and other means to "facilitate therapy." Such
yearnings are not derived from any other reason than that the
pre-clear is afraid to face his own engrams; deep trance does not
resolve this problem. It can be used but is useful mainly on the
insane. Dianetic reverie keeps a steady progress and is accompanied
by a steady rise in the individual's health and outlook. Short-cuts
have not proven practical. If they had, they would be included in
dianetic therapy.
22. It is useful to advise the pre-clear that while he may grow as
angry as he please at his relatives when he discovers what they
have done to him, when he is clear he will no longer be angry and
will then have the sometimes arduous task of making friends again.
This does not excuse the relatives nor does it mean that the
auditor should take umbrage at the pre-clear's enthusiasm for
revenge when he discovers what Mama may have done to him or what
Papa said; it does mean that whenever a pre-clear has given voice
to these rancors to the offenders, he has afterwards had to patch
up broken relations, for when therapy is ended there is no reason
nor desire for rage. Therapy passes up a tone scale from apathy,
through anger to cheerfulness. At the beginning of the case the
pre-clear may feel very propitiative toward offenders against him
and not even know they are offenders. Half through a case he may
become incensed at the offenders and indeed, should become angry if
the case is progressing at all. At the end of the case he
531
realizes that he was dealing, after all, with aberrees, and he
weighs their disfavors with their favors and understands without
anger. If the pre-clear is a child who has been badly abused, the
auditor may have a difficult time trying to keep him from being
extremely angry and generally impolite to his parents. The phase
is, after all, only a phase. When cleared the child can love his
parents of his own free will and not out of fear and necessity.
Such cases invariably right themselves. When one parent is the
auditor, he may have upon his hands at one or another stage of the
case, a very impertinent and even caustic youngster: if the parent
wants the phase to pass, he will permit the rage to reign and
vigorously follow the auditor's code, giving the child all the
dignity of his righteous anger. After all, the child is entitled to
a demonstration after keeping it in and living with it for years.
He will not recover his feeling of love if that anger is checked
and scolded.
23. The health of the pre-clear can be expected to take a
roller-coaster aspect during therapy. It will not get steadily
better on an even curve of progress. It will surge upward and fall
back many times during one session of therapy and will be
inconstant from day to day as new engrams restimulate and old ones
reduce. He will not become seriously ill and he cannot become as
sick as he ordinarily was. But it is disconcerting to the pre-clear
to have a nose cold three days after his birth engram was
accidentally touched before it could be reduced; it would alarm a
physician who did not know the patient was in dianetic therapy to
watch blood pressure vary and the physical tone change so rapidly
from lows to highs. Yet nothing serious happens and indeed the bulk
of therapy is spent in improved and improving physical comfort. But
a pre-clear should not be disheartened or dismayed to find himself
with a flicker of "coronary trouble" on Tuesday, the shadow of a
"migraine" on Saturday and a
532
cough on Wednesday. These are somatics which sometimes come into
restimulation before they can be reduced. Anything so restimulated
by therapy cannot reach any dangerous heights and is of passing
duration. They are the illnesses he will never have again and he
should be glad to see them go. A very clever auditor can conduct a
whole case without restimulating in the period after a session more
than an occasional slight ache. But if somatics manifest themselves
after and between sessions, do not be surprised, and above all do
not interrupt therapy because of these aches and pains; they are
less in any case than even a minor illness and are at worst merely
uncomfortable. The point is, do not believe, as some patients are
apt to do, that the presence of an unidentified ache or pain means
anything serious is forecast in the way of illness. In therapy
sessions some mild reproduction of past pain is felt and these may
continue on a milder scale between sessions, that is all. You won't
get sick, you are getting well.
24. The daily work of the pre-clear should never be interrupted and
laid aside in the thought that a week or two of dianetics and
nothing but dianetics will solve all problems. In grade school,
high school, and college 18,000 hours are consumed making an
individual a storehouse of knowledge and skill. Many more thousands
of hours are spent gathering experience on how to apply the
knowledge and develop the skill. In dianetic therapy, a clearing of
all occlusions puts the individual into possession of all he has
ever studied, heard and learned and takes away the clumsiness and
errors which may have inhibited his reaching the height where he
belongs. It would be worth 10,000 additional hours of time to
recover and be able to use and apply the knowledge, experience and
skills of a lifetime. One receives a bonus of increased health,
happiness and longevity, an increase in longevity which is at least
a hundred to one for every hour
533
of therapy. Yet therapy all the way to a clear takes far, far less
than 10,000 hours of work. A case is as long as it has quality and
quantity of engrams: if it takes a thousand hours, then blame the
parents, not therapy. Yet few cases should consume a thousand hours
even in unskilled hands and the bulk of them should take at most
two or three hundred hours, a paltry amount of time compared to the
thousands of hours of "forgotten" education, the tens of thousands
of hours of occluded reading and experience which will be
recovered, completely in addition to health, happiness and
longevity. There is no Royal Road to Clear; it takes as long as it
takes. The pre-clear should then settle his mind on the fact that
he will be in therapy for some time. He should not hold off making
decisions or hang his life on the end product of being cleared. Of
course he will be impatient. Of course he will attempt to speed the
process all he can and that is good. But he should not forget to
carry along his life nor should he abandon his diversions or his
work. It has been proven that pre-clears follow a rapidly advancing
curve of progress and that from week to week their potential rises.
It has been observed that they neglect to remember (since it is no
longer important to them in any way) that aberrations are fleeing
from them at a rapid rate. In dianetics one does not "learn how to
live with his troubles." The troubles vanish like the bubbles in a
ship's wake. One does not keep them in mind and remember that the
reason one does not like spinach was because Papa beat him when he
would not eat it. The engram, refiled, does not inhibit the eating
of spinach and Papa's beating is no longer a source of pain. The
troubles are gone. Therefore, it sometimes appears to the
pre-clear, who looks only at the engrams ahead, that he is standing
still. The auditor may have to ask him how he felt this time last
August and make the pre-clear ponder it well before the pre-clear
recalls that last August whenever he tried to
534
write a letter he became nervous, that he hated his children's
racket, and that rain made him wonder about suicide. When he has
compared his existence at his present level in therapy and his
level shortly after he entered therapy, the pre-clear will agree he
has made progress. In the next breath he is asking the auditor
about possible identity of the ally they have just scented in the
case. The pre-clear, in other words, recognizes no progress, since
all progress is by loss of aberration; blind to this he tends to be
extremely anxious and aggressive about getting along with therapy
and does not stop being so (unless he is near the start and is a
"neglect-engram" case) until one day he finds himself cleared. On
that day he takes a glance at the fact that he is cleared and is
already wading knee-deep in the enthusiastic business of living. So
do not stop looking at the exterior world or living in it for the
period of therapy. Take clearing interestedly but as routine to be
followed. Give as much time to it as can be afforded and give the
rest to life. And don't scold the auditor because work was started
Tuesday and here it is Thursday and one is not yet cleared.
25. The pre-clear should thank the auditor after each session. And
he should tell the auditor when he feels better and that he
appreciates progress whenever progress has been made. The pre-clear
introverts and forgets that the auditor deserves some courtesy.
This is more important than is readily realized. Even the best of
auditors are human.
26. The pre-clear has his own responsibility in aiding his own
case. He has just as active a part in locating engrams as the
auditor. The pre-clear who expects to be run through dianetic
therapy as though he were a car, with no volition of his own, slows
his case enormously.
27. The pre-clear who is being handled by an auditor less forceful
than himself either from inherent personality or aberrations is
liable to dictate to the auditor where
535
they will look for engrams and what they will do about them.
Remember that if a man knew his engrams they would not be engrams.
Only an exterior mind, the auditor, knows what is best for the
case. The pre-clear who attempts this is wasting his and the
auditor's time. At the start of the session the pre-clear may
dictate that, as he has a headache, they should put him back to a
certain accident and see if that is it and so get rid of the
headache. The headache isn't important, ever. Getting engrams that
will erase or reduce is important. All such dictations are
"dodges," aberrated efforts to avoid engrams. The less forceful
auditor, man or woman, should recognize a "dodge" when they see one
and the pre-clear, knowing this, should abandon this avoidance
technique and let the auditor audit.
28. The pre-clear should understand that the auditor is restrained
in many ways by the Auditor's Code. The pre-clear should know the
code and, knowing it, should not impose unreasonably upon the
auditor's time or patience, for the auditor also has a life to live
and out of courtesy and the code, may be imposed upon without being
able to prevent it. Be thoughtful.
29. There is one major motto in therapy for the pre-clear: "The
only way out of it is through it!" Remember this. When the auditor
says to go through the engram, be it ever so threatening, do not
beg to come to present time for that brings the engram with it. Two
or three runs and the power of that engram is broken forever. "The
only way out of it is through it!" Remember that.
30. The pre-clear is the only one who "knows" what has been done to
him. It may not be immediately in conscious recall, it may require
dozens of hours to find specific information as to what people have
done. But all the data is there, available for recall in therapy.
If the data is not there, then it is not aberrative; if the data is
there, it is aberrative. Only the pre-clear "knows" how long the
case will take, only the pre-clear "knows" how
536
many allies he is trying to disguise. The pre-clear may not be able
to immediately recall it, but the information is there; he "knows"
it. All knowledge of his whole lifetime is available to him via
dianetic therapy. The auditor can use technique to attain the
information, but it is the pre-clear who does the work, does the
recalling. He is assisted by the auditor and by dianetics. Neither
the auditor nor dianetics "knows" what the content of the
pre-clear's engrams may be; only he knows that. The auditor and
dianetics furnish the process, the pre-clear has the information
necessary to resolve his case.
Good hunting!
537
Glossary
ABERRATION: Any deviation or departure from rationality. Used in
dianetics to include psychoses, neuroses, compulsions and
repressions of all kinds and classifications.
ABERREE: Dianetic neologism for any aberrated individual.
ANALYTICAL MIND: That mind which computes - the "I" and his
consciousness.
AUDITOR: The individual who administers dianetic therapy. To audit
means "to listen" and also "to compute."
BASIC: The first engram on any chain of similar engrams.
BASIC-BASIC: The first engram after conception, the basic of all
chains by sole virtue of being the first moment of pain.
BOUNCER: Any engram command which, when approached by the
analytical mind on the time track, makes the patient move back
toward present time.
CHAINS: Any series of incidents in the engram bank which have
similar content.
CIRCUIT: See DEMON.
538
CLEAR: The optimum individual; no longer possessed of any engrams.
A clear is an individual who, as a result of dianetic therapy, has
neither active nor potential psycho-somatic illness or aberration.
Dictionary: Bright; unclouded, hence, serene; clean; audible;
discriminating; understanding; free from doubt; sure; innocent;
net, as profit over expenses; free from debt; free from any
entanglement. V.t. To make clear, as of dirt or obstruction; to
enlighten; to free from guilt, blame, etc.; to open for passage; to
disentangle. V.i. To become clear and bright. N. A clear space or
part.
DEMON: A by-pass circuit in the mind, called "demon" because it was
long so interpreted. Probably an electronic mechanism.
DENYER: Any engram command which makes a patient believe that the
engram does not exist.
DIANETICS: Greek, dianoua - thought - or more correctly, DIA
(Greek) "through," NOUS (Greek) "soul."
DYNAMIC: The urge, thrust and purpose of life - SURVIVE! - in its
four manifestations: self, sex, group, and Mankind.
ENGRAM: Any moment of greater or lesser "unconsciousness" on the
part of the analytical mind which permits the reactive mind to
record; the total content of that moment with all perceptics.
ENGRAM BANK: The storage place in the body where engrams, with all
their percepts, are recorded and retained and from which engrams
act upon the analytical mind and the body.
539
ENGRAM COMMAND: Any phrase contained in an engram.
ERASE: To cause an engram to "vanish" entirely by recountings, at
which time it is filed as memory and experience.
GROUPER: An engram command which makes the time track or incidents
on it become tangled in such a way that the track appears
shortened.
HOLDER: Any engram command which makes an individual remain in an
engram knowingly or unknowingly.
MEMORY: Anything which, perceived, is filed in the standard memory
bank and can be recalled by the analytical mind.
MISDIRECTOR: Any engram command which makes the patient move in a
way or direction on the track which is contrary to instructions of
the auditor or the desires of the analytical mind of the patient.
PERCEPTIC: Any sense message such as a sight, sound, smell, etc.
PRE-CLEAR: Any person who has been entered into dianetic therapy.
PRE-RELEASE: Any patient who is entered into therapy to accomplish
a release from his chief difficulties, psycho-somatic or
aberrational.
PSYCHO-SOMATIC: Any physical disorder or ill generated by the mind.
Psycho-somatic ills are caused by engrams.
REACTIVE MIND: The cellular level mind which is not
540
"unconscious" but is always conscious - the hidden mind, hitherto
unknown.
REDUCE: To render an engram free from somatic or emotion by
recountings.
RELEASE: Any person who has been advanced to a state approximating
1950 normal by dianetic therapy, whether advanced from a psychotic
or neurotic condition. The act of releasing by therapy.
SOMATIC: Dianetic neologism for pain, any body condition
experienced when contacting an engram; the pain of a psycho-somatic
illness.
SONIC: Recall by hearing a past sound with the "mind's ear."
STANDARD MEMORY BANK: The storage place in the mind where all
consciously perceived data (sight, sound, hearing, smell, organic
sensation, kinesthesia, tactile as well as past mental
computations) are recorded and retained and from which they are
relayed to the analytical mind. Includes all data of a conscious
nature from conception to "now."
SUPPRESSOR: The exterior forces which reduce the chances of the
survival of any form.
SYMBIOTE: Any entity of life or energy which assists an individual
or Man in his survival.
TIME TRACK: The time span of the individual from conception to
present time on which lies the sequence of events of his life.
VISIO: Recall by seeing a past sight with the "mind's eye."
541